The Author’s
Preferred Edition – Part One of a Two Part Story
The
storm had broken.
Pug danced along the edge of the rocks,
his feet finding scant purchase as he made his way among the tide pools. His
dark eyes darted about as he peered into each pool under the cliff face,
seeking the spiny creatures driven into the shallows by the recently passed
storm. His boyish muscles bunched under his light shirt as he shifted the sack
of sandcrawlers, rockclaws, and crabs plucked from this water garden.
The afternoon sun sent sparkles through
the sea spray swirling around him, as the west wind blew his sunstreaked brown
hair about. Pug set his sack down, checked to make sure it was securely tied,
then squatted on a clear patch of sand. The sack was not quite full, but Pug relished
the extra hour or so that he could relax. Megar the cook wouldn't trouble him
about the time as long as the sack was almost full. Resting with his back
against a large rock, Pug was soon dozing in the sun's warmth.
A cool wet spray woke him hours later. He
opened his eyes with a start, knowing he had stayed much too long. Westward,
over the sea, dark thunderheads were forming above the black outline of the Six
Sisters, the small islands on the horizon. The roiling, surging clouds, with
rain trailing below like some sooty veil, heralded another of the sudden storms
common to this part of the coast in early summer. To the south, the high bluffs
of Sailor's Grief reared up against the sky, as waves crashed against the base
of that rocky pinnacle. Whitecaps started to form behind the breakers, a sure
sign the storm would quickly strike. Pug knew he was in danger, for the storms
of summer could drown anyone on the beaches, or if severe enough, on the low
ground beyond.
He picked up his sack and started north,
toward the castle. As he moved among the pools, he felt the coolness in the
wind turn to a deeper, wetter cold. The day began to be broken by a patchwork
of shadows as the first clouds passed before the sun, bright colors fading to
shades of grey. Out to sea, lightning flashed against the blackness of the
clouds, and the distant boom of thunder rode over the noise of the waves.
Pug picked up speed when he came to the
first stretch of open beach. The storm was coming in faster than he would have
thought possible, driving the rising tide before it. By the time he reached the
second stretch of tide pools, there was barely ten feet of dry sand between
water's edge and cliffs.
Pug hurried as fast as was safe across
the rocks, twice nearly catching his foot. As he reached the next expanse of
sand, he mistimed his jump from the last rock and landed poorly. He fell to the
sand, grasping his ankle. As if waiting for the mishap, the tide surged
forward, covering him for a moment. He reached out blindly and felt his sack
carried away. Frantically grabbing at it, Pug lunged forward, only to have his
ankle fail. He went under, gulping water. He raised his head, sputtering and
coughing. He started to stand when a second wave, higher than the last, hit him
in the chest, knocking him backward. Pug had grown up playing in the waves and
was an experienced swimmer, but the pain of his ankle and the battering of the
waves were bringing him to the edge of panic. He fought it off and came up for
air as the wave receded. He half swam, half scrambled toward the cliff face,
knowing the water would be only inches deep there.
Pug reached the cliffs and leaned against
them, keeping as much weight off the injured ankle as possible. He inched along
the rock wall, while each wave brought the water higher. When Pug finally
reached a place where he could make his way upward, water was swirling at his
waist. He had to use all his strength to pull himself up to the path. He lay
panting a moment, then started to crawl up the pathway, unwilling to trust his
balky ankle on this rocky footing.
The first drops of rain began to fall as
he scrambled along, bruising knees and shins on the rocks, until he reached the
grassy top of the bluffs. Pug fell forward exhausted, panting from the exertion
of the climb. The scattered drops grew into a light but steady rain.
When he had caught his breath, Pug sat up
and examined the swollen ankle. It was tender to, the touch, but he was
reassured when he could move it: it was not broken. He would have to limp the
entire way back, but with the threat of drowning on the beach behind him, he
felt relatively buoyant.
Pug would be a drenched, chilled wretch
when he reached the town. He would have to find a lodging there, for the gates
of the castle would be closed for the night, and with his tender ankle he would
not attempt to climb the wall behind the stables. Besides, should he wait and
slip into the keep the next day, only Megar would have words for him, but if he
was caught coming over the wall, Swordmaster Fannon or Horsemaster Algon would
surely have a lot worse in store for him than words.
While he rested, the rain took on an
insistent quality and the sky darkened as the late-afternoon sun was completely
engulfed in storm clouds. His momentary relief was replaced with anger at
himself for losing the sack of sandcrawlers. His displeasure doubled when he
considered his folly at falling asleep. Had he remained awake, he would have
made the return trip unhurriedly, would not have sprained his ankle, and would
have had time to explore the streambed above the bluffs for the smooth stones
he prized so dearly for slinging. Now there would be no stones, and it would be
at least another week before he could return. If Megar didn't send another boy
instead, which was likely now that he was returning empty-handed.
Pug's attention shifted to the discomfort
of sitting in the rain, and he decided it was time to move on. He stood and
tested his ankle. It protested such treatment, but he could get along on it. He
limped over the grass to where he had left his belongings and picked up his
rucksack, staff, and sling. He swore an oath he had heard soldiers at the keep
use when he found the rucksack ripped apart and his bread and cheese missing.
Raccoons, or possibly sand lizards, he thought. He tossed the now useless sack
aside and wondered at his misfortune.
Taking a deep breath, he leaned on his
staff as he started across the low rolling hills that divided the bluffs from the
road. Stands of small trees were scattered over the landscape, and Pug
regretted there wasn't more substantial shelter nearby, for there was none upon
the bluffs. He would be no wetter for trudging to town than for staying under a
tree.
The wind picked up, and Pug felt the
first cold bite against his wet back. He shivered and hurried his pace as well
as he could. The small trees started to bend before the wind, and Pug felt as
if a great hand were pushing at his back. Reaching the road, he turned north.
He heard the eerie sound of the great forest off to the east, the wind
whistling through the branches of the ancient oaks, adding to its already
foreboding aspect. The dark glades of the forest were probably no more perilous
than the King's road, but remembered tales of outlaws and other, less human,
malefactors stirred the hairs on the boy's neck.
Cutting across the King's road, Pug
gained a little shelter in the gully that ran alongside it. The wind
intensified and rain stung his eyes, bringing tears to already wet cheeks. A
gust caught him, and he stumbled off balance for a moment. Water was gathering
in the roadside gully, and he had to step carefully to keep from losing his
footing in unexpectedly deep puddles.
For nearly an hour he made his way
through the ever growing storm. The road turned northwest, bringing him almost
full face into the howling wind. Pug leaned into the wind, his shirt whipping
out behind him. He swallowed hard, to force down the choking panic rising
within him. He knew he was in danger now, for the storm was gaining in fury far
beyond normal for this time of year. Great ragged bolts of lightning lit the
dark landscape, briefly outlining the trees and road in harsh, brilliant white
and opaque black. The dazzling afterimages, black and white reversed, stayed
with him for a moment each time, confusing his senses. Enormous thunder peals
sounding overhead felt like physical blows. Now his fear of the storm
outweighed his fear of imagined brigands and goblins. He decided to walk among
the trees near the road; the wind would be lessened somewhat by the boles of
the oaks.
As Pug closed upon the forest, a crashing
sound brought him to a halt. In the gloom of the storm he could barely make out
the form of a black forest boar as it burst out of the undergrowth. The pig
tumbled from the brush, lost its footing, then scrambled to its feet a few
yards away. Pug could see it clearly as it stood there regarding him, swinging
its head from side to side. Two large tusks seemed to glow, in the dim light as
they dripped rainwater. Fear made its eyes wide, and it pawed at the ground.
The forest pigs were bad-tempered at best, but normally avoided humans. This
one was panic-stricken by the storm, and Pug knew if it charged he could be
badly gored, even killed.
Standing stock-still, Pug made ready to
swing his staff, but hoped the pig would return to the woods. The boar's head
raised, testing the boy's smell on the wind. Its pink eyes seemed to glow as it
trembled with indecision. A sound made it turn toward the trees for a moment,
then it dropped its head and charged.
Pug swung his staff, bringing it down in
a glancing blow to the side of the pig's head, turning it. The pig slid
sideways in the muddy footing, hitting Pug in the legs. He went down as the pig
slipped past. Lying on the ground, Pug saw the boar skitter about as it turned
to charge again. Suddenly the pig was upon him, and Pug had no time to stand.
He thrust the staff before him in a vain attempt to turn the animal again. The
boar dodged the staff and Pug tried to roll away, but a weight fell across his
body. Pug covered his face with his hands, keeping his arms close to his chest,
expecting to be gored.
After a moment he realized the pig was
still. Uncovering his face, he discovered the pig lying across his lower legs,
a black-feathered, cloth-yard arrow protruding from its side. Pug looked toward
the forest. A man garbed in brown leather was standing near the edge of the
trees, quickly wrapping a yeoman's longbow with an oilcloth cover. Once the
valuable weapon was protected from further abuse by the weather, the man
crossed to stand over the boy and beast.
He was cloaked and hooded, his face
hidden. He knelt next to Pug and shouted over the sound of the wind, “Are you
'right, boy?” as he lifted the dead boar easily from Pug's legs. “Bones
broken?”
“I don't think so,” Pug yelled back,
taking account of himself. His right side smarted, and his legs felt equally
bruised. With his ankle still tender, he was feeling ill-used today, but
nothing seemed broken or permanently damaged.
Large, meaty hands lifted him to his
feet. “Here,” the man commanded, handing him his staff and the bow. Pug took
them while the stranger quickly gutted the boar with a large hunter's knife. He
completed his work and turned to Pug. “Come with me, boy. You had best lodge
with my master and me. It's not far, but we'd best hurry. This storm'll get
worse afore it's over. Can you walk?”
Taking an unsteady step, Pug nodded.
Without a word the man shouldered the pig and took his bow. “Come,” he said, as
he turned toward the forest. He set off at a brisk pace, which Pug had to
scramble to match.
The forest cut the fury of the storm so
little that conversation was impossible. A lightning flash lit the scene for a
moment, and Pug caught a glimpse of the man's face. Pug tried to remember if he
had seen the stranger before. He had the look common to the hunters and
foresters that lived in the forest of Crydee: large-shouldered, tall, and
solidly built. He had dark hair and beard and the raw, weather-beaten
appearance of one who spends most of his time outdoors.
For a few fanciful moments the boy
wondered if he might be some member of an outlaw band, hiding in the heart of
the forest. He gave up the notion, for no outlaw would trouble himself with an
obviously penniless keep boy.
Remembering the man had mentioned having
a master, Pug suspected he was a franklin, one who lived on the estate of a
landholder. He would be in the holder's service, but not bound to him as a
bondsman. The franklins were freeborn, giving a share of crop or herd in
exchange for the use of land. He must be freeborn. No bondsman would be allowed
to carry a longbow, for they were much too valuable-and dangerous. Still, Pug
couldn't remember any landholdings in the forest. It was a mystery to the boy,
but the toll of the day's abuses was quickly driving away any curiosity.
AFTER WHAT SEEMED to be hours, the man
walked into a thicket of trees. Pug nearly lost him in the darkness, for the
sun had set some time before, taking with it what faint light the storm had
allowed. He followed the man more from the sound of his footfalls and an
awareness of his presence than from sight. Pug sensed he was on a path through
the trees, for his footsteps met no resisting brush or detritus. From where
they had been moments before, the path would be difficult to find in the
daylight, impossible at night, unless it was already known. Soon they entered a
clearing, in the midst of which sat a small stone cottage. Light shone through
a single window, and smoke rose from the chimney. They crossed the clearing,
and Pug wondered at the storm's relative mildness in this one spot in the
forest.
Once before the door, the man stood to
one side and said, “You go in, boy. I must dress the pig.”
Nodding dumbly, Pug pushed open the
wooden door and stepped in.
“Close that door, boy! You'll give me a
chill and cause me my death.”
Pug jumped to obey, slamming the door
harder than he intended.
He turned, taking in the scene before
him. The interior of the cottage was a small single room. Against one wall was
the fireplace, with a good-size hearth before it. A bright, cheery fire burned,
casting a warm glow. Next to the fireplace a table sat, behind which a
heavyset, yellow-robed figure rested on a bench. His grey hair and beard nearly
covered his entire head, except for a pair of vivid blue eyes that twinkled in
the firelight. A long pipe emerged from the beard, producing heroic clouds of
pale smoke.
Pug knew the man. “Master Kulgan . . .
.,” he began, for the man was the Duke's magician and adviser, a familiar face
around the castle keep.
Kulgan leveled a gaze at Pug, then said
in a deep voice, given to rich rolling sounds and powerful tones, “So you know
me, then?”
“Yes, sir. From the castle.”
“What is your name, boy from the keep?”
“Pug, Master Kulgan.”
“Now I remember you.” The magician
absently waved his hand. “Do not call me 'Master,' Pug -- though I am rightly
called a master of my arts,” he said with a merry crinkling around his eyes. “I
am higherborn than you, it is true, but not by much. Come, there is a blanket
hanging by the fire, and you are drenched. Hang your clothes to dry, then sit
there.” He pointed to a bench opposite him.
Pug did as he was bid, keeping an eye on
the magician the entire time. He was a member of the Duke's court, but still a
magician, an object of suspicion, generally held in low esteem by the common
folk. If a farmer had a cow calve a monster, or blight strike the crops,
villagers were apt to ascribe it to the work of some magician lurking in nearby
shadows. In times not too far past they would have stoned Kulgan from Crydee as
like as not. His position with the Duke earned him the tolerance of the
townsfolk now, but old fears died slowly.
After his garments were hung, Pug sat
down. He started when he saw a pair of red eyes regarding him from just beyond
the magician's table. A scaled head rose up above the tabletop and studied the
boy.
Kulgan laughed at the boy's discomfort.
“Come, boy. Fantus will not eat you.” He dropped his hand to the head of the
creature, who sat next to him on his bench, and rubbed above its eye ridges. It
closed its eyes and gave forth a soft crooning sound, not unlike the purring of
a cat.
Pug shut his mouth, which had popped open
with surprise, then asked, “Is he truly a dragon, sit?”
The magician laughed, a rich,
good-natured sound. “Betimes he thinks he is, boy. Fantus is a firedrake,
cousin to the dragon, though of smaller stature.” The creature opened one eye
and fastened it on the magician. “But of equal heart,” Kulgan quickly added,
and the drake closed his eye again. Kulgan spoke softly, in conspiratorial
tones. “He is very clever, so mind what you say to him. He is a creature of
finely fashioned sensibilities.”
Pug nodded that he would. “Can he breathe
fire?” he asked, eyes wide with wonder. To any boy of thirteen, even a cousin
to a dragon was worthy of awe.
“When the mood suits him, he can belch
out a flame or two, though he seems rarely in the mood. I think it is due to
the rich diet I supply him with, boy. He has not had to hunt for years, so he
is something out of practice in the ways of drakes. In truth, I spoil him
shamelessly.”
Pug found the notion somehow reassuring.
If the magician cared enough to spoil this creature, no matter how outlandish,
then he seemed somehow more human, less mysterious. Pug studied Fantus,
admiring how the fire brought golden highlights to his emerald scales. About
the size of a small hound, the drake possessed a long, sinuous neck atop which
rested an alligatorlike head. His wings were folded across his back, and two
clawed feet extended before him, aimlessly pawing the air, while Kulgan
scratched behind bony eye ridges. His long tail swung back and forth, inches
above the floor.
The door opened and the big bowman
entered, holding a dressed and spitted loin of pork before him. Without a word
he crossed to the fireplace and set the meat to cook. Fantus raised his head,
using his long neck to good advantage to peek over the table. With a flick of
his forked tongue, the drake jumped down and, in stately fashion, ambled over to
the hearth. He selected a warm spot before the fire and curled up to doze away
the wait before dinner.
The franklin unfastened his cloak and
hung it on a peg by the door. “Storm will pass afore dawn, I'm thinking.” He
returned to the fire and prepared a basting of wine and herbs for the pig. Pug
was startled to see a large scar that ran down the left side of the man's face,
showing red and angry in the firelight.
Kulgan waved his pipe in the franklin's
direction. “Knowing my tight-lipped man here, you'll not have made his proper
acquaintance. Meecham, this boy is Pug, from the keep at Castle Crydee.”
Meecham gave a brief nod, then returned to tending the roasting loin.
Pug nodded back, though a bit late for
Meecham to notice. “I never thought to thank you for saving me from the boar.”
Meecham replied, “There's no need for
thanks, boy. Had I not startled the beast, it's unlikely it would have charged
you.” He left the hearth and crossed over to another part of the room, took
some brown dough from a clothcovered bucket, and started kneading.
“Well, sir,” said Pug to Kulgan, “it was
his arrow that killed the pig. It was indeed fortunate that he was following
the animal.”
Kulgan laughed. “ The poor creature, who
is our most welcome guest for dinner, happened to be as much a victim of
circumstance as yourself.”
Pug looked perplexed. “I don't follow,
sit.”
Kulgan stood and took down an object from
the topmost shelf on his bookcase and placed it on the table before the boy. It
was wrapped in a cover of dark blue velvet, so Pug knew at once it must be a
prize of great value for such an expensive material to be used for covering.
Kulgan removed the velvet, revealing an orb of crystal that gleamed in the
firelight. Pug gave an ah of pleasure at the beauty of it, for it was without
apparent flaw and splendid in its simplicity of form.
Kulgan pointed to the sphere of glass.
“This device was fashioned as a gift by Althafain of Carse, a most puissant
artificer of magic, who thought me worthy of such a present, as I have done him
a favor or two in the past but that is of little matter. Having just this day
returned from the company of Master Althafain, I was testing his token. Look
deep into the orb, Pug.”
Pug fixed his eyes on the ball and tried
to follow the flicker of firelight that seemed to play deep within its
structure. The reflections of the room, multiplied a hundredfold, merged and
danced as his eyes tried to fasten upon each aspect within the orb. They flowed
and blended, then grew cloudy and obscure. A soft white glow at the center of
the ball replaced the red of firelight, and Pug felt his gaze become trapped by
its pleasing warmth. Like the warmth of the kitchen at the keep, he thought
absently.
Suddenly the milky white within the ball
vanished, and Pug could see an image of the kitchen before his eyes. Fat Alfan
the cook was making pastries, licking the sweet crumbs from his fingers. This
brought the wrath of Megar, the head cook, down upon his head, for Megar
considered it a disgusting habit. Pug laughed at the scene, one he had
witnessed before many times, and it vanished. Suddenly he felt tired.
Kulgan wrapped the orb in the cloth and
put it away. “You did well, boy,” he said thoughtfully. He stood watching the
boy for a moment, as if considering something, then sat down. “I would not have
suspected you of being able to fashion such a clear image in one try, but you
seem to be more than you first appear to be.”
“Sir?”
“Never mind, Pug.” He paused for a
moment, then said, “I was using that toy for the first time, judging how far I
could send my sight,, when I spied you making for the road. From your limp and
bruised condition, I judged that you would never reach the town, so I sent Meecham
to fetch you.”
Pug looked embarrassed by the unusual
attention, color rising to his checks. He said, with a thirteen-year old's high
estimation of his own ability, “You needn't have done that, sir. I would have
reached the town in due time.”
Kulgan smiled. “Perhaps, but then again,
perhaps not. The storm is unseasonably severe and perilous for traveling.”
Pug listened to the soft tattoo of rain
on the roof of the cottage. The storm seemed to have slackened, and Pug doubted
the magician's words. As if reading the boy's thought, Kulgan said, “Doubt me
not, Pug. This glade is protected by more than the great boles. Should you pass
beyond the circle of oaks that marks the edge of my holding, you would feel the
storm's fury. Meecham, how do you gauge this wind?”
Meecham put down the bread dough he was
kneading and thought for a moment. “Near as bad as the storm that beached six
ships three years back.” He paused for a moment, as if reconsidering the
estimate, then nodded his endorsement. “Yes, nearly as bad, though it won't
blow so long.”
Pug thought back three years to the storm
that had blown a Quegan trading fleet bound for Crydee onto the rocks of
Sailor's Grief. At its height, the guards on the castle walls were forced to stay
in the towers, lest they be blown down. If this storm was that severe, then
Kulgan's magic was impressive, for outside the cottage it sounded no worse than
a spring rain.
Kulgan sat back on the bench, occupied
with trying to light his extinguished pipe. As he produced a large cloud of
sweet white smoke, Pug's attention wandered to a case of books standing behind
the magician. His lips moved silently as he tried to discern what was written
on the bindings, but could not.
Kulgan lifted an eyebrow and said, “So
you can read, aye?”
Pug started, alarmed that he might have
offended the magician by intruding on his domain. Kulgan, sensing his
embarrassment, said, “It is all right, boy. It is no crime to know letters.”
Pug felt his discomfort diminish. “I can
read a little, sir. Megar the cook has shown me how to read the tallies on the
stores laid away for the kitchen in the cellars. I know some numbers, as well.”
“Numbers, too,” the magician exclaimed
goodnaturedly. “Well, you are something of a rare bird.” He reached behind
himself and pulled out one volume, bound in red-brown leather, from the
shelf. He opened it, squinting at one
page, then another, and at last found a page that seemed to meet his
requirements. He turned the open book around and lay it upon the table before
Pug. Kulgan pointed to a page illuminated by a magnificent design of snakes,
flowers, and twining vines in a colorful design around a large letter in the
upper left corner. “Read this, boy.”
Pug had never seen anything remotely like
it. His lessons had been on plain parchment with letters fashioned in Megar's
blunt script, using a charcoal stick- He sat, fascinated by the details of the
work, then realized the magician was staring at him. Regaining his wits, he
began to read.
“And then there came a sum . . . summons
from . . .” He looked at the word, stumbling over the complex combinations that
were new to him. “. . . Zacara.” He paused, looking at Kulgan to see if he was
correct. The magician nodded for him to continue. “For the north was to be
forgot . . . forgotten, lest the heart of the empire Ian . . . languish and all
be lost. And though of Bosania from birth, those soldiers still were loyal to
Great Kesh in their service. So for her great need, they took up their arms and
put on their armor and quit Bosania, taking ship to the south, to save all from
destruction.”
Kulgan said, “That's enough,” and gently
closed the cover of the book. “You are well gifted with letters for a keep
boy.”
“This book, sir, what is it?” asked Pug, as Kulgan took it from
him. “I have never seen anything like it.”
Kulgan looked at Pug for a moment, with a
gaze that made him uncomfortable again, then smiled, breaking the tension. As
he put the book back, he said, “It is a history of this land, boy. It was given
as a gift by the abbot of an Ishapian monastery. It is a translation of a
Keshian text, over a hundred years old.”
Pug nodded and said, “It all sounded very
strange. What does it tell of?”
Kulgan once more looked at Pug as if trying to see something
inside of the boy, then said, “A long time ago, Pug, all these lands, from the
Endless Sea across the Grey Tower Mountains to the Bitter Sea, were part of the
Empire of Great Kesh. Far to the east existed a small kingdom, on one small
island called Rillanon. It grew to engulf its neighboring island kingdoms, and
it became the Kingdom of the Isles. Later it expanded again to the mainland,
and while it is still the Kingdom of Isles, most of us simply call it 'the
Kingdom.' We, who live in Crydee, are part of the Kingdom, though we live as
far from the capital city of Rillanon as one can and still be within its
boundaries.
“Once, many long years ago, the Empire of
Great Kesh abandoned these lands, for it was engaged in a long and bloody
conflict with its neighbors to the south, the Keshian Confederacy.”
Pug was caught up in the grandeur of lost
empires, but hungry enough to notice Meecham was putting several small loaves
of dark bread in hearth oven. He turned his attention back to the magician.
“Who were the Keshian Con. . . ?”
“The Keshian Confederacy,” Kulgan
finished for the boy. “It is a group of small nations who had existed as
tributaries to Great Kesh for centuries. A dozen years before that book was
written, they united against their oppressor. Each alone was insufficient to
contest with Great Kesh, but united they proved its match. Too close a match,
for the war dragged on year after year. The Empire was forced to strip its
northern provinces of their legions and send them south, leaving the north open
to the advances of the new, younger Kingdom.
“It was Duke Borric's grandfather,
youngest son of the King, who brought the army westward, extending the Western
Realm. Since then all of what was once the old imperial province of Bosania,
except for the Free Cities of Natal, has been called the Duchy of Crydee.”
Pug thought for a moment, then said, “I
think I would like to travel to this Great Kesh someday.”
Meecham snorted, something close to a
laugh. “And what would you be traveling as, a freebooter?”
Pug felt his face flush. Freebooters were
landless men, mercenaries who fought for pay, and who were regarded as being
only one cut above outlaws.
Kulgan said, “Perhaps you might someday,
Pug. The way is long and full of peril, but it is not unheard of for a brave
and hearty soul to survive the journey. Stranger things have been known to
happen.”
The talk at the table turned to more
common topics, for the magician had been at the southern keep at Carse for over
a month and wanted the gossip of Crydee. When the bread was done baking,
Meecham served it hot, carved the pork loin, and brought out plates of cheese
and greens. Pug had never eaten so well in his life. Even when he had worked in
the kitchen, his position as keep boy earned him only meager fare. Twice during
dinner, Pug found the magician regarding him intently.
When the meal was over, Meecham cleared
the table, then began washing the dishes with clean sand and fresh water, while
Kulgan and Pug sat talking. A single scrap of meat remained on the table, which
Kulgan tossed over to Fantus, who lay before the fire: The drake opened one eye
to regard the morsel. He pondered the choice between his comfortable resting
place and the juicy scrap for a moment, then moved the necessary six inches to
gulp down the prize and closed his eye again.
Kulgan lit his pipe, and once he was
satisfied with its production of smoke, he said, “What are your plans when you
reach manhood, boy?”
Pug was fighting off sleep, but Kulgan's
question brought him alert again. The time of Choosing, when the boys of the
town and keep were taken into apprenticeship, was close, and Pug became excited
as he said, “This Midsummer's Day I hope to take the Duke's service under
Swordmaster Fannon.”
Kulgan regarded his slight guest. “I
would have thought you still a year or two away from apprenticeship, Pug.”
Meecham gave out a sound somewhere
between a laugh and a grunt. “Bit small to be lugging around sword and shield,
aren't you, boy?”
Pug flushed. He was the smallest boy of
his age in the castle. “Megar the cook said I may be late coming to my growth,”
he said with a faint note of defiance. “No one knows who my parents were, so
they have no notion of what to expect.”
“Orphan, is it?” asked Meecham, raising
one eyebrow, his most expressive gesture yet.
Pug nodded. “I was left with the Priests
of Dala, in the mountain abbey, by a woman who claimed she found me in the
road. They brought me to the keep, for they had no way to care for me.”
“Yes,” injected Kulgan, “I remember when
those who worship the Shield of the Weak first brought you to the castle. You
were no more than a baby fresh from the teat. It is only through the Duke's
kindness that you are a freeman today. He felt it a lesser evil to free a
bondsman's son than to bond a freeman's. Without proof, it was his right to
have you declared bondsman.”
Meecham said in a noncommittal tone, “A
good man, the Duke.”
Pug had heard the story of his origin a
hundred times before from Magya in the kitchen of the castle. He felt
completely wrung out and could barely keep his eyes open. Kulgan noticed and
signaled Meecham. The tall franklin took some blankets from a shelf and
prepared a sleeping pallet. By the time he finished, Pug had fallen asleep with
his head on the table. The large man's hands lifted him gently from the stool
and placed him on the blankets, then covered him.
Fantus opened his eyes and regarded the
sleeping boy. With a wolfish yawn, he scrambled over next to Pug and snuggled
in close. Pug shifted his weight in his sleep and draped one arm over the
drake's neck. The firedrake gave an approving rumble, deep in his throat, and
closed his eyes again.
The
forest was quiet.
If the slight afternoon breeze stirred
the tall oaks and cut the day's heat, while rustling the leaves only slightly.
Birds who would raise a raucous chorus at sunrise and sundown were mostly quiet
at this time of morning. The faint tang of sea salt mixed with the sweet smell
of flowers and pungency of decaying leaves.
Pug and Tomas walked slowly along the
path, with the aimless weaving steps of boys who have no particular place to go
and ample time to get there. Pug shied a small rock at an imagined target, then
turned to look at his companion. “You don't think your mother was mad, do you?”
he asked.
Tomas smiled. “No, she understands how
things are. She's seen other boys the day of Choosing. And truthfully, we were
more of hindrance than a help in the kitchen today.”
Pug nodded. He had spilled a precious pot
of honey as he carried it to Alfan, the pastry cook. Then he had dumped an
entire tray of fresh bread loaves as he took them from the oven. “I made
something of a fool of myself today, Tomas.”
Tomas laughed. He was a tall boy, with
sandy hair and bright blue eyes. With his quick smile, he was well liked in the
keep, in spite of a boyish tendency to find trouble. He was Pug's closest
friend, more brother than friend, and for that reason Pug earned some measure
of acceptance from the other boys, for they all regarded Tomas as their
unofficial leader.
Tomas said, “You were no more the fool
than I. At least you didn't forget to hang the beef sides high.” Pug grinned.
“Anyway, the Duke's hounds are happy.” He snickered, then laughed. “She is
angry, isn't she?”
Tomas laughed along with his friend.
“She's mad. Still, the dogs only ate a little before she shooed them off.
Besides, she's mostly mad at Father. She claims the Choosing's only an excuse
for all the Craftmasters to sit around smoking pipes, drinking ale, and
swapping tales all day. She says they already know who will choose which boy.”
Pug said, “From what the other women say,
she's not alone in that opinion.” Then he grinned at Tomas. “Probably not
wrong, either.”
Tomas lost his smile. “She truly doesn't
like it when he's not in the kitchen to oversee things. I think she knows this,
which is why she tossed us out of the keep for the morning, so she wouldn't
take out her temper on us. Or at least you,” he added with a questioning smile.
“I swear you're her favorite.”
Pug's grin returned and he laughed again.
“Well, I do cause less trouble.”
With a playful punch to the arm, Tomas
said, “You mean you get caught less often.”
Pug pulled his sling out from within his
shirt. “If we came back with a brace of partridge or quail, she might regain
some of her good temper.”
Tomas smiled. “She might,” he agreed,
taking out his own sling. Both boys were excellent slingers, Tomas being
undoubted champion among the boys, edging Pug by only a little. It was unlikely
either could bring down a bird on the wing, but should they find one at rest,
there was a fair chance they might hit it. Besides, it would give them
something to do to pass the hours and perhaps for a time forget the Choosing.
With exaggerated stealth they crept
along, playing the part of hunters. Tomas led the way as they left the
footpath, heading for the watering pool they knew lay not too far distant. It
was improbable they would spot game this time of the day unless they simply
blundered across it, but if any were to be found, it most likely would be near
the pool. The woods to the northeast of the town of Crydee were less forbidding
than the great forest to the south. Many years of harvesting trees for lumber
had given the green glades a sunlit airiness found in the deep haunts of the
southern forest. The keep boys had often played here over the years. With small
imagination, the woods were transformed into a wondrous place, a green world of
high adventure. Some of the greatest deeds known had taken place here. Daring
escapes, dread quests, and mightily contested battles had been witnessed by the
silent trees as the boys gave vent to their youthful dreams of coming manhood.
Foul creatures, mighty monsters, and base outlaws had all been fought and
vanquished, often accompanied by the death of a great hero, with appropriate
last words to his mourning companions, all managed with just enough time left
to return to the keep for supper.
Tomas reached a small rise that
overlooked the pool, screened off by young beech saplings, and pulled aside
some brush so they could mount a vigil. He stopped, awed, and softly said,
“Pug, look!” Standing at the edge of the pool was a stag, head held high as he
sought the source of something that disturbed his drinking. He was an old
animal, the hair around his muzzle nearly all white, and his head crowned by
magnificent antlers.
Pug counted quickly. “He has fourteen
points.”
Tomas nodded agreement. “He must be the
oldest buck in the forest.” The stag turned his attention in the boys'
direction, flicking an ear nervously. They froze, not wishing to frighten off
such a beautiful creature. For a long, silent minute the stag studied the rise,
nostrils flaring, then slowly lowered his head to the pool and drank.
Tomas gripped Pug's shoulder and inclined
his head to one side. Pug followed Tomas's motion and saw a figure walking
silently into the clearing. He was a tall man dressed in leather clothing, dyed
forest green. Across his back hung a longbow and at his belt a hunter's knife.
His green cloak's hood was thrown back, and he walked toward the stag with a
steady, even step. Tomas said, “It's Martin.”
Pug also recognized the Duke's
Huntmaster. An orphan like Pug, Martin had come to be known as Longbow by those
in the castle, as he had few equals with that weapon. Something of a mystery,
Martin Longbow was still well liked by the boys, for while he was aloof with
the adults in the castle, he was always friendly and accessible to the boys. As
Huntmaster, he was also the Duke's Forester. His duties absented him from the
castle for days, even weeks at a time, as he kept his trackers busy looking for
signs of poaching, possible fire dangers, migrating goblins, or outlaws camping
in the woods. But when he was in the castle, and not organizing a hunt for the Duke,
he always had time for the boys. His dark eyes were always merry when they
pestered him with questions of woodlore or for tales of the lands near the
boundaries of Crydee. He seemed to possess unending patience, which set him
apart from most of the Craftmasters in the town and keep.
Martin came up to the stag, gently
reached out and touched his neck. The great head swung up, and the stag nuzzled
Martin's arm. Softly Martin said, “If you walk out slowly, without speaking, he
might let you approach.”
Pug and Tomas exchanged startled glances,
then stepped into the clearing. They walked slowly around the edge of the pool,
the stag following their movements with his head, trembling slightly. Martin
patted him reassuringly and he quieted. Tomas and Pug came to stand beside the
hunter, and Martin said, “Reach out and touch him, slowly so as not to frighten
him.”
Tomas reached -out first, and the stag
trembled beneath his fingers. Pug began to reach out, and the stag retreated a
step. Martin crooned to the stag in a language Pug had never heard before, and
the animal stood still. Pug touched him and marveled at the feel of his coat --
so like the cured hides he had touched before, yet so different for the feel of
life pulsing under his fingertips.
Suddenly, the stag backed off and turned.
Then, with a single bounding leap, he was gone among the trees. Martin Longbow
chuckled and said, “Just as well. It wouldn't do to have him become too
friendly with men. Those antlers would quickly end up over some poacher's
fireplace.”
Tomas whispered, “He's beautiful,
Martin.”
Longbow nodded, his eyes still fastened
upon the spot where the stag had vanished into the woods. “That he is, Tomas.”
Pug said, “I thought you hunted stags,
Martin. How-”
Martin said, “Old Whitebeard and I have
something of an understanding, Pug. I hunt only bachelor stags, without does,
or does too old to calve. When Whitebeard loses his harem to some younger buck
someday, I may take him. Now each leaves the other to his own way. The day will
come when I will look at him down the shaft of an arrow.” He smiled at the
boys. “I won't know until then if I shall let the shaft fly. Perhaps I will,
perhaps not.” He fell silent for a time, as if the thought of Whitebeard's
becoming old was saddening, then as a light breeze rustled the branches said,
“Now, what brings two such bold hunters into the Duke's woods in the early
morning? There must be a thousand things left undone with the Midsummer
festival this afternoon.”
Tomas answered. “My mother tossed us out
of the kitchen. We were more trouble than not. With the Choosing today . . .”
His voice died away, and he felt suddenly embarrassed. Much of Martin's
mysterious reputation stemmed from when he first came to Crydee. At his time
for the Choosing, he had been placed directly with the old Huntmaster by the
Duke, rather than standing before the assembled Craftmasters with the other
boys his age. This violation of one of the oldest traditions known had offended
many people in town, though none would dare openly express such feelings to
Lord Borric. As was natural, Martin became the object of their ire, rather than
the Duke. Over the years Martin had more than justified Lord Borric's decision,
but still most people were troubled by the Duke's special treatment of him that
one day. Even after twelve years some people still regarded Martin Longbow as
being different and, as such, worthy of distrust.
Tomas said, “I'm sorry, Martin.”
Martin nodded in acknowledgment, but
without humor. “I understand, Tomas. I may not have had to endure your
uncertainty, but I have seen many others wait for the day of Choosing. And for
four years I myself have stood with the other Masters, so I know a little of
your worry.”
A
thought struck Pug and he blurted, “But you're not with the other
Craftmasters.”
Martin shook his head, a rueful
expression playing across his even features. “I had thought that, in light of
your worry, you might fail to observe the obvious. But you've a sharp wit about
you, Pug.”
Tomas didn't understand what they were
saying for a moment, then comprehension dawned. “Then you'll select no
apprentices!”
Martin raised a finger to his lips. “Not
a word, lad. No, with young Garret chosen last year, I've a full company of
trackers.”
Tomas was disappointed. He wished more
than anything to take service with Swordmaster Fannon, but should he not be
chosen as a soldier, then he would prefer the life of a forester, under Martin.
Now his second choice was denied him. After a moment of dark brooding, he
brightened: perhaps Martin didn't choose him because Fannon already had.
Seeing his friend entering a cycle of
elation and depression as he considered all the possibilities, Pug said, “You
haven't been in the keep for nearly a month, Martin.” He put away the sling he
still held and asked, “Where have you kept yourself?”
Martin looked at Pug as the boy instantly
regretted his question. As friendly as Martin could be, he was still Huntmaster,
a member of the Duke's household, and keep boys did not make a habit of
questioning the comings and goings of the Duke's staff.
Martin relieved Pug's embarrassment with
a slight smile. “I've been to Elvandar. Queen Aglaranna has ended her twenty
years of mourning the death of her husband, the Elf King. There was a great
celebration.”
Pug was surprised by the answer. To him,
as to most people in Crydee, the elves were little more than legend. But Martin
had spent his youth near the elven forests and was one of the few humans to
come and go through those forests to the north at will. It was another thing
that set Martin Longbow apart from others. While Martin had shared elvish lore
with the boys before, this was the first time in Pug's memory he had spoken of
his relationship to the elves. Pug stammered, “You feasted with the Elf Queen?”
Martin assumed a pose of modest
inconsequence. “Well, I sat at the table farthest from the throne, but yes; I
was there.” Seeing the unasked questions in their eyes, he continued. “You know
as a boy I was raised by the monks of Silban's Abbey, near the elven forest. I
played with elven children, and before I came here, I hunted with Prince Calin
and his cousin, Galain.”
Tomas nearly jumped with excitement.
Elves were a subject holding particular fascination for him. “Did you know King
Aidan?”
Martin's expression clouded, and his eyes
narrowed, his manner suddenly becoming stiff. Tomas saw Martin's reaction and
said, “I'm sorry, Martin. Did I say something wrong?”
Martin waved away the apology. “No fault
of yours, Tomas,” he said, his manner softening somewhat. “The elves do not use
the names of those who have gone to the Blessed Isles, especially those who
have died untimely. They believe to do so recalls those spoken of from their
journey there, denying them their final rest. I respect their beliefs.
“Well, to answer you, no, I never met
him. He was killed when I was only a small boy. But I have heard the stories of
his deeds, and he was a good and wise King by all accounts.” Martin looked
about. “It approaches noon. We should return to the keep.”
He began to walk toward the path, and the
boys fell in beside him.
“What was the feast like, Martin?” asked
Tomas.
Pug sighed as the hunter began to speak
of the marvels of Elvandar. He was also fascinated by tales of the elves, but
to nowhere near the degree Tomas was. Tomas could endure hours of tales of the
people of the elven forests, regardless of the speaker's credibility. At least,
Pug considered, in the Huntmaster they had a dependable eyewitness. Martin's
voice droned on, and Pug's attention wandered, as he again found himself
pondering the Choosing. No matter that he told himself worry was useless: he
worried. He found he was facing the approaching of this afternoon with
something akin to dread.
THE BOYS STOOD in the courtyard. It was
Midsummer, the day that ended one year and marked the beginning of another.
Today everyone in the castle would be counted one year older. For the milling
boys this was significant, for today was the last day of their boyhood. Today
was the Choosing.
Pug tugged at the collar of his new
tunic. It wasn't really new, being one of Tomas's old ones, but it was the
newest Pug had ever owned. Magya, Tomas's mother, had taken it in for the
smaller boy, to ensure he was presentable before the Duke and his court. Magya
and her husband, Megar the cook, were as close to being parents to the orphan
as anyone in the keep. They tended his ills, saw that he was fed, and boxed his
ears when he deserved it. They also loved him as if he were Tomas's brother.
Pug looked around. The other boys all
wore their best, for this was one of the most important days of their young
lives. Each would stand before the assembled Craftmasters and members of the
Duke's staff, and each would be considered for an apprentice's post. It was a
ritual, its origins lost in time, for the choices had already been made. The
crafters and the Duke's staff had spent many hours discussing each boy's merits
with one another and knew which boys they would call.
The practice of having the boys between
eight and thirteen years of age work in the crafts and services had proved a
wise course over the years in fitting the best suited to each craft. In
addition, it provided a pool of semiskilled individuals for the other crafts
should the need arise. The drawback to the system was that certain boys were
not chosen for a craft or staff position. Occasionally there would be too many
boys for a single position, or no lad judged fit even though there was an
opening. Even when the number of boys and openings seemed well matched, as it
did this year, there were no guarantees. For those who stood in doubt, it was
an anxious time.
Pug scuffed his bare feet absently in the dust. Unlike Tomas, who seemed
to do well at anything he tried, Pug was often guilty of trying too hard and
bungling his tasks. He looked around and noticed that a few of the other boys
also showed signs of tension. Some were joking roughly, pretending no concern
over whether they were chosen or not. Others stood like Pug, lost in their
thoughts, trying not to dwell on what they would do should they not be chosen.
If he was not chosen, Pug-like the
others-would be free to leave Crydee to try to find a craft in another town or
city. If he stayed, he would have to either farm the Duke's land as a franklin,
or work one of the town's fishing boats. Both prospects were equally
unattractive, but he couldn't imagine leaving Crydee.
Pug remembered what Megar had told him,
the night before. The old cook had cautioned him about fretting too much over
the Choosing. After all, he had pointed out, there were many apprentices who
never advanced to the rank of journeyman, and when all things were taken into
account, there were more men without craft in Crydee than with. Megar had
glossed over the fact that many fishers' and farmers' sons forsook the
Choosing, electing to follow their fathers. Pug wondered if Megar was so
removed from his own Choosing he couldn't remember that the boys who were not
chosen would stand before the assembled company of Craftmasters, householders,
and newly chosen apprentices, under their gaze until the last name was called
and they were dismissed in shame.
Biting his lower lip, Pug tried to hide
his nervousness. He was not the sort to jump from the heights of Sailor's Grief
should he not be chosen, as some had done in the past, but he couldn't bear the
idea of facing those who had been chosen.
Tomas, who stood next to his shorter
friend, threw Pug a smile. He knew Pug was fretting, but could not feel
entirely sympathetic as his own excitement mounted. His father had admitted
that he would be the first called by Swordmaster Fannon. Moreover, the
Swordmaster had confided that should Tomas do well in training, he might be
found a place in the Duke's personal guard. It would be a signal honor and
would improve Tomas's chance for advancement, even earning him an officer's
rank after fifteen or twenty years in the guard.
He poked Pug in the ribs with an elbow,
for the Duke's herald had come out upon the balcony overlooking the courtyard.
The herald signaled to a guard, who opened the small door in the great gate,
and the Craftmasters entered. They crossed to stand at the foot of the broad
stairs of the keep. As was traditional, they stood with their backs to the
boys, waiting upon the Duke.
The large oaken doors of the keep began
to swing out ponderously, and several guards in the Duke's brown and gold
darted through to take up their positions on the steps. Upon each tabard was
emblazoned the golden gull of Crydee, and above that a small golden crown,
marking the Duke a member of the royal family.
The herald shouted, “Hearken to me! His
Grace, Borric conDoin, third Duke of Crydee, Prince of the Kingdom; Lord of
Crydee, Carse, and Tulan; Warden of the West; Knight-General of the King's
Armies; heir presumptive to the throne of Rillanon.” The Duke stood patiently
while the list of offices was completed, then stepped forward into the
sunlight.
Past fifty, the Duke of Crydee still
moved with the fluid grace and powerful step of a born warrior. Except for the
grey at the temples of his dark brown hair, he looked younger than his age by
twenty years. He was dressed from neck to boot in black, as he had been for the
last seven years, for he still mourned the loss of his beloved wife, Catherine.
At his side hung a black-scabbarded sword with a silver hilt, and upon his hand
his ducal signet ring, the only ornamentation he permitted himself.
The herald raised his voice. “Their Royal
Highnesses, the Princes Lyam conDoin and Arutha conDoin, heirs to the House of
Crydee; Knight-Captains of the King's Army of the West; Princes of the royal
house of Rillanon.”
Both sons stepped forward to stand behind
their father. The two young men were six and four years older than the
apprentices, the Duke having wed late, but the difference between the awkward
candidates apprenticeship and the sons of the Duke was much more than a few
years in age. Both Princes appeared calm and self-possessed.
Lyam, the older, stood on his father's
right, a blond, powerfully built man. His open smile was the image of his
mother's, and he looked always on the verge of laughter. He was dressed in a
bright blue tunic and yellow leggings and wore a closely trimmed beard, as
blond as his shoulder-length hair.
Arutha was to shadows and night as Lyam
was to light and day. He stood nearly as tall as his brother and father, but
while they were powerfully built, he was rangy to the point of gauntness. He
wore a brown tunic and russet leggings. His hair was dark and his face
clean-shaven. Everything about Arutha gave one the feeling of quickness. His strength
was in his speed: speed with the rapier, speed with wit. His humor was dry and
often sharp. While Lyam was openly loved by the Duke's subjects, Arutha was
respected and admired for his ability, but not regarded with warmth by the
people.
Together the two sons seemed to capture
most of the complex nature of their sire, for the Duke was capable of both
Lyam's robust humor and Arutha's dark moods. They were nearly opposites in
temperament, but both capable men who would benefit the Duchy and Kingdom in
years to come. The Duke loved both his sons.
The herald again spoke. “The Princess
Carline, daughter of the royal house.”
The slim and graceful girl who made her
entrance was the same age as the boys who stood below, but already beginning to
show the poise and grace of one born to rule and the beauty of her late mother.
Her soft yellow gown contrasted strikingly with her nearly black hair. Her eyes
were Lyam's blue, as their mother's had been, and Lyam beamed when his sister
took their father's arm. Even Arutha ventured one of his rare half smiles, for
his sister was dear to him also.
Many boys in the keep harbored a secret
love for the Princess, a fact she often turned to her advantage when there was
mischief afoot. But even her presence could not drive the day's business from
their minds.
The Duke's court then entered. Pug and
Tomas could see that all the members of the Duke's staff were present,
including Kulgan. Pug had glimpsed him in the castle from time to time since
the night of the storm, and they had exchanged words once, Kulgan inquiring as
to his well-being, but mostly the magician was absent from sight. Pug was a
little surprised to see the magician, for he was not properly considered a full
member of the Duke's household, but rather a sometime adviser. Most of the time
Kulgan was ensconced in his tower, hidden from view as he did whatever
magicians do in such places.
The magician was deep in conversation
with Father Tully, a priest of Astalon the Builder and one of the Duke's oldest
aides. Tully had been adviser to the Duke's father and had seemed old then. He
now appeared ancient-at least to Pug's youthful perspective -but his eyes
betrayed no sign of senility. Many a keep boy had been impaled upon the pointed
gaze of those clear grey eyes. His wit and tongue were equally youthful, and
more than once a keep boy had wished for a session with Horsemaster Algon's
leather strap rather than a tongue-lashing from Father Tully. The whitehaired
priest could nearly strip the skin from a miscreant's back with his caustic
words.
Nearby stood one who had experienced
Tully's wrath upon occasion, Squire Roland, son of Baron Tolburt of Tulan, one
of the Duke's vassals. He was companion to both Princes, being the only other
boy of noble birth in the keep. His father had sent him to Crydee the year
before, to learn something of the management of the Duchy and the ways of the
Duke's court. In the rather rough frontier court Roland discovered a home away
from home. He was already something of a rogue when he arrived, but his
infectious sense of humor and ready wit often eased much of the anger that
resulted from his prankish ways. It was Roland, more often than not, who was
Princess Carline's accomplice in whatever mischief she was embarked upon. With
light brown hair and blue eyes, Roland stood tall for his age. He was a year
older than the gathered boys and had played often with them over the last year,
as Lyam and Arutha were frequently busy with court duties. Tomas and he had
been boyish rivals at first, then fast friends, with Pug becoming his friend by
default, because where Tomas was, Pug was certain to be nearby. Roland saw Pug
fidgeting near the edge of the assembled boys and gave him a slight nod and
wink. Pug grinned briefly, for while he was as often the butt of Roland's jokes
as any other, he still found himself liking the wild young Squire.
After all his court was in attendance,
the Duke spoke. “Yesterday was the last day of the eleventh year of the reign
of our Lord King, Rodric the Fourth. Today is the Festival of Banapis. The
following day will find these boys gathered here counted among the men of
Crydee, boys no longer, but apprentices and freemen. At this time it is proper
for me to inquire if any among you wishes to be released from service to the
Duchy. Are there any among you who so wish?” The question was formal in nature
and no response was expected, for few ever wished to leave Crydee. But one boy
did step forward.
The herald asked, “Who seeks release of
his service?”
The boy looked down, clearly nervous.
Clearing his throat, he said, “I am Robert, son of Hugen.” Pug knew him, but
not well. He was a netmender's son, a town boy, and they rarely mixed with the
keep boys. Pug had played with him upon a few occasions and had a sense the lad
was well regarded. It was a rare thing to refuse service, and Pug was as
curious as any to hear the reasons.
The Duke spoke kindly. “What is your
purpose, Robert, son of Hugen?”
“Your grace, my father is unable to take
me into his craft, for my four brothers are well able to ascend to the craft as
journeymen and masters after him, as are many other netmender's sons. My eldest
brother is now married and has a son of his own, so my family no longer has
room for me in the house. If I may not stay with my family and practice my
father's craft, I beg your grace's leave to take service as a sailor.”
The Duke considered the matter. Robert
was not the first village boy to be called by the lure of the sea. “Have you
found a master willing to take you into his company?”
“Yes, Your Grace. Captain Gregson, master
of the ship Green Deep from Margrave's Port is willing.”
“I know this man,” said the Duke. Smiling
slightly he said, “He is a good and fair man. I recommend you into his service
and wish you well in your travels. You will be welcomed at Crydee whenever you
return with your ship.”
Robert bowed, a little stiffly, and left
the courtyard, his part in the Choosing done. Pug wondered at Robert's
adventuresome choice. In less than a minute the boy had renounced his ties with
his family and home and was now a citizen of a city he had never seen. It was custom that a sailor was considered
to owe his loyalty to the city that was his ship's home port. Margrave's Port
was one of the Free Cities of Natal, on the Bitter Sea, and was now Robert's
home.
The Duke indicated the herald should
continue.
The herald announced the first of the
Craftmasters, Sailmaker Holm, who called the names of three boys. All three
took service, and none seemed displeased. The Choosing went smoothly, as no boy
refused service. Each boy went to stand next to his new master.
As the afternoon wore on and the number
of boys diminished, Pug became more and more uncomfortable. Soon there were
only two boys besides Pug and Tomas standing in the center of the court. All
the Craftmasters had called their apprentices, and only two of the Duke's
household staff beside the Swordmaster had not been heard from. Pug studied the
group on the top of the steps, his heart pounding with anxiety. The two Princes
regarded the boys, Lyam with a friendly smile, Arutha brooding on some thought
or another. The Princess Carline was bored by the entire affair and took little
pains to hide the fact, as she was whispering to Roland. This brought a
disapproving look from Lady Marna, her governess.
Horsemaster Algon came forth, his
brown-and golden tabard bearing a small horsehead embroidered over his left
breast. The Horsemaster called the name of Rulf, son of Dick, and the stocky
son of the Duke's stableman walked over to stand behind the master. When he
turned, he smiled condescendingly at Pug. The two boys had never gotten along,
the pock-scarred boy spending many hours taunting and tormenting Pug. While
they both worked in the stable under Dick, the stableman had looked the other
way whenever his son sprang a trap on Pug, and the orphan was always held
responsible for any difficulty that arose. It had been a terrible period for
Pug, and the boy had vowed to refuse service rather than face the prospect of
working next to Rulf the rest of his life.
Housecarl Samuel called the other boy,
Geoffry, who would become a member of the castle's serving staff, leaving Pug
and Tomas standing alone. Swordmaster Fannon then stepped forward, and Pug felt
his heart stand still as the old soldier called, “Tomas, son of Megar.”
There was a pause, and Pug waited to hear
his own name called, but Fannon stepped back and Tomas crossed over to stand
alongside him. Pug felt dwarfed by the gaze of all upon him. The courtyard was
now larger than he had ever remembered it, and he felt ill fashioned and poorly
dressed. His heart sank in his chest as he realized that there was no
Craftmaster or staff member present who had not taken an apprentice. He would
be the only boy uncalled. Fighting back tears, he waited for the Duke to
dismiss the company.
As the Duke started to speak, sympathy
for the boy showing clearly in his face, he was interrupted by another voice.
“Your Grace, if you would be so kind.”
All eyes turned to see Kulgan the
magician step forward. “I have need of an apprentice and would call Pug, orphan
of the keep, to service.”
A wave of murmuring swept through the
assembled Craftmasters. A few voices could be heard saying it wasn't proper for
a magician to participate in the Choosing. The Duke silenced them with a sweep
of his gaze, his face stern. No Craftmaster would challenge the Duke of Crydee,
the third-ranking noble in the Kingdom, over the standing of one boy. Slowly
all eyes returned to regard the boy.
The Duke said, “As Kulgan is a recognized
master of his craft, it is his right to choose. Pug, orphan of the keep, will
you take service?” Pug stood rigid. He had imagined himself leading the King's
army into battle as a Knight-Lieutenant, or discovering someday he was the lost
son of nobility. In his boyish imaginings he had sailed ships, hunted great
monsters, and saved the nation. In quieter moments of reflection he had
wondered if he would spend his life building ships, making pottery, or learning
the trader's skill, and speculated on how well he would do in each of those
crafts. But the one thing he never thought of, the one dream that had never
captured his fantasies, was that of becoming a magician.
He snapped out of his shocked state,
aware the Duke patiently awaited his response. He looked at the faces of those
before him. Father Tully gave him one of his rare smiles, as did Prince Arutha.
Prince Lyam nodded a slight yes, and Kulgan regarded him intently. There were
signs of worry upon the magician's face, and suddenly Pug decided. It might not
be an entirely proper calling, but any craft was better than none. He stepped
forward and caught his own heel with his other foot, and landed face down in
the dust. Picking himself up, he half scrambled, half ran to the magician's
side. The misstep broke the tension, and the Duke's booming laughter filled the
courtyard. Flushing with embarrassment, Pug stood behind Kulgan. He looked
around the broad girth of his new master and found the Duke watching, his
expression tempered by a kind nod at the blushing Pug. The Duke turned back to
those who stood waiting for the Choosing to end.
“I declare that each boy present is now
the charge of his master, to obey him in all matters within the laws of the
Kingdom, and each shall be judged a true and proper man of Crydee. Let the
apprentices attend their masters. Until the feasting, I bid you all good day.”
He turned and presented his left arm to his daughter. She placed her hand
lightly upon it and they passed into the keep between the ranks of the
courtiers, who drew aside. The two Princes followed, and the others of the
court. Pug saw Tomas leave in the direction of the guard barracks, behind
Master Fannon.
He turned his attention back to Kulgan,
who was standing lost in thought. After a moment the magician said, “I trust
neither of us has made a mistake this day.”
“Sir?” Pug asked, not understanding the
magician's meaning. Kulgan waved one hand absently, causing his pale yellow
robe to move like waves rippling over the sea. “It is no matter, boy. What's
done is done. Let us make the best of things.”
He placed his hand on the boy's shoulder.
“Come, let us retire to the tower where I reside. There is a small room below
my own that should do for you. I had intended it for some project or another,
but have never managed to find the time to prepare it.”
Pug stood in awe. “A room of my own?”
Such a thing for an apprentice was unheard of. Most apprentices slept in the
workrooms of their master, or protected herds, or the like. Only when an
apprentice became a journeyman was it usual for him to take private quarters.
Kulgan arched one bushy eyebrow. “Of
course. Can't have you underfoot all the time. I would never get anything done.
Besides, magic requires solitude for contemplation. You will need to be
untroubled as much as or perhaps more than I will.” He took out his long, thin
pipe from a fold of his robe and started to stuff it full of tabac from a pouch
that had also come from within the robe.
“Let's not bother with too much
discussion of duties and such, boy. For in truth, I am not prepared for you.
But in short order I will have things well in hand. Until then we can use the
time by becoming acquainted with one another. Agreed?” Pug was startled. He had
little notion of what a magician was about, in spite of the night spent with
Kulgan weeks ago, but he readily knew what Craftmasters were like, and none
would have thought to inquire whether or not an apprentice agreed with his
plans. Not knowing what to say, Pug just nodded.
“Good, then,” said Kulgan, “let us be off
to the tower to find you some new clothes, and then we will spend the balance
of the day feasting. Later there will be ample time to learn how to be master
and apprentice.” With a smile for the boy, the stout magician turned Pug around
and led him away.
THE LATE AFTERNOON was clear and bright,
with a gentle breeze from the sea cooling the summer heat. Throughout the keep
of Castle Crydee, and the town below, preparations for the Festival of Banapis
were in progress.
Banapis was the oldest known holiday, its
origins lost in antiquity. It was held each Midsummer's Day, a day belonging to
neither the past nor the coming year. Banapis, known by other names in other
nations, was celebrated over the entire world of Midkemia according to legend.
It was believed by some that the festival was borrowed from the elves and
dwarves, for the long-lived races were said to have celebrated the feast of
Midsummer as far back as the memory of both races could recall. Most
authorities disputed this allegation, citing no reason other than the
unlikelihood of humans borrowing anything from the elven or dwarven folk. It
was rumored that even the denizens of the Northlands, the goblin tribes and the
clans of the Brotherhood of the Dark Path, celebrated Banapis, though no one
had ever reported seeing such a celebration.
The courtyard was busy. Huge tables had
been erected to hold the myriad varieties of foods that had been in preparation
for over a week. Giant barrels of dwarven ale, imported from Stone Mountain,
had been hauled out of the cellars and were resting on protesting, overburdened
wood frames. The workmen, alarmed at the fragile appearance of the barrel
ricks, were quickly emptying some of the contents. Megar came out of the
kitchen and angrily shooed them away. “Leave off, there will be none left for
the evening meal at this rate! Back to the kitchen, dolts! There is much work
to be done yet.”
The workers went off, grumbling, and
Megar filled a tankard to ensure the ale was at proper temperature. After he
drained it dry and satisfied himself that all was as it should be, he returned
to the kitchen.
There was no formal beginning to the
feast. Traditionally, people and food, wine and ale, all accumulated until they
reached a certain density, then all at once the festivities would be in full
swing.
Pug ran from the kitchen. His room in the
north most tower, the magician's tower as it had become known, provided him
with a shortcut through the kitchen, which he used rather than the main doors
of the keep. He beamed as he sped across the courtyard in his new tunic and
trousers. He had never worn such finery and was in a hurry to show his friend
Tomas.
He found Tomas leaving the soldiers'
commons, nearly as much in a hurry as Pug. When the two met, they both spoke at
once.
“Look at the new tunic-” said Pug.
“Look at my soldier's tabard-” said
Tomas.
Both stopped and broke into laughter.
Tomas regained his composure first.
“Those are very fine clothes, Pug,” he said, fingering the expensive material
of Pug's red tunic. “And the color suits you.”
Pug returned the compliment, for Tomas
did cut a striking figure in his brown-and-gold tabard. It was of little
consequence that he wore his regular homespun tunic and trouser underneath. He
would not receive a soldier's uniform until Master Fannon was satisfied with
his worthiness as a man-at-arms.
The two friends wandered from one heavily
laden table to another. Pug's mouth watered from the rich fragrances in the
air. They came to a table heaped with meat pies, steam rising from their hot
crusts, pungent cheeses, and hot bread. At the table a young kitchen boy was
stationed with a shoo-fly. His job was to keep pests from the food, whether of
the insect variety or the chronically hungry apprentice variety. Like most
other situations involving boys, the relationship between this guardian of the
feast and the older apprentices was closely bound by tradition. It was
considered ill-mannered and in poor taste merely to threaten or bully the
smaller boy into parting with food before the start of the feast. But it was
considered fair to use guile, stealth, or speed in gaining a prize from the
table.
Pug and Tomas observed with interest as
the boy, named Jon, delivered a wicked whack to the hand of one young
apprentice seeking to snag a large pie. With a nod of his head, Tomas sent Pug
to the far side of the table. Pug ambled across Jon's field of vision, and the
boy watched him carefully. Pug moved abruptly, a feint toward the table, and
Jon leaned in his direction. Then suddenly Tomas snatched a puff-pastry from
the table and was gone before the shoo-fly lash began to descend. As they ran
from the table, Pug and Tomas could hear the distressed cries of the boy whose
table they had plundered.
Tomas gave Pug half the pie when they
were safely away, and the smaller apprentice laughed. “You're the quickest hand
in the castle, I bet.”
“Or young Jon was slow of eye for keeping
it on you.”
They shared a laugh. Pug popped his half
of the pie into his mouth.. It was delicately seasoned, and the contrast
between the salty pork filling and the sweet puff-pastry crust was delicious.
The sound of pipes and drums came from
the side courtyard as the Duke's musicians approached the main courtyard. By
the time they had emerged around the keep, a silent message seemed to pass
through the crowd. Suddenly the kitchen boys were busy handing out wooden
platters for the celebrants to heap food upon, and mugs of ale and wine were
being drawn from the barrels.
The boys dashed to a place in line at the
first table. Pug and Tomas used their size and quickness to good advantage,
darting through the throng, snagging food of every description and a large mug
of foamy ale each.
They found a relatively quiet comer and
fell to with ravenous hunger. Pug tasted his first drink of ale and was
surprised at the robust, slightly bitter taste. It seemed to warm him as it
went down, and after another experimental taste he decided that he liked it.
Pug could see the Duke and his family
mingling with the common folk. Other members of his court could also be seen
standing in line before the tables. There was no ceremony, ritual, or rank
observed this afternoon. Each was served as he arrived, for Midsummer's Day was
the time when all would equally share in the bounties of the harvest.
Pug caught a glimpse of the Princess and
felt his chest tighten a little. She looked radiant as many of the boys in the
courtyard complimented her on her appearance. She wore a lovely gown of deep
blue and a simple, broad brimmed hat of the same color. She thanked each author
of a flattering remark and used her dark eyelashes and bright smile to good
advantage, leaving a wake of infatuated boys behind.
Jugglers and clowns made their appearance
in the courtyard, the first of many groups of traveling performers who were in
the town for the festival. The actors of another company had set up a stage in
the town square and would give a performance in the evening. Until the early
hours of the next morning the festivities would continue. Pug knew that many of
the boys the year before had to be excused duty the day following Banapis, for
their heads and stomachs were in no condition for honest work. He was sure that
scene would be repeated tomorrow.
Pug looked forward to the evening, for it
was the custom for new apprentices to visit many of the houses in the town,
receiving congratulations and mugs of ale. It was also a ripe time for meeting
the town girls. While dalliance was not unknown, it was frowned upon. But
mothers tended to be less vigilant during Banapis. Now that the boys had
crafts, they were viewed less as bothersome pests and more as potential
sons-in-law, and there had been more than one of a mother looking the other way
while a daughter used her natural gifts to snare a young husband. Pug, being of
small stature and youthful appearance, got little notice from the girls of the
keep. Tomas, however, was, more and more the object of girlish flirtation as he
grew in size and good looks, and lately Pug had begun to be aware that his
friend was being sized up by one or another of the castle girls. Pug was still
young enough to think the whole thing silly, but old enough to be fascinated by
it.
Pug chewed an improbable mouthful and
looked around. People from the town and keep passed, offering congratulations
on the boys' apprenticeship and wishing them a good new year. Pug felt a deep
sense of rightness about everything. He was an apprentice, even if Kulgan
seemed completely unsure of what to do with him. He was well fed, and on his
way to being slightly intoxicated-which contributed to his sense of well-being.
And, most important, he was among friends. There can't be much more to life
than this, he thought.
Pug
sat sulking on his sleeping pallet.
Fantus the firedrake pushed his head
forward, inviting Pug to scratch him behind his eye ridges. Seeing that he
would get little satisfaction, the drake made his way to the tower window and
with a snort of displeasure, complete with a small puff of black smoke,
launched himself in flight. Pug didn't notice the creature's leaving, so
engrossed was he in his own world of troubles. Since he had taken on the
position of Kulgan's apprentice fourteen months ago, everything he had done
seemed to go wrong.
He lay back on the pallet, covering his
eyes with a forearm; he could smell the salty sea breeze that blew in through
his window and feel the sun's warmth across his legs. Everything in his life
had taken a turn for the better since his- apprenticeship, except the single
most important thing, his studies.
For months Kulgan had been laboring to
teach him the fundamentals of the magician's arts, but there was always
something that caused his efforts to awry. In the theories of spell casting,
Pug was a quick study, grasping the basic concepts well. But each time he
attempted to use his knowledge, something seemed to hold him back. It was as if
a part of his mind refused to follow through with the magic, as if a block
existed that prevented him from passing a certain point in the spell.. Each
time he tried he could feel himself approach that point, and like a rider of a
balky horse, he couldn't seem to force himself over the hurdle.
Kulgan dismissed his worries, saying that
it would all sort itself out in time. The stout magician was always sympathetic
with the boy, never reprimanding him for not doing better, for he knew the boy
was trying.
Pug was brought out of his reverie by
someone's opening the door. Looking up, he saw Father Tully entering, a large
book under his arm. The cleric's white robes rustled as he closed the door. Pug
sat up.
“Pug, it's time for your writing lesson-”
He stopped himself when he saw the downcast expression of the boy. “What's the
matter, lad?”
Pug had come to like the old priest of
Astalon. He was a strict master, but a fair one. He would praise the boy for
his success as often as scold him for his failures. He had a quick mind and a
sense of humor and was open to questions, no matter how stupid Pug thought they
might sound.
Coming to his feet, Pug sighed. “I don't
know, Father. It's just that things don't seem to be going right. Everything I
try I manage to make a mess of.”
“Pug, it can't be all black,” the priest
said, placing a hand on Pug's shoulder. “Why don't you tell me what is
troubling you, and we can practice writing some other time.” He moved to a
stool by the window and adjusted his robes around him as he sat. As he placed
the large book at his feet, he studied the boy.
Pug had grown over the last year, but was
still small. His shoulders were beginning to broaden a bit, and his face was
showing signs of the man he would someday be. He was a dejected figure in his
homespun tunic and trousers, his mood as grey as the material he wore. His
room, which was usually neat and orderly, was a mess of scrolls and books,
reflecting the disorder in his mind.
Pug sat quietly for a moment, but when
the priest said nothing, started to speak. “Do you remember my telling you that
Kulgan was trying to teach me the three basic cantrips to calm the mind, so
that the working of spells could be practiced without stress? Well, the truth
is that I mastered those exercises months ago. I can bring my mind to a state
of calm in moments now, with little effort. But that is as far as it goes.
After that, everything seems to fall apart.”
“What do you mean?”
“The next thing to learn is to discipline
the mind to do things that are not natural for it, such as think on one thing
to the exclusion of everything else, or not to think of something, which is
quite hard once you've been told what it is. I can do those things most of the
time, but now and again I feel like there are some forces inside my head,
crashing about, demanding that I do things in a different way. It's like there
was something else happening in my head than what Kulgan told me to expect.
“Each time I try one of the simple spells
Kulgan has taught me, like making an object move, or lifting myself off the
ground, these things in my head come flooding in on my concentration, and I
lose my control. I can't even master the simplest spell.” Pug felt himself
tremble, for this was the first chance he had had to speak about this to anyone
besides Kulgan. “Kulgan simply says to keep at it and not worry.” Nearing
tears, he continued, “I have talent. Kulgan said he knew it from the first time
we met, when I used the crystal. You've told me that I have talent. But I just
can't make the spells work the way they're supposed to. I get so confused by it
all.”
“Pug,” said the priest, “magic has many
properties, and we understand little of how it works, even those of us who
practice it. In the temples we are taught that magic is a gift from the gods,
and we accept that on faith. We do not understand how this can be so, but we do
not question. Each order has its own province of magic, with no two quite
alike. I am capable of magic that those who follow their orders are not. But
none can say why.
“Magicians deal in a different sort of
magic, and their practices are very different from our practices in the
temples. Much of what they do, we cannot. It is they who study the art of
magic, seeking its nature and workings, but even they cannot explain how magic
works. They only know how to work it, and pass that knowledge along to their
students, as Kulgan is doing with you.”
“Trying to do with me, Father. I think he
may have misjudged me.”
“I think not, Pug. I have some knowledge
of these things, and since you have become Kulgan's pupil, I have felt the
power growing in you. Perhaps you will come to it late, as others have, but I
am sure you will find the proper path.”
Pug was not comforted. He didn't question
the priest's wisdom or his opinion, but he did feel he could be mistaken. “I
hope you're right, Father. I just don't understand what's wrong with me.”
“I think I know what's wrong,” came a
voice from the door. Startled, Pug and Father Tully turned to see Kulgan
standing in the doorway. His blue eyes were set in lines of concern, and his
thick grey brows formed a V over the bridge of his nose. Neither Pug nor Tully
had heard the door open. Kulgan hiked his long green robe and stepped into the
room, leaving the door open.
“Come here, Pug,” said the magician with
a small wave of his hand. Pug went over to the magician, who placed both hands
on his shoulders. “Boys who sit in their rooms day after day worrying about why
things don't work make things not work. I am giving you the day for yourself.
As it is Sixthday, there should be plenty of other boys to help you in whatever
sort of trouble boys can find.” He smiled, and his pupil was filled with
relief. “You need a rest from study. Now go.” So saying, he fetched a playful
cuff to the boy's head, sending him running down the stairs. Crossing over to
the pallet, Kulgan lowered his heavy frame to it and looked at the priest.
“Boys,” said Kulgan, shaking his head. “You hold a festival, give them a badge
of craft, and suddenly they expect to be men. But they're still boys, and no
matter how hard they try, they still act like boys, not men.” He took out his
pipe and began filling it. “Magicians are considered young and inexperienced at
thirty, but in all other crafts thirty would mark a man a journeyman or master,
most likely readying his own son for the Choosing.” He put a taper to the coals
still smouldering in Pug's fire pot and lit his pipe.
Tully nodded. “I understand, Kulgan. The
priesthood also is an old man's calling. At Pug's age I still had thirteen
years of being an acolyte before me.” The old priest leaned forward. “Kulgan,
what of the boy's problem?”
“The boy's right, you know,” Kulgan
stated flatly. “There is no explanation for why he cannot perform the skills
I've tried to teach. The things he can do with scrolls and devices amaze me.
The boy has such gifts for these things, I would have wagered he had the
makings of a magician of mighty arts. But this inability to use his inner
powers . . .”
“Do you think you can find a solution?”
“I hope so. I would hate to have to
release him from apprenticeship. It would go harder on him than had I never
chosen him.” His face showed his genuine concern. “It is confusing, Tully. I
think you'll agree he has the potential for a great talent. As soon as I saw
him use the crystal in my hut that night, I knew for the first time in years I
might have at last found my apprentice. When no master chose him, I knew fate
had set our paths to cross. But there is something else inside that boy's head,
something I've never met before, something powerful. I don't know what it is,
Tully, but it rejects my exercises, as if they were somehow . . . not correct,
or . . . ill suited to him. I don't know if I can explain what I've encountered
with Pug any better. There is no simple explanation for it.”
“Have you thought about what the boy
said?” asked the priest, a look of thoughtful concern on his face.
“You mean about my having been mistaken?”
Tully nodded. Kulgan dismissed the
question with a wave of his hand. “Tully, you know as much about the nature of
magic as I do, perhaps more. Your god is not called the God Who Brought Order
for nothing. Your sect unraveled much about what orders this universe. Do you
for one moment doubt the boy has talent?”
“Talent, no. But his ability is the
question for the moment.
“Well put, as usual. Well, then, have you
any ideas? Should we make a cleric out of the boy, perhaps?”
Tully sat back, a disapproving expression
upon his face. “You know the priesthood is a calling, Kulgan,” he said stiffly.
“Put your back down, Tully. I was making
a joke.” He sighed. “Still, if he hasn't the calling of a priest, nor the knack
of a magician's craft, what can we make of this natural ability of his?”
Tully pondered the question in silence for a moment, then said,
“Have you thought of the lost art?”
Kulgan's eyes widened. “That old legend?”
Tully nodded. “I doubt there is a magician alive who at one time or another
hasn't reflected on the legend of the lost art. If it had existed, it would
explain away many of the shortcomings of our craft.” Then he fixed Tully with a
narrowed eye, showing his disapproval. “But legends are common enough. Turn up
any rock on the beach and you'll find one. I for one prefer to look for real
answers to our shortcomings, not blame them on ancient superstitions.”
Tully's expression became stem and his
tone scolding. “We of the temple do not count it legend, Kulgan! It is
considered part of the revealed truth, taught by the gods to the first men.”
Nettled by Tully's tone, Kulgan snapped,
“So was the notion the world was flat, until Rolendirk - a magician, I'll
remind you-sent his magic sight high enough to disclose the curvature of the
horizon, clearly demonstrating the world to be a sphere! It was a fact known by
almost every sailor and fisherman who'd ever seen a sail appear upon the
horizon before the rest of the ship since the beginning of time!” His voice
rose to a near shout.
Seeing Tully was stung by the reference
to ancient church canon long since abandoned, Kulgan softened his tone. “No
disrespect to you, Tully. But don't try to teach an old thief to steal. I know
your order chops logic with the best of them, and that half your brother
clerics fall into laughing fits when they hear those deadly serious young
acolytes debate theological issues set aside a century ago. Besides which,
isn't the legend of the lost art an Ishapian dogma?”
Now it was Tully's turn to fix Kulgan
with a disapproving eye. With a tone of amused exasperation, he said, “Your
education in religion is still lacking, Kulgan, despite a somewhat unforgiving
insight into the inner workings of my order.” He smiled a little. “You're right
about the moot gospel courts, though. Most of us find them so amusing because
we remember how painfully grim we were about them when we were acolytes.” Then
turning serious, he said, “But I am serious when I say your education is
lacking. The Ishapians have some strange beliefs, it's true, and they are an
insular group, but they are also the oldest order known and are recognized as
the senior church in questions pertaining to interdenominational differences.”
“Religious wars, you mean,” said Kulgan
with an amused snort.
Tully ignored the comment. “The Ishapians
are caretakers for the oldest lore and history in the Kingdom, and they have
the most extensive library in the Kingdom. I have visited the library at their
temple in Krondor, and it is most impressive.”
Kulgan smiled and with a slight tone of
condescension said, “As have 1, Tully, and I have browsed the shelves at the
Abbey of Sarth, which is ten times as large. What's the point?”
Leaning forward, Tully said, “The point
is this: say what you will about the Ishapians, but when they put forth
something as history, not lore, they can usually produce ancient tomes to
support their claims.”
“No,” said Kulgan, waving aside Tully's
comments with a dismissive wave. “I do not make light of your beliefs, or any
other man's, but I cannot accept this nonsense about lost arts. I might be
willing to believe Pug could be somehow more attuned to some aspect of magic
I'm ignorant of, perhaps something involving spirit conjuration or
illusion-areas I will happily admit I know little about-but I cannot accept
that he will never learn to master his craft because the long-vanished god of
magic died during the Chaos Wars! No, that there is unknown lore, I accept.
There are too many shortcomings in our craft even to begin to think our understanding
of magic is remotely complete. But if Pug can't learn magic, it is only because
I have failed as a teacher.”
Tully now glared at Kulgan, suddenly
aware the magician was not pondering Pug's possible shortcomings but his own.
“Now you are being foolish. You are a gifted man, and were I to have been the
one to discover Pug's talent, I could not imagine a better teacher to place him
with than yourself. But there can be no failing if you do not know what he
needs to be taught.” Kulgan began to sputter an objection, but Tully cut him
off. “No, let me continue. What we lack is understanding. You seem to forget
there have been others like Pug, wild talents who could not master their gifts,
others who failed as priests and magicians.”
Kulgan puffed on his pipe, his brow
knitted in concentration. Suddenly he began to chuckle, then laugh. Tully
looked sharply at the magician. Kulgan waved offhandedly with his pipe. “I was
just struck by the thought that should a swineherd fail to teach his son the family
calling, he could blame it upon the demise of the gods of pigs.”
Tully's eyes went wide at the
near-blasphemous thought, then he too laughed, a short bark. “That's one for
the moot gospel courts!” Both men laughed a long, tension-releasing laugh at
that. Tully sighed and stood up. “Still, do not close your mind entirely to
what I've said, Kulgan. It may be Pug is one of those wild talents. And you may
have to reconcile yourself for letting him go.
Kulgan shook his head sadly at the thought.
“I refuse to believe there is any simple explanation for those other failures,
Tully. Or for Pug's difficulties, as well. The fault was in each man or woman,
not in the nature of the universe. I have often felt where we fail with Pug is
in understanding how to reach him. Perhaps I would be well advised to seek
another master for him, place him with one better able to harness his
abilities.”
Tully sighed. “I have spoken my mind of
this question, Kulgan. Other than what I've said, I cannot advise you. Still,
as they say, a poor master's better than no master at all. How would the boy
have fared if no one had chosen to teach him?”
Kulgan bolted upright from his seat.
“What did you say?”
“I said, how would the boy have fared if
no one had chosen to teach him?”
Kulgan's eyes seemed to lose focus as he
stared into space. He began puffing furiously upon his pipe. After watching for
a moment, Tully said, “What is it, Kulgan?”
Kulgan said, “I'm not sure, Tully, but
you may have given me an idea.”
“What sort of idea?”
Kulgan waved off the question. “I'm not
entirely sure. Give me time to ponder. But consider your question, and ask
yourself this: how did the first magicians learn to use their power?”
Tully sat back down, and both men began
to consider the question in silence. Through the window they could hear the
sound of boys at play, filling the courtyard of the keep.
EVERY SIXTHDAY, THE boys and girls who
worked in the castle were allowed to spend the afternoon as they saw fit. The
boys, apprentice age and younger, were a loud and boisterous lot. The girls
worked in the service of the ladies of the castle, cleaning and sewing, as well
as helping in the kitchen. They all gave a full week's work, dawn to dusk and more,
each day, but-on the sixth day of the week they gathered in the courtyard of
the castle, near the Princess's garden. Most of the boys played a rough game of
tag, involving the capture of a ball of leather, stuffed hard with rags, by one
side, amid shoves and shouts, kicks and occasional fistfights. All wore their
oldest clothes, for rips, bloodstains, and mudstains were common.
The girls would sit along the low wall by
the Princess's garden, occupying themselves with gossip about the ladies of the
Duke's court. They nearly always put on their best skirts and blouses, and
their hair shone from washing and brushing. Both groups made a great display of
ignoring each other, and both were equally unconvincing.
Pug ran to where the game was in progress.
As was usual, Tomas was in the thick of the fray, sandy hair flying like a
banner, shouting and laughing above the noise. Amid elbows and kicks he sounded
savagely joyous as if the incidental pain made the contest all the more
worthwhile. He ran through the pack, kicking the ball high in the air, trying
to avoid the feet of those who sought to trip him. No one was quite sure how
the game had come into existence, or exactly what the rules were, but the boys
played with battlefield intensity, as their fathers had years before.
Pug ran onto the field and placed a foot
before Rulf just as he was about to hit Tomas from behind. Rulf went down in a
tangle of bodies, and Tomas broke free. He ran toward the goal and, dropping
the ball in front of himself, kicked it into a large overturned barrel, scoring
for his side. While other boys yelled in celebration, Rulf leaped to his feet
and pushed aside another boy to place himself directly in front of Pug. Glaring
out from under thick brows, he spat at Pug, “Try that again and I'll break your
legs, sand squint!” The sand squint was a bird of notoriously foul habits not
the least of which was leaving eggs in other birds' nests so that its offspring
were raised by other birds. Pug was not about to let any insult of Rulf's pass
unchallenged. With the frustrations of the last few months only a little below
the surface, Pug was feeling particularly thin-skinned this day.
With a leap he flew at Rulf's head,
throwing his left arm around the stockier boy's neck. He drove his right fist
into Rulf's face and could feel Rulf's nose squash under the first blow.
Quickly both boys were rolling on the ground. Rulf's greater weight began to
tell, and soon he sat astride Pug's chest, driving his fat fists into the
smaller boy's face.
Tomas stood by helpless, for as much as
he wanted to aid his friend, the boys' code of honor was as strict and
inviolate as any noble's. Should he intervene on his friend's behalf, Pug would
never live down the shame. Tomas jumped up and down, urging Pug on, grimacing
each time Pug was struck, as if he felt the blows himself.
Pug tried to squirm out from under the
larger boy, causing many of his blows to slip by, striking dirt instead of
Pug's face. Enough of them were hitting the mark, however, so that Pug soon
began to feel a queer detachment from the whole procedure. He thought it
strange that everybody sounded so far away, and that Rulf's blows seemed not to
hurt. His vision was beginning to fill with red and yellow colors, when he felt
the weight lifted from his chest.
After a brief moment things came into
focus, and Pug saw Prince Arutha standing over him, his hand firmly grasping
Rulf's collar. While not as powerful a figure as his brother or father, the
Prince was still able to hold Rulf high enough so that the stableboy's toes
barely touched the ground. The Prince smiled, but without humor. “I think the
boy has had enough,” he said quietly, eyes glaring. “Don't you agree?” His cold
tone made it clear he wasn't asking for an opinion. Blood still ran down Rulf's
face from Pug's initial blow as he choked out a sound the Prince took to mean
agreement. Arutha let go of Rulf's collar, and the stableboy fell backward, to
the laughter of the onlookers. The Prince reached down and helped Pug to his
feet.
Holding the wobbly boy steady, Arutha
said, “I admire your courage, youngster, but we can't have the wits beaten out
of the Duchy's finest young magician, can we?” His tone was only slightly
mocking, and Pug was too numb to do more than stand and stare at the younger
son of the Duke. The Prince gave him a slight smile and handed him over to
Tomas, who had come up next to Pug, a wet cloth in hand.
Pug came out of his fog as Tomas scrubbed
his face with the cloth, and felt even worse when he saw the Princess and
Roland standing only a few feet away as Prince Arutha returned to their side.
To take a beating before the girls of the keep was bad enough; to be punished
by a lout like Rulf in front of the Princess was a catastrophe.
Emitting a groan that had little to do
with his physical state, Pug tried to look as much like someone else as he
could. Tomas grabbed him roughly. “Try not to squirm around so much. You're not
all that bad off. Most of this blood is Rulf's anyway. By tomorrow his nose
will look like an angry red cabbage.”
“So will my head.”
“Nothing so bad. A black eye, perhaps
two, with a swollen cheek thrown in to the bargain. On the whole, you did
rather well, but next time you want to tangle with Rulf, wait until you've put
on a little more size, will you?” Pug watched as the Prince led his sister away
from the site of battle. Roland gave him a wide grin, and Pug wished himself
dead.
PUG AND TOMAS walked out of the kitchen,
dinner plates in hand. It was a warm night, and they preferred the cooling
ocean breeze to the heat of the scullery. They sat on the porch, and Pug moved
his jaw from side to side, feeling it pop in and out. He experimented with a
bite of lamb and put his plate to one side.
Tomas watched him. “Can't eat?”
Pug nodded. “Jaw hurts too much.” He
leaned forward, resting his elbows on his knees and chin on his fists. “I
should have kept my temper. Then I would have done better.”
Tomas spoke from around a mouthful of
food. “Master Fannon says a soldier must keep a cool head at all times or he'll
lose it.”
Pug sighed. “Kulgan said something like
that. I have some drills I can do that make me relax. I should have used them.”
Tomas gulped a heroic portion of his
meal. “Practicing in your room is one thing. Putting that sort of business into
use while someone is insulting you to your face is quite another. I would have
done the same thing, I suppose.”
“But you would have won.”
“Probably. Which is why Rulf would never
have come at me.” His manner showed he wasn't being boastful, merely stating
things as they were. “Still, you did all right. Old cabbage nose will think
twice before picking on you again, I'm sure, and that's what the whole thing is
about, anyway.”
Pug said, “What do you mean?”
Tomas put down his plate and belched.
With a satisfied look at the sound of it, he said, “With bullies it's always
the same: whether or not you can best them doesn't matter. What is important is
whether or not you'll stand up to them. Rulf may be big, but he's a coward
under all the bluster. He'll turn his attention to the younger boys now and
push them around a bit. I don't think he'll want any part of you again. He
doesn't like the price.” Tomas gave Pug a broad and warm smile. “That first
punch you gave him was a beaut. Right square on the beak.”
Pug felt a little better. Tomas eyed
Pug's untouched dinner. “You going to eat that?”
Pug looked at his plate. It was fully
laden with hot lamb, greens, and potatoes. In spite of the rich smell, Pug felt
no appetite. “No, you can have it.”
Tomas scooped up the platter and began
shoving the food into his mouth. Pug smiled. Tomas had never been known to
stint on food.
Pug returned his gaze to the castle wall.
“I felt like such a fool.”
Tomas stopped eating, with a handful of
meat halfway to his mouth. He studied Pug for a moment. “You too?”
“Me too, what?”
Tomas laughed. “You're embarrassed
because the Princess saw Rulf give you a thrashing.”
Pug bridled. “It wasn't a thrashing. I
gave as well as I got!”
Tomas whooped. “There! I knew it. It's
the Princess.
Pug sat back in resignation. “I suppose
it is.”
Tomas said nothing, and Pug looked over
at him. He was busy finishing off Pug's dinner. Finally Pug said, “And I
suppose you don't like her?”
Tomas shrugged. Between bites he said,
“Our Lady Carline is pretty enough, but I know my place. I have my eye on
someone else, anyway.”
Pug sat up. “Who?” he asked, his
curiosity piqued.
“I'm not saying,” Tomas said with a sly
smile.
Pug laughed. “It's Neala, right?”
Tomas's jaw dropped. “How did you know?”
Pug tried to look mysterious. “We
magicians have our ways.”
Tomas snorted. “Some magician. You're no
more a magician than I am a Knight-Captain of the King's army. Tell me, how did
you know?”
Pug laughed. “It's no mystery. Every time
you see her, you puff up in that tabard of yours and preen like a bantam rooster.”
Tomas looked troubled. “You don't think
she's on to me, do you?”
Pug smiled like a well-fed cat. “She's
not on to you, I'm sure.” He paused. “If she's blind, and all the other girls
in the keep haven't pointed it out to her a hundred times already.”
A woebegone look crossed Tomas's face.
“What must the girl think?”
Pug said, “Who knows what girls think?
From everything I can tell, she probably likes it.”
Tomas looked thoughtfully at his plate.
“Do you ever think about taking a wife?”
Pug blinked like an owl caught in a
bright light. “I . . . I never thought about it. I don't know if magicians
marry. I don't think they do.”
“Nor soldiers, mostly. But Master Fannon
says a soldier who thinks about his family is not thinking about his job.”
Tomas was silent for a minute.
Pug said, “It doesn't seem to hamper
Sergeant Gardan or some of the other soldiers.”
Tomas snorted, as if those exceptions
merely proved his point. “I sometimes try to imagine what it would be like to
have a family.”
“You have a family, stupid. I'm the
orphan here.”
“I mean a wife, rock head.” Tomas gave
Pug his best “you're too stupid to live” look. “And children someday, not a
mother and father.”
Pug shrugged. The conversation was
turning to provinces that disturbed him. He never thought about these things,
being less anxious to grow up than Tomas. He said, “I expect we'll get married
and have children if it's what we're supposed to do.”
Tomas looked very seriously at Pug, so
the younger boy didn't make light of the subject. “I've imagined a small room
somewhere in the castle, and . . . I can't imagine who the girl would be.” He
chewed his food. “There's something wrong with it, I think.”
“Wrong?”
“As if there's something else I'm not
understanding . . . I don't know.”
Pug said, “Well, if you don't, how am I
supposed to?”
Tomas suddenly changed the topic of
conversation. “We're friends, aren't we?”
Pug was taken by surprise. “Of course we're
friends. You're like a brother. Your parents have treated me like their own
son. Why would you ask something like that?”
Tomas put down his; plate, troubled. “I
don't know. It's just that sometimes I think this will all somehow change.
You're going to be a magician, maybe travel over the world, seeing other
magicians in faraway lands. I'm going to be a soldier, bound to follow my
lord's orders. I'll probably never see more than a little part of the Kingdom,
and that only as an escort in the Duke's personal guard, if I'm lucky.”
Pug became alarmed. He had never seen
Tomas so serious about anything. The older boy was always the first to laugh
and seemed never to have a worry. “I don't care what you think, Tomas,” said
Pug. “Nothing will change. We will be friends no matter what.”
Tomas smiled at that. “I hope you're
right.” He sat back, and the two boys watched the stars over the sea and the
lights from the town, framed like a picture by the castle gate.
PUG TRIED TO wash his face the next
morning, but found the task too arduous to complete. His left eye was swollen
completely shut, his right only half-open. Great bluish lumps decorated his
visage, and his jaw popped when he moved it from side to side. Fantus lay on
Pug's pallet, red eyes gleaming as the morning sun poured in through the tower
window.
The door to the boy's room swung open,
and Kulgan stepped through, his stout frame covered in a green robe. Pausing to
regard the boy for a moment, he sat on the pallet and scratched the drake
behind the eye ridges, bringing a pleased rumble from deep within Fantus's
throat. “I see you didn't spend yesterday sitting about idly,” he said.
“I had a bit of trouble, sir.”
“Well, fighting is the province of boys
as well as grown men, but I trust that the other boy looks at least as bad. It
would be a shame to have had none of the pleasure of giving as well as
receiving.”
“You're making sport of me.”
“Only a little, Pug. The truth is that in
my own youth I had my share of scraps, but the time for boyish fighting is
past. You must put your energies to better use.
“I know, Kulgan, but I have been so
frustrated lately that when that clod Rulf said what he did about my being an
orphan, all the anger came boiling up out of me.”
“Well, knowing your own part in this is a
good sign that you're becoming a man. Most boys would have tried to justify
their actions, by shifting blame or by claiming some moral imperative to
fight.”
Pug pulled over the stool and sat down,
facing the magician. Kulgan took out his pipe and started to fill it. “Pug, I
think in your case we may have been going about the matter of your education in
the wrong way.” Searching for a taper to light in the small fire that burned in
a night pot and finding none, Kulgan's face clouded as he concentrated for a
minute; then a small flame erupted from the index finger of his right hand.
Applying it to the pipe, he soon had the room half filled with great clouds of
white smoke. The flame disappeared with a wave of his hand. “A handy skill, if
you like the pipe.”
“I would give anything to be able to do
even that much,” Pug said in disgust.
“As I was saying, I think that we may
have been going about this in the wrong way. Perhaps we should consider a
different approach to your education.”
“What do you mean?”
“Pug, the first magicians long ago had no
teachers in the arts of magic. They evolved the skills that we've learned
today. Some of the old skills, such as smelling the changes in the weather, or
the ability to find water with a stick, go back to our earliest beginnings. I
have been thinking that for a time I am going to leave you to your own devices.
Study what you want in the books that I have. Keep up with your other work, learning
the scribe's arts from Tully, but I will not trouble you with any lessons for a
while. I will, of course, answer any question you have. But I think for the
time being you need to sort yourself out.”
Crestfallen, Pug asked, “Am I beyond
help?”
Kulgan smiled reassuringly. “Not in the
least. There have been cases of magicians having slow starts before. Your
apprenticeship is for nine more years, remember. Don't be put off by the
failures of the last few months.
“By the way, would you care to learn to
ride?”
Pug's mood did a complete turnabout, and
he cried, “Oh, yes! May I?”
“The Duke has decided that he would like
a boy to ride with the Princess from time to time. His sons have many duties
now that they are grown, and he feels you would be a good choice for when they
are too busy to accompany her.”
Pug's head was spinning. Not only was he
to learn to ride, a skill limited to the nobility for the most part, but to be
in the company of the Princess as well! “When do I start?”
“This very day. Morning chapel is almost
done.” Being Firstday, those inclined went to devotions either in the Keep's
chapel, or in the small temple down in the town. The rest of the day was given
to light work, only that needed to put food on the Duke's table. The boys and
girls might get an extra half day on Sixthday, but their elders rested only on
Firstday. “Go to Horsemaster Algon; he has been instructed by the Duke and will
begin your lessons now.”
Without a further word, Pug leaped up and
sped for the stables.
Pug
rode in silence.
His horse ambled along the bluffs that
overlooked the sea. The warm breeze carried the scent of flowers, and to the
east the trees of the forest swayed slowly. The summer sun caused a heat
shimmer over the ocean. Above the waves, gulls could be seen hanging in the
air, then diving to the water as they sought food. Overhead, large white clouds
drifted.
Pug remembered this morning, as he
watched the back of the Princess on her fine white palfrey. He had been kept
waiting in the stables for nearly two hours before the Princess appeared with
her father. The Duke had lectured Pug at length on his responsibility toward
the lady of the castle. Pug had stood mute throughout as the Duke repeated all
of Horsemaster Algon's instructions of the night before. The master of the
stables had been instructing him for a week and judged him ready to ride with
the Princess-if barely.
Pug had followed her out of the gate,
still marveling at his unexpected fortune. He was exuberant, in spite of having
spent the night tossing and then skipping breakfast.
Now his mood was changing from boyish
adulation to outright irritation. The Princess refused to respond to any of his
polite attempts at conversation, except to order him about. Her tone was
imperious and rude, and she insisted on calling him “boy,” ignoring several
courteous reminders that his name was Pug. She acted little like the poised
young woman of the court now, and resembled nothing as much as a spoiled,
petulant child.
He had felt awkward at first as he sat
atop the old grey dray horse that had been judged sufficient for one of his
skills. The mare had a calm nature and showed no inclination to move faster
than absolutely necessary.
Pug wore his bright red tunic, the one
that Kulgan had given to him, but still looked poorly attired next to the
Princess. She was dressed in a simple but exquisite yellow riding dress trimmed
in black, and a matching hat. Even sitting sidesaddle, Carline looked like one
born to ride, while Pug felt as if he should be walking behind his mare with a
plow between. Pug's horse had an irritating tendency to want to stop every
dozen feet to crop grass or nibble at shrubbery, ignoring Pug's frantic kicks
to the side, while the Princess's excellently trained horse responded instantly
to the slightest touch of her crop. She rode along in silence, ignoring the
grunts of exertion from the boy behind, who attempted by force of will as much
as horsemanship to keep his recalcitrant mount moving.
Pug felt the first stirring of hunger,
his dreams of romance surrendering to his normal, fifteen-year-old's appetite.
As they rode, his thoughts turned more and more to the basket of lunch that
hung from his saddle
horn.
After what seemed like an eternity to Pug, the Princess turned to him. “Boy,
what is your craft?”
Startled by the question after the long
silence, Pug stammered his reply. “I . . . I'm apprenticed to Master Kulgan.”
She fixed him with a gaze that would have
suited her had an insect been found crawling across a dinner plate. “Oh. You're
that boy.” Whatever brief spark of interest there had been went out, and she
turned away from him. They rode awhile longer, then the Princess said, “Boy, we
stop here.”
Pug pulled up his mare, and before he
could reach the Princess's side, she was nimbly down, not waiting for his hand
as Master Algon had instructed him she would. She handed him the reins of her
horse and walked to the edge of the cliffs.
She stared out to sea for a minute, then,
without looking at Pug, said, “Do you think I am beautiful?”
Pug stood in silence, not knowing what to
say. She turned and looked at him. “Well?”
Pug said, “Yes, Your Highness.”
“Very beautiful?”
“Yes, Your Highness. Very beautiful.”
The Princess seemed to consider this for
a moment, then returned her attention to the vista below. “It is important for
me to be beautiful, boy. Lady Marna says that I must be the most beautiful lady
in the Kingdom, for I must find a powerful husband someday, and only the most
beautiful ladies in the Kingdom can choose. The homely ones must take whoever
will ask for them. She says that I will have many suitors, for Father is very
important.” She turned, and for a brief moment Pug thought he saw a look of
apprehension pass over her lovely features. “Have you many friends, boy?”
Pug shrugged. “Some, Your Highness.”
She studied him for a moment, then said,
“That must be nice,” absently brushing aside a wisp of hair that had come loose
from under her broad-brimmed riding hat. Something in her seemed so wounded and
alone that moment, that Pug found his heart in his throat again. Obviously his
expression revealed something to the Princess, for suddenly her eye's narrowed
and her mood shifted from thoughtful to regal. In her most commanding voice she
announced, “We will have lunch now.” Pug quickly staked the horses and unslung
the basket. He placed it on the ground and opened it.
Carline stepped over and said, “I will
prepare the meal, boy. I'll not have clumsy hands overturning dishes and
spilling wine.” Pug took a step back as she knelt and began unpacking the
lunch. Rich odors of cheese and bread assailed Pug's nostrils, and his mouth watered.
The Princess looked up at him. “Walk the
horses over the hill to the stream and water them. You may eat as we ride back.
I'll call you when I have eaten.” Suppressing a groan, Pug took the horses'
reins and started walking. He kicked at some loose stones, emotions conflicting
within him as he led the horses along. He knew he wasn't supposed to leave the
girl, but he couldn't very well disobey her either. There was no one else in
sight, and trouble was unlikely this far from the forest. Additionally he was
glad to be away from Carline for a little while.
He reached the stream and unsaddled the
mounts; he brushed away the damp saddle and girth marks, then left their reins
upon the ground. The palfrey was trained to ground-tie, and the draft horse
showed no inclination to wander far. They cropped grass while Pug found a
comfortable spot to sit. He considered the situation and found himself
perplexed. Carline was still the loveliest girl he had ever seen, but her
manner was quickly taking the sheen off his fascination. For the moment his
stomach was of larger concern than the girl of his dreams. He thought perhaps
there was more to this love business than he had imagined.
He amused himself for a while by
speculation on that. When he grew bored, he went to look for stones in the
water. He hadn't had much opportunity to practice with his sling of late, and
now was a good time. He found several smooth stones and took out his sling. He
practiced by picking out targets among the small trees some distance off,
startling the birds in residence there. He hit several clusters of bitter
berries, missing only one target out of six. Satisfied his aim was still as
good as always, he tucked his sling in his belt. He found several more stones
that looked especially promising and put them in his pouch. He judged the girl
must be nearly through, and he started toward the horses to saddle them so that
when she called, he'd be ready.
As he reached the Princess's horse, a
scream sounded from the other side of the hill. He dropped the Princess's
saddle and raced to the crest and, when he cleared the ridge, stopped in shock.
The hair on his neck and arms stood on end.
The Princess was running, and close in
pursuit were a pair of trolls. Trolls usually didn't venture this far from the
forest, and Pug was unprepared for the sight of them. They were humanlike, but
short and broad, with long, thick arms that hung nearly to the ground. They ran
on all fours as often as not, looking like some comic parody of an ape, their
bodies covered by thick grey hide and their lips drawn back, revealing long
fangs. The ugly creatures rarely troubled a group of humans, but they would
attack a lone traveler from
time
to time.
Pug hesitated for a moment, pulling his sling
from his belt and loading a stone; then he charged down the hill, whirling his
sling above his head. The creatures had nearly overtaken the Princess when he
let fly with a stone. It caught the foremost troll in the side of the head,
knocking it for a full somersault. The second stumbled into it, and both went
down in a tangle. Pug stopped as they regained their feet, their attention
diverted from Carline to their attacker. They roared at Pug, then charged. Pug
ran back up the hill. He knew that if he could reach the horses, he could
outrun them, circle around for the girl, and be safely away. He looked over his
shoulder and saw them coming--huge canine teeth bared, long foreclaws tearing
up the ground. Downwind, he could smell their rank, rotting-meat odor.
He cleared the top of the hill, his
breath coming in ragged gasps. His heart skipped as he saw that the horses had
wandered across the stream and were
twenty yards farther away than before. Plunging down the hill, he hoped the
difference would not prove fatal.
He could hear the trolls behind him as he
entered the stream at a hill run. The water was shallow here, but still it
slowed him down.
Splashing through the stream, he caught
his foot on a stone and fell. He threw his arms forward and broke his fall with
his hands, keeping his head above water. Shock ran up through his arms as he
tried to regain his feet. He stumbled again and turned as the trolls approached
the water's edge. They howled at the sight of their tormentor stumbling in the
water and paused for a moment. Pug felt blind terror as he struggled with numb
fingers to put a stone in his sling. He fumbled and dropped the sling, and the
stream carried it away. Pug felt a scream building in his throat.
As the trolls entered the water, a flash
of light exploded behind Pug's eyes. A searing pain ripped across his forehead
as letters of grey seemed to appear in his mind. They were familiar to Pug,
from a scroll that Kulgan had shown him several times. Without thinking, he mouthed
the incantation, each word vanishing from his mind's eye as he spoke it.
When he reached the last word, the pain
stopped, and a loud roar sounded from before him. He opened his eyes and saw
the two trolls writhing in the water, their eyes wide with agony as they
thrashed about helplessly, screaming and groaning.
Dragging himself out of the water, Pug
watched while the creatures struggled. They were making choking and sputtering
noises now as they flopped about. After a moment one shook and stopped moving,
lying facedown in the water. The second took a few minutes longer to die, but
like its companion, it also drowned, unable to keep its head above the shallow
water.
Feeling light-headed and weak, Pug
recrossed the stream. His mind was numb, and everything seemed hazy and
disjointed. He stopped after he had taken a few steps, remembering the horses.
He looked about and could see nothing of the animals. They must have run off
when they caught wind of the trolls and would be on the way to safe pasture.
Pug resumed his walk to where the
Princess had been. He topped the hillock and looked around. She was nowhere in
sight, so he headed for the overturned basket of food. He was having trouble
thinking, and he was ravenous. He knew he should be doing or thinking about
something, but all he could sort out of the kaleidoscope of his thoughts was
food.
Dropping to his knees, he picked up a
wedge of cheese and stuffed it in his mouth. A half-spilled bottle of wine lay
nearby, and he washed the cheese down with it. The rich cheese and piquant
white wine revived him, and he felt his mind clearing. He ripped a large piece
of bread from a loaf and chewed on it while trying to put his thoughts in
order. As Pug recalled events, one thing stood out. Somehow he had managed to
cast a magic spell. What's more, he had done so without the aid of a book,
scroll, or device. He was not sure, but that seemed somehow strange. His
thoughts turned hazy again. More than anything he wanted to lie down and sleep,
but as he chewed his food, a thought pushed through the crazy quilt of his
impressions. The Princess!
He jumped to his feet, and his head swam.
Steadying himself, he grabbed up some bread and the wine and set off in the
direction he had last seen her running. He pushed himself along, his feet
scuffing as he tried to walk. After a few minutes he found his thinking
improving and the exhaustion lifting. He started to call the Princess's name,
then heard muted sobbing coming from a clump of bushes. Pushing his way
through, he found Carline huddled behind the shrubs, her balled fists pulled up
into her stomach. Her eyes were wide with terror, and her gown was soiled and
torn. Startled when Pug stepped into view, she jumped to her feet and flew into
his arms, burying her head in his chest. Great racking sobs shook her body as
she clutched the fabric of his shirt. Standing with his arms still
outstretched, wine and bread occupying his hands, Pug was totally confused over
what to do. He awkwardly placed his arm around the terrified girl and said,
“It's all right. They're gone. You're safe.”
She hung on to him for a moment, then,
when her tears subsided, she stepped away. With a sniffle she said, “I thought
they had killed you and were coming back for me.”
Pug found this situation more perplexing
than any he had ever known. Just when he had come through the most harrowing
experience of his young life, he was faced with one that sent his mind reeling
with a different sort of confusion. Without thinking, he held the Princess in
his arms, and now he was suddenly aware of the contact, and her soft, warm
appeal. A protective, masculine feeling welled up inside him and he started to
step toward her.
As if sensing his mood change, Carline
retreated. For all her courtly ways and education, she was still a girl of
fifteen and was disturbed by the rush of emotions she had experienced when he
had held her. She took refuge in the one thing she knew well, her role as
Princess of the castle. Trying to sound commanding, she said, “I am glad to see
you are unhurt, boy.” Pug winced visibly at that. She struggled to regain her
aristocratic bearing, but her red nose and tearstained face undermined her
attempt. “Find my horse, and we shall return to the keep.”
Pug felt as if his nerves were raw.
Keeping tight control over his voice, he said, “I'm sorry, Your Highness, but
the horses have run off. I'm afraid we'll have to walk.”
Carline felt abused and mistreated. It
was not Pug's fault any of the afternoon's events had taken place, but her
often-indulged temper seized on the handiest available object. “Walk! I can't
walk all the way to the keep,” she snapped, looking at Pug as if he were
supposed to do something about this matter at once and without question.
Pug felt all the anger, confusion, hurt,
and frustration of the day surge up within him. “Then you can bloody well sit
here until they notice you're missing and send someone to fetch you.” He was
now shouting. “I figure that will be about two hours after sunset.”
Carline stepped back, her face ashen,
looking as if she'd been slapped. Her lower lip trembled, and she seemed on the
verge of tears again. “I will not be spoken to in that manner, boy.”
Pug's eyes grew large; and he stepped toward
her, gesturing with the wine bottle. “I nearly got myself killed trying to keep
you alive,” he shouted. “Do I hear one word of thanks? No! All I hear is a
whining complaint that you can't walk back to the castle. We of the keep may be
lowborn, but at least we have enough manners to thank someone when it's
deserved.” As he spoke, he could feel the anger flooding out of him. “You can
stay here if you like, but I'm going . . . “ He suddenly realized that he was
standing with the bottle raised high overhead, in a ridiculous pose. The
Princess's eyes were, on the loaf of bread, and he realized that he was holding
it at his belt, thumb hooked in a loop, which only added to the awkward
appearance. He sputtered for a moment, then felt his anger evaporate and lowered
the bottle. The Princess looked at him, her large eyes peeking over her fists,
which she held before her face. Pug started to say something, thinking she was
afraid of him, when he saw she was laughing. It was a musical sound, warm and
unmocking. “I'm sorry, Pug,” she said, “but you look so silly standing there
like that. You look like one of those awful statues they erect in Krondor, with
bottle held high instead of a sword.”
Pug shook his head. “I'm the one who's
sorry, Your Highness. I had no right to yell at you that way. Please forgive
me.”
Her expression abruptly changed to one of
concern. “No, Pug. You had every right to say what you did. I really do owe you
my life, and I've acted horribly.” She stepped closer to him and placed a hand
on his arm. “Thank you.”
Pug was overcome by the sight of her
face. Any resolutions to rid himself of his boyhood fantasies about her were
now carried away on the sea breeze. The marvelous fact of his using magic was
replaced by more urgent and basic considerations. He started to reach for her;
then the reality of her station intruded, and he presented the bottle to her.
“Wine?”
She laughed, sensing his sudden shift in
thought. They were both wrung out and a little giddy from the ordeal, but she
still held on to her wits and understood the effect she was having on him. With
a nod she took the bottle and sipped. Recovering a shred of poise, Pug said,
“We'd better hurry. We might make the keep by nightfall.”
She nodded, keeping her eyes upon him,
and smiled. Pug was feeling uncomfortable under her gaze and turned toward the
way to the keep. “Well, then. We'd best be off.”
She fell into step beside him. After a
moment she asked, “May I have some bread too, Pug?”
PUG HAD RUN the distance between the
bluffs and the keep many times before, but the Princess was unused to walking
such distances, and her soft riding boots were ill suited to such an
undertaking. When they came into view of the castle, she had one arm draped
over Pug's shoulder and was limping badly.
A shout went up from the gate tower, and
guards came running toward them. After them came the Lady Marna, the girl's
governess, her red dress pulled up before her as she sprinted toward the
Princess. Although twice the size of court ladies-and a few of the guards as
well-she outdistanced them all. She was coming on like a she-bear whose cub was
being attacked. Her great bosom heaved with the effort as she reached the
slight girl and grasped her in a hug that threatened to engulf Carline
completely. Soon the ladies of the court were gathered around the Princess,
overwhelming her with questions. Before the din subsided, Lady Marna turned and
fell on Pug like the sow bear she resembled. “How dare you allow the Princess
to come to such a state! Limping in, dress all torn and dirty. I'll see you
whipped from one end of the keep to the other. Before I have done with you,
you'll wish you'd never seen the light of day.” Backing away before the
onslaught, Pug was overwhelmed by confusion, unable to get a word in. Sensing
that somehow Pug was responsible for the Princess's condition, one of the
guards stepped up and seized him by the arm.
“Leave him alone!”
Silence descended as Carline forced her
way between the governess and Pug. Small fists struck at the guard as he let go
of Pug and fell back with a look of astonishment on his face. “He saved my
life! He almost got killed saving me.” Tears were running down her face. “He's
done nothing wrong. And I won't have any of you bullying him.” The crowd closed
in around them, regarding Pug with newfound respect. Hushed voices sounded from
all sides, and one of the guards ran to carry the news to the castle. The
Princess placed her arm around Pug's shoulder once more and started toward the
gate. The crowd parted, and the two weary travelers could see the torches and
lanterns being lit on the wall.
By the time they had reached the
courtyard gate, the Princess had consented to let two of her ladies help her,
much to Pug's relief. He could not have believed that such a slight girl could
become such a burden. The Duke hurried out to her, having been told of
Carline's return. He embraced his daughter, then started to speak with her. Pug
lost sight of them as curious, questioning onlookers surrounded him. He tried
to push his way toward the magician's tower, but the press of people held him
back.
“Is there no work to be done?” a voice
roared.
Heads turned to see Swordmaster Fannon,
followed closely by Tomas. All the keep folk quickly retired, leaving Pug
standing before Fannon, Tomas, and those of the Duke's court with rank enough
to ignore Fannon's remark. Pug could see the Princess talking to her father,
Lyam, Arutha, and Squire Roland. Fannon said, “What happened, boy?”
Pug tried to speak, but stopped when he
saw the Duke and his sons approaching. Kulgan came hurrying behind the Duke,
having been alerted by the general commotion in the courtyard. All bowed to the
Duke when he approached, and Pug saw Carline break free of Roland's
solicitations and follow her father, to stand at Pug's side. Lady Marna threw a
besieged look heavenward, and Roland followed the girl, an open expression of
surprise upon his face. When the Princess took Pug's hand in her own, Roland's
expression changed to one of black-humored jealousy.
The Duke said, “My daughter has said some
very remarkable things about you, boy. I would like to hear your account.” Pug
felt suddenly selfconscious and gently disengaged his hand from Carline's. He
recounted the events of the day, with Carline enthusiastically adding
embellishments. Between the two of them, the Duke gained a nearly accurate
account of things. When Pug finished, Lord Borric asked, “How is it the trolls
drowned in the stream, Pug?”
Pug looked uncomfortable. “I cast a spell upon them, and they were
unable to reach the shore,' he said softly. He was still confused by this
accomplishment and had not given much thought to it, as the Princess had pushed
all other thoughts aside. He could see surprise registered on Kulgan's face.
Pug began to say something, but was interrupted by the Duke's next remark.
“Pug, I can't begin to repay the service
you've done my family. But I shall find a suitable reward for your courage.” In
a burst of enthusiasm Carline threw her arms around Pug's neck, hugging him
fiercely. Pug stood in embarrassment, looking frantically about, as if trying
to communicate that this familiarity was none of his doing.
Lady Marna looked ready to faint, and the
Duke pointedly coughed, motioning with his head for his daughter to retire. As
she left with the Lady Marna, Kulgan and Fannon simply let their amusement
show, as did Lyam and Arutha. Roland shot Pug an angry, envious look, then
turned and headed off toward his own quarters. Lord Borric said to Kulgan,
“Take this boy to his room. He looks exhausted. I'll order food sent to him.
Have him come to the great hall after tomorrow's morning meal.” He turned to
Pug. “Again, I thank you.” The Duke motioned for his sons to follow and walked
away. Fannon gripped Tomas by the elbow, for the sandy-haired boy had started
to speak with his friend. The old Swordmaster motioned with his head that the
boy should come with him, leaving Pug in peace. Tomas nodded, though he was burning
with a thousand questions.
When they had all left, Kulgan placed his
arm around the boy's shoulder. “Come, Pug. You're tired, and there is much to
speak of.”
PUG LAY BACK on his pallet, the remains
of his meal lying on a platter next to him. He couldn't remember ever having
been this tired before. Kulgan paced back and forth across the room. “It's
absolutely incredible.” He waved a hand in the air, his red robe surging over
his heavy frame like water flowing over a boulder. “You close your eyes, and
the image of a scroll you saw weeks before appears. You incant the spell, as if
you were holding the scroll in your hand before you, and the trolls fall.
Absolutely incredible.” Sitting down on the stool near the window, he
continued. “Pug, nothing like this has ever been done before. Do you know what
you've done?”
Pug started from the edge of a warm, soft
sleep and looked at the magician. “Only what I said I did, Kulgan.”
“Yes, but do you have any idea what it
means?”
“No.”
“Neither do I.” The magician seemed to collapse inside as his
excitement left, replaced by complete uncertainty. “I don't have the slightest
idea what it all means. Magicians don't toss spells off the top of their heads.
Clerics can, but they have a different focus and different magic. Do you
remember what I taught you about focuses, Pug?”
Pug winced, not being in the mood to
recite a lesson, but forced himself to sit up. “Anyone who employs magic must
have a focus for the power he uses. Priests have power to focus their magic
through prayer; their incantations are a form of prayer. Magicians use their
bodies, or devices, or books and scrolls.”
“Correct,” said Kulgan, “but you have
just violated that truism.” He took out his long pipe and absently stuffed
tabac into the bowl. “The spell you incanted cannot use the caster's body as a
focus. It has been developed to inflict great pain upon another. It can be a
very terrible weapon. But it can be cast only by reading from a scroll that it
is written upon, at the time it's cast. Why is this?”
Pug forced leaden eyelids open. “The
scroll itself is magic.”
“True. Some magic is intrinsic to the
magician, such as taking on the shape of an animal or smelling weather. But
casting spells outside the body, upon something else, needs an external focus.
Trying to incant the spell you used from memory should have produced terrible
pain in you, not the trolls, if it would have worked at all! That is why
magicians developed scrolls, books, and other devices, to focus that sort of
magic in a way that will not harm the caster. And until today, I would have
sworn that no one alive could have made that spell work without the scroll in
hand.”
Leaning against the windowsill, Kulgan
puffed on his pipe for a moment, gazing out into space. “It's as if you have
discovered a completely new form of magic,” he said softly. Hearing no
response, Kulgan looked down at the boy, who was deeply asleep. Shaking his
head in wonder, the magician pulled a cover over the exhausted boy. He put out
the lantern that hung on the wall and let himself out. As he walked up the
stairs to his own room, he shook his head. “Absolutely incredible.”
PUG WAITED AS the Duke held court in the
great hall. Everyone in the keep and town who could contrive a way to gain
entrance to the audience was there. Richly dressed Craftmasters, merchants, and
minor nobles were in attendance. They stood regarding the boy with expressions
ranging from wonder to disbelief. The rumor of his deed had spread through the
town and had grown in the telling.
Pug wore new clothing, which had been in
his room when he awoke. In his newfound splendor he felt selfconscious and
awkward. The tunic was a bright yellow affair of the costliest silk, and the
hose were a soft pastel blue. Pug tried to wiggle his toes in the new boots,
the first he had ever worn. Walking in them seemed strange and uncomfortable.
At his side a jeweled dagger hung from a black leather belt with a golden
buckle in the form of a gull in flight. Pug suspected the clothing had once
belonged to one of the Duke's sons, put aside when outgrown, but still looking
new and beautiful.
The Duke was finishing the morning's
business: a request from one of the shipwrights for guards to accompany a
lumber expedition to the great forest. Borric was dressed, as usual in black,
but his sons and daughter wore their finest court regalia. Lyam was listening
closely to the business before his father. Roland stood behind him, as was the
custom. Arutha was in rare good humor, laughing behind an upraised hand at some
quip Father Tully had just made. Carline sat quietly, her face set in a warm
smile, looking directly at Pug, which was adding to his discomfort-and Roland's
irritation.
The Duke gave his permission for a
company of guards to accompany the craftsmen into the forest. The Craftmaster
gave thanks and bowed, then returned to the crowd, leaving Pug alone before the
Duke. The boy stepped forward as Kulgan had told him to do and bowed properly,
albeit a little stiffly, before the Lord of Crydee. Borric smiled at the boy
and motioned to Father Tully. The priest removed a document from the sleeve of
his voluminous robe and handed it to a herald. The herald stepped forward and
unrolled the scroll.
In a loud voice he read: “To all within
our demesne: Whereas the youth Pug, of the castle of Crydee, has shown
exemplary courage in the act of risking life and limb in defense of the royal
person of the Princess Carline, and; Whereas the youth, Pug of Crydee, is
considered to hold us forever in his debt; It is my wish that he be known to
all in the realm as our beloved and loyal servant, and it is furthermore wished
that he be given a place in the court of Crydee, with the rank of Squire, with
all rights and privileges pertaining thereunto. Furthermore let it be known
that the title for the estate of Forest Deep is conferred upon him and his
progeny as long as they shall live, to have and to hold, with servants and
properties thereupon. Title to this estate shall be held by the crown until the
day of his majority. Set this day by my hand and seal Borric conDoin, third
Duke of Crydee; Prince of the Kingdom; Lord of Crydee, Carse, and Tulan; Warden
of the West; KnightGeneral of the King's Armies; heir presumptive to the throne
of Rillanon.”
Pug felt his knees go slack but caught
himself before he fell. The room erupted in cheers. People were pressing around
him, offering their congratulations and slapping him on the back. He was a
Squire and a landholder with franklins, a house, and stock. He was rich. Or at
least he would be in three years when he reached his majority. While he was
considered a man of the Kingdom at fourteen, grants of land and titles couldn't
be conferred until he reached eighteen. The crowd backed away as the Duke
approached, his family and Roland behind. Both Princes smiled at Pug, and the
Princess seemed positively aglow. Roland gave Pug a rueful smile, as if in
disbelief.
“I'm honored, Your Grace,” Pug stammered.
“I don't know what to say.”
“Then say nothing, Pug. It makes you seem
wise when everyone is babbling. Come, and we'll have a talk.” The Duke motioned
for a chair to be placed near his own, as he put an arm around the boy's
shoulders and walked him through the crowd. Sitting down, he said, “You may all
leave us now. I would speak with the Squire.” The crowd pressing around
muttered in disappointment, but began to drift out of the hall. “Except you
two,” the Duke added, pointing toward Kulgan and Tully.
Carline stood by her father's chair, a
hesitant Roland at her side. “You as well, my child,” said the Duke.
Carline began to protest, but was cut off
by her father's stern admonition: “You may pester him later, Carline.” The two
Princes stood at the door, obviously amused at her outrage; Roland tried to
offer his arm to the Princess, but she pulled away and swept by her grinning
brothers. Lyam clapped Roland on the shoulder as the embarrassed Squire joined
them. Roland glared at Pug, who felt the anger like a blow.
When the doors clanged closed and the
hall was empty, the Duke said, “Pay no heed to Roland, Pug. My daughter has him
firmly under her spell; he counts himself in love with her and wishes someday
to petition for her hand.” With a lingering look at the closed door, he added
almost absently, “But he'll have to show me he's more than the rakehell he's
growing into now if he ever hopes for my consent.”
The Duke dismissed the topic with a wave
of his hand. “Now, to other matters. Pug, I have an additional gift for you,
but first I want to explain something to you.
“My family is among the oldest in the
Kingdom. I myself am descended from a King, for my grandfather, the first Duke
of Crydee, was third son to the King. Being of royal blood, we are much
concerned with matters of duty and honor. You are now both a member of my court
and apprentice of Kulgan. In matters of duty you are responsible to him. In
matters of honor you are responsible to me. This room is hung with the trophies
and banners of our triumphs. Whether we have been resisting the Dark
Brotherhood in their ceaseless effort to destroy us, or fighting off pirates,
we have ever fought bravely. Ours is a proud heritage that has never known the
stain of dishonor. No member of our court has ever brought shame to this hall,
and I will expect the same of you.”
Pug nodded, tales of glory and honor
remembered from his youth spinning in his mind. The Duke smiled. “Now to the
business of your other gift. Father Tully has a document that I asked him to
draw up last night. I am going to ask him to keep it, until such time as he
deems fit to give it to you. I will say no more on the subject, except that
when he gives it to you, I hope you will remember this day and consider long
what it says.”
“I will, Your Grace.” Pug was sure the
Duke was saying something very important, but with all the events of the last
half hour, it did not register very well.
“I will expect you for supper, Pug. As a
member of the court, you will not be eating meals in the kitchen anymore.” The
Duke smiled at him. “We'll make a young gentleman out of you, boy. And someday
when you travel to the King's city of Rillanon, no one will fault the manners
of those who come from the court of Crydee.”
The breeze was cool.
The last days of summer had passed, and
soon the rains of autumn would come. A few weeks later the first snows of
winter would follow. Pug sat in his room, studying a book of ancient exercises
designed to ready the mind for spell casting. He had fallen back into his old
routine once the excitement of his elevation to the Duke's court had worn off.
His marvelous feat with the trolls
continued to be the object of speculation by Kulgan and Father Tully. Pug found
he still couldn't do many of the things expected of an apprentice, but other
feats were beginning to come to him. Certain scrolls were easier to use now,
and once, in secret, he had tried to duplicate his feat.
He had memorized a spell from a book, one
designed to levitate objects. He had felt the familiar blocks in his mind when
he tried to incant it from memory. He had failed to move the object, a
candleholder, but it trembled for a few seconds and he felt a brief sensation,
as if he had touched the holder with a part of his mind. Satisfied that some
sort of progress was being made, he lost much of his former gloom and renewed
his studies with vigor.
Kulgan still let him find his own pace.
They had had many long discussions on the nature of magic, but mostly Pug
worked in solitude.
Shouting came from the courtyard below.
Pug walked to his window. Seeing a familiar figure, he leaned out and cried,
“Ho! Tomas! What is afoot?” Tomas looked up.
“Ho! Pug! A ship has foundered in the
night. The wreck has beached beneath Sailor's Grief. Come and see!
“I'll be right down.”
Pug ran to the door, pulling on a cloak,
for while the day was clear, it would be cold near the water. Racing down the
stairs, he cut through the kitchen, nearly knocking over Alfan, the pastry
cook. As he bolted out the door, he heard the stout baker yell, “Squire or not,
I'll box your ears if you don't watch where you're going, boy!” The kitchen
staff had not changed their attitude toward the boy, whom they considered one
of their own, beyond feeling proud of his achievement.
Pug shouted back with laughter in his
voice, “My apologies, Mastercook!”
Alfan gave him a good-natured wave as Pug
vanished through the outside door and around the corner to where Tomas was
waiting. Tomas turned toward the gate as soon as he saw his friend.
Pug grabbed his arm. “Wait. Has anyone
from the court been told?”
“I don't know. Word just came from the
fishing village a moment ago,” Tomas said impatiently. “Come on, or the
villagers will pick the wreck clean.” It was commonly held that salvage could
be legally carried away before any of the Duke's court arrived. As a result,
the villagers and townsfolk were less than timely in informing the authorities
of such occurrences. There was also a risk of bloodshed, should the beached
ship still be manned by sailors determined to keep their master's cargo intact
so that they would get their fair sailing bonus. Violent confrontation, and
even death, had been the result of such dispute. Only the presence of
men-at-arms could guarantee no commoner would come to harm from lingering
mariners.
“Oh, no,” said Pug. “If there is any
trouble down there and the Duke finds out I didn't tell someone else, I'll be
in for it.”
“Look, Pug. Do you think with all these
people rushing about, the Duke will be long in hearing of it?” Tomas ran his
hand through his hair. “Someone is probably in the great hall right now,
telling him the news. Master Fannon is away on patrol, and Kulgan won't be back
awhile yet. Kulgan was due back later that day from his cottage in the forest,
where he and Meecham had spent the last week. “It may be our only chance to see
a shipwreck.” A look of sudden inspiration came over his face. “Pug, I have it!
You're a member of the court now. Come along, and when we get there, you
declare for the Duke.” A calculating expression crossed his face. “And if we
find a rich bauble or two, who's to know?”
“I would know.” Pug thought a moment. “I
can't properly declare for the Duke, then take something for myself . . .” He
fixed Tomas with a disapproving expression. “. . . or let one of his
men-at-arms take something either.” As Tomas's face showed his embarrassment,
Pug said, “But we can still see the wreck! Come on!”
Pug
was suddenly taken with the idea of using his new office, and if he could get
there before too much was carried away or someone was hurt, the Duke would be
pleased with him. “All right,” he said, “I'll saddle a horse and we can ride
down there before everything is stolen.” Pug turned and ran for the stable.
Tomas caught up with him as he opened the large wooden doors. “But, Pug, I have
never been on a horse in my life. I don't know how.”
“It's simple,” Pug said, taking a bridle
and saddle from the tack room. He spied the large grey he had ridden the day he
and the Princess had their adventure. “I'll ride and you sit behind me. Just
keep your arms around my waist, and you won't fall off.”
Tomas looked doubtful. “I'm to depend on
you?” He shook his head. “After all, who has looked after you all these years?”
Pug threw him a wicked smile. “Your
mother. Now fetch a sword from the armory in case there's trouble. You may get
to play soldier yet.”
Tomas looked pleased at the prospect and
ran out the door. A few minutes later the large grey with the two boys mounted
on her back lumbered out the main gate, heading down the road toward Sailor's
Grief.
THE SURF WAS pounding as the boys came in
sight of the wreckage. Only a few villagers were approaching the site, and they
scattered as soon as a horse and rider appeared, for it could only be a noble
from the court to declare the wreck's salvage for the Duke. By the time Pug
reined in, no one was about.
Pug said, “Come on. We've got a few
minutes to look around before anyone else gets here.”
Dismounting, the boys left the mare to
graze in a little stand of grass only fifty yards from the rocks. Running
through the sand, the boys laughed, with Tomas raising the sword aloft, trying
to sound fierce as he yelled old war cries learned from the sagas. Not that he
had any delusions about his ability to use it, but it might make someone think
twice about attacking them -- at least long enough for castle guards to arrive.
As they neared the wreck, Tomas whistled
a low note. “This ship didn't just run on the rocks, Pug. It looks like it was
driven by a storm.”
Pug said, “There certainly isn't much
left, is there?”
Tomas scratched behind his right ear.
“No, just a section of the bow. I don't understand. There wasn't any storm last
night, just a strong wind. How could the ship be broken up so badly?”
“I don't know.” Suddenly something
registered on Pug. “Look at the bow. See how it's painted.”
The bow rested on the rocks, held there
until the tide rose. From the deck line down, the hull was painted a bright
green, and it shone with reflected sunlight, as if it had been glazed over.
Instead of a figurehead, intricate designs were painted in bright yellow, down
to the waterline, which was a dull black. A large blue-and-white eye had been
painted several feet behind the prow, and all the above-deck railing that they
could see was painted white.
Pug grabbed Tomas's arm. “Look!” He
pointed to the water behind the prow, and Tomas could see a shattered white
mast extending a few feet above the surging foam.
Tomas took a step closer. “It's no
Kingdom ship, for certain.” He turned to Pug. “Maybe they were from Queg?”
“No,” answered Pug. “You've seen as many
Quegan ships as I have. This is nothing from Queg or the Free Cities. I don't
think a ship like this has ever passed these waters before. Let's look around.”
Tomas seemed suddenly timid. “Careful,
Pug. There is something strange here, and I have an ill feeling. Someone may
still be about.”
Both boys looked around for a minute,
before Pug concluded, “I think not; whatever snapped that mast and drove the
ship ashore with enough force to wreck it this badly must have killed any who
tried to ride her in.”
Venturing closer, the boys found small
articles lying about, tossed among the rocks by the waves. They saw broken
crockery and boards, pieces of torn red sailcloth, and lengths of rope. Pug
stopped and picked up a strange looking dagger fashioned from some unfamiliar
material. It was a dull grey and was lighter than steel, but still quite sharp.
Tomas tried to pull himself to the
railing, but couldn't find a proper footing on the slippery rocks. Pug moved
along the hull until he found himself in danger of having his boots washed by
the tide; they could board the hulk if they waded into the sea, but Pug was
unwilling to ruin his good clothing. He walked back to where Tomas stood
studying the wreck.
Tomas pointed behind Pug. “If we climb up
to that ledge, we could lower ourselves down to the deck.”
Pug saw the ledge, a jutting single piece
of stone that started twenty feet back on their left, extending upward and out
to overhang the bow. It looked like an easy climb, and Pug agreed. They pulled
themselves up and inched along the ledge, backs flat to the base of the bluffs.
The path was narrow, but by stepping carefully, they ran little risk of
falling. They reached a point above the hull; Tomas pointed. “Look. Bodies!”
Lying on the deck were two men, both
dressed in bright blue armor of unfamiliar design. One had his head crushed by
a fallen spar, but the other, lying facedown, didn't show any injuries, beyond
his stillness. Strapped across that man's back was an alien looking broadsword,
with strange serrated edges. His head was covered by an equally alien-looking
blue helmet, potlike, with an outward flaring edge on the sides and back. Tomas
shouted over the sound of the surf, “I'm going to let myself down. After I get
on the deck, hand me the sword, and then lower yourself so I can grab you.”
Tomas handed Pug the sword, then turned
around slowly. He knelt with his face against the cliff wall. Sliding backward,
he let himself down until he was almost hanging free. With a shove he dropped
the remaining four feet, landing safely. Pug reversed the sword and handed it
down to Tomas, then followed his friend's lead, and in a moment they both stood
on the deck. The foredeck slanted alarmingly down toward the water, and they could
feel the ship move beneath their feet.
“The tide's rising,” Tomas shouted.
“It'll lift what's left of the ship and smash it on the rocks. Everything will
be lost.”
“Look around,” Pug shouted back.
“Anything that looks worth saving we can try to throw up on the ledge.”
Tomas nodded, and the boys started to
search the deck. Pug put as much space as he could between the bodies and
himself when he passed them. All across the deck, debris created a confused
spectacle for the eye. Trying to discern what might prove valuable and what
might not was difficult. At the rear of the deck was a shattered rail, on
either side of a ladder to what was left of the main deck below: about six feet
of planking remaining above the water. Pug was sure that only a few feet more
could be underwater, or else the ship would be higher on the rocks. The rear of
the ship must have already been carried away on the tide.
Pug lay down on the deck and hung his
head over the edge. He saw a door to the right of the ladder. Yelling for Tomas
to join him, he made his way carefully down the ladder. The tower deck was
sagging, the undersupports having been caved in. He grasped the handrail of the
ladder for support. A moment later Tomas stood beside him, stepped around Pug,
and moved to the door. It hung halfopen, and he squeezed through with Pug a
step behind. The cabin was dark, for there was only a single port on the
bulkhead next to the door. In the gloom they could see many rich-looking pieces
of fabric and the shattered remnants of a table. What looked like a cot or low
bed lay upside down in a corner. Several small chests could be seen, with their
contents spread around the room as if tossed about by some giant hand.
Tomas tried to search through the mess,
but nothing was recognizable as important or valuable. He found one small bowl
of unusual design glazed with bright colored figures on the sides, and he put
it inside his tunic.
Pug stood quietly, for something in the
cabin commanded his attention. A strange, urgent feeling had overtaken him as
soon as he had stepped in.
The wreck lurched, throwing Tomas off
balance. He caught himself on a chest, dropping the sword. “The ship's lifting.
We'd better go.”
Pug didn't answer, his attention focused
on the strange sensations. Tomas grabbed his arm. “Come on. The ship'll break
up in a minute.”
Pug shook his hand off. “A moment. There
is something . . .” His voice trailed off. Abruptly he crossed the disordered
room and pulled open a drawer in a latched chest. It was empty. He yanked open
another, then a third. In it was the object of his search. He drew out a rolled
parchment with a black ribbon and black seal on it and thrust it into his
shirt.
“Come on,” he shouted as he passed Tomas.
They raced up the ladder and scrambled over the deck. The tide had raised the
ship high enough for them to pull themselves up to the ledge with ease, and
they turned to sit.
The ship was now floating on the tide,
rocking forward and back, while the waves sent a wet spray into the boys'
faces. They watched as the bow slid off the rocks, timbers breaking with a loud
and deep tearing sound, like a dying moan. The bow lifted high, and the boys
were splashed by waves striking the cliffs below their ledge.
Out to sea the hulk floated, slowly leaning over to its port side, until
the outward surging tide came to a halt.
Ponderously, it started back toward the
rocks. Tomas grabbed at Pug's arm, signaling him to follow. They got up and
made their way back to the beach. When they reached the place where the rock
overhung the sand, they jumped down.
A loud grinding sound made them turn to
see the hull driven onto the rocks. Timbers shattered, and separated with a
shriek. The hull heaved to starboard, and debris started sliding off the deck
into the sea.
Suddenly Tomas reached over and caught
Pug's arm. “Look.” He pointed at the, wreck sliding backward on the tide.
Pug couldn't make out what he was
pointing at. “What is it?”
“I thought for a moment there was only
one body on deck.”
Pug looked at him. Tomas's face was set
in an expression of worry. Abruptly it changed to anger. “Damn!”
“What?”
“When I fell in the cabin, I dropped the
sword. Fannon will have my ears.”
A sound like an explosion of thunder
marked the final destruction of the wreck as the tide smashed it against the
cliff face. Now the shards of the once fine, if alien, ship would be swept out
to sea, to drift back in along the coast for miles to the south over the next
few days.
A low groan ending in a sharp cry made
the boys turn. Standing behind them was the missing man from the ship, the
strange broadsword held loosely in his left hand and dragging in the sand. His
right arm was held tightly against his side; blood could be seen running from
under his blue breastplate, and from under his helmet. He took a staggering
step forward. His face was ashen, and his eyes wide with pain and confusion. He
shouted something incomprehensible at the boys. They stepped back slowly,
raising their hands to show they were unarmed.
He took another step toward them, and his
knees sagged. He staggered erect and closed his eyes for a moment. He was short
and stocky, with powerfully muscled arms and legs. Below the breastplate he
wore a short skirt of blue cloth. On his forearms were bracers, and on his
legs, greaves that looked like leather, above thonged sandals. He put his hand
to his face and shook his head. His eyes opened, and he regarded the boys again.
Once more he spoke in his alien tongue. When the boys said nothing, he appeared
to grow angry and yelled another series of strange words, from the tone
seemingly questions.
Pug gauged the distance necessary to run
past the man, who blocked the narrow strip of beach. He decided it wasn't worth
the risk of finding out if the man was in a condition to use that
wicked-looking sword. As if sensing the boy's thoughts, the soldier staggered a
few feet to his right, cutting off any escape. He closed his eyes again, and
what little color there was in his face drained away. His gaze began to wander,
and the sword slipped from limp fingers. Pug started to take a step toward him,
for it was now obvious that he could do them no harm.
As he neared the man, shouts sounded up
the beach. Pug and Tomas saw Prince Arutha riding before a troop of horsemen.
The wounded soldier turned his head painfully at the sound of approaching
horses, and his eyes widened. A look of pure horror crossed his face, and he
tried to flee. He took three staggering steps toward the water and fell forward
into the sand.
PUG STOOD NEAR the door of the Duke's
council chamber. Several feet away a concerned group sat at Duke Borric's round
council table. Besides the Duke and his sons, Father Tully, Kulgan, who had
returned only an hour before, Swordmaster Fannon, and Horsemaster Algon sat in
assembly. The tone was serious, for the arrival of the alien ship was viewed as
potentially dangerous to the Kingdom.
Pug threw a quick glance at Tomas,
standing on the opposite side of the door. Tomas had never been in the presence
of nobility, other than serving in the dining hall, and being in the Duke's
council chamber was making him nervous. Master Fannon spoke, and Pug returned
his attention to the table.
“Reviewing what we know,” said the old
Swordmaster, “it is obvious that these people are completely alien to us.” He
picked up the bowl Tomas had taken from the ship. “This bowl is fashioned in a
way unknown to our Masterpotter. At first he thought it was simply a fired and
glazed clay, but upon closer inspection it proved otherwise. It is fashioned
from some sort of hide, parchment-thin strips being wound around a mold –
perhaps wood –- then laminated with resins of some type. it is much stronger
than anything we know.”
To demonstrate, he struck the bowl hard
against the table. Instead of shattering, as a day bowl would have, it made a
dull sound. “Now, even more perplexing are these weapons and armor.” He pointed
to the blue breastplate, helmet, sword, and dagger. “They appear to be
fashioned in a similar manner.” He lifted the dagger and let it drop. It made
the same dull sound as the bowl. “For all its lightness, it is nearly as strong
as our best steel.”
Borric nodded. “Tully, you've been around
longer than any of us. Have you heard of any ship constructed like that?”
“No.” Tully absently stroked his
beardless chin. “Not from the Bitter Sea, the Kingdom Sea, or even from Great
Kesh have I heard of such a ship. I might send word to the Temple of Ishap in
Krondor. They have records that go further back than any others. Perhaps they
have some knowledge of these people.”
The Duke nodded. “Please do. Also we must
send word to the elves and dwarves. They have abided here longer than we by
ages, and we would do well to seek their wisdom.”
Tully indicated agreement. “Queen
Aglaranna might have knowledge of these people if they are travelers from
across the Endless Sea. Perhaps they have visited these shores before.”
“Preposterous,” snorted Horsemaster
Algon. “There are no nations across the Endless Sea. Otherwise it wouldn't be
endless.”
Kulgan took on an indulgent expression.
“There are theories that other lands exist across the Endless Sea. It is only
that we have no ships capable of making such a long journey.”
“Theories,'' was all Algon said.
“Whoever these strangers are,” said
Arutha, “we had best make sure we can find out as much as possible about them.”
Algon and Lyam gave him a questioning
took, while Kulgan and Tully looked on without expression. Borric and Fannon
nodded as Arutha continued. “From the boys' description, the ship was obviously
a warship. The heavy prow with bowsprit is designed for ramming, and the high
foredeck is a perfect place for bowmen, as the low middle deck is suitable for
boarding other vessels when they have been grappled. I would imagine the rear
deck was also high. If more of the hull had survived, I would guess we would
have found rowers' benches as well.”
“A war galley?” asked Algon.
Fannon looked impatient. “Of course, you
simpleton.” There was a friendly rivalry between the two masters, which at
times degenerated to some unfriendly bickering. “Take a look at our guest's
weapon.” He indicated the broadsword. “How would you like to ride at a
determined man wheeling that toy? He'd cut your horse right out from under you.
That armor is light, and efficiently constructed for all its gaudy coloring. I
would guess that he was infantry. As powerfully built as he is, he probably
could run half a day and still fight.” He stroked his mustache absently. “These
people have some warriors among them.”
Algon nodded slowly. Arutha sat back in
his chair, making a tent of his hands, fingertips flexing. “What I can't
understand,” said the Duke's younger son, “is why he tried to run. We had no
weapons drawn and were not charging. There was no reason for him to run. “
Borric looked at the old priest. “Will we
ever know?”
Tully looked concerned, his brow
furrowed. “He had a long piece of wood embedded in his right side, under the
breastplate, as well as a bad blow to the head. That helmet saved his skull. He
has a high fever and has lost a great deal of blood. He may not survive. I may
have to resort to a mind contact, if he regains enough consciousness to
establish it.” Pug knew of the mind contact; Tully had explained it to him
before. It was a method only a few clerics could employ, and it was extremely
dangerous for both the subject and the caster. The old priest must feel a
strong need to gain information from the injured man to risk it.
Borric turned his attention to Kulgan.
“What of the scroll the boys found?”
Kulgan waved a hand absently. “I have
given a preliminary, and brief, inspection. It has magical properties without a
doubt. That is why Pug felt some compulsion to inspect the cabin and that
chest, I think. Anyone as sensitive to magic as he is would feel it.” He looked
directly at the Duke. “I am, however, unwilling to break the seal until I have
made a more involved study of it, to better determine its purpose. Breaking
enchanted seals can be dangerous if not handled properly. If the seal was
tampered with, the scroll might destroy itself, or worse, those trying to break
it. It wouldn't be the first such trap I've seen for a scroll of great power.
The Duke drummed his fingers on the table
for a moment. “All right. We will adjourn this meeting. As soon as something
new has been learned, either from the scroll or from the wounded man, we will
reconvene.” He turned to Tully. “See how the man is, and if he should wake, use
your arts to glean whatever you can.” He stood, and the others rose also.
“Lyam, send word to the Elf Queen and the dwarves at Stone Mountain and the Grey
Towers of what has happened. Ask for their counsel.”
Pug opened the door. The Duke went
through and the others followed. Pug and Tomas were the last to leave, and as
they walked down the hall, Tomas leaned over toward Pug.
“We really started something.”
Pug shook his head. “We were simply the
first to find the man. If not us, then someone else.”
Tomas looked relieved to be out of the
chamber and the Duke's scrutiny. “If this turns out badly, I hope they remember
that.”
Kulgan went up the stairs to his tower
room as Tully moved off toward his own quarters, where the wounded man was
being tended by Tully's acolytes. The Duke and his sons turned through a door
to their private quarters, leaving the boys alone in the hallway.
Pug and Tomas cut through a storage room, and into the kitchen. Megar
stood supervising the kitchen workers, several of whom waved greetings to the
boys. When he saw his son and fosterling, he smiled and said, “Well, what have
you two gotten yourselves into now?” Megar was a loose-jointed man, with sandy
hair and an open countenance. He resembled Tomas, as a rough sketch resembled a
finished drawing. He was a fair-looking man of middle years, but lacked the
fine features that set Tomas apart.
Grinning, Megar said, “Everyone is hushed
up about that man in Tully's quarters, and messengers are dashing from here to
there, one place to another. I haven't seen such a to-do since the Prince of
Krondor visited seven years ago!”
Tomas grabbed an apple from a platter and
jumped up to sit on a table. Between bites he recounted to his father what had
taken place.
Pug leaned on the counter while
listening. Tomas told the story with a minimum of embellishment. When he was
done, Megar shook his head. “Well, well. Aliens, is it? I hope they're not
marauding pirates. We have had peaceful enough times lately. Ten years since
the time the Brotherhood of the Dark Path” -- he gestured spitting -- “curse
their murderous souls, stirred up that trouble with the goblins. Can't say as
I'd welcome that sort of mess again, sending all those stores to the outlying
villages. Having to cook based on what will spoil first and what will last
longest. I couldn't make a decent meal for a month.”
Pug smiled. Megar had the ability to take
even the most difficult possibilities and break them down to basics: how much
inconvenience they were likely to cause the scullery staff.
Tomas jumped down from the counter. “I
had best return to the soldiers' commons and wait for Master Fannon. I'll see
you soon.” He ran from the kitchen.
Megar said, “Is it serious, Pug?”
Pug shook his head. “I really can't say.
I don't know. I know that Tully and Kulgan are worried, and the Duke thinks
enough of the problem to want to talk to the elves and dwarves. It could be.”
Megar looked out the door that Tomas had
used. “It would be a bad time for war and killing.” Pug could see the poorly
hidden worry in Megar's face and could think of nothing to say to a father of a
son who had just become a soldier.
Pug pushed himself away from the counter.
“I'd better be off, as well, Megar.” He waved good-bye to the others in the
kitchen and walked out of the kitchen and into the courtyard. He had little
temper for study, being alarmed by the serious tone of the meeting in the
Duke's chambers. No one had come out and said as much, but it was obvious they
were considering the possibility that the alien ship was the vanguard of an
invasion fleet.
Pug wandered around to the side of the
keep and climbed the three steps to the Princess's small flower garden. He sat
on a stone bench, the hedges and rows of rosebushes masking most of the
courtyard from sight. He could still see the top of the high walks, with the
guards patrolling the parapets. He wondered if it was his imagination, or were
the guards looking especially watchful today?
The sound of a delicate cough made him
turn. Standing on the other side of the garden was Princess Carline, with
Squire Roland and two of her younger ladies-in-waiting. The girls hid their
smiles, for Pug was still something of a celebrity in the keep. Carline shooed
them off, saying, “I would like to speak with Squire Pug in private.” Roland
hesitated, then bowed stiffly. Pug was irritated by the dark look Roland gave
him as he left with the young ladies.
The two young ladies looked over their
shoulder at Pug and Carline, giggling, which seemed only to add to Roland's
irritation.
Pug stood as Carline approached and made
an awkward bow. She said, in short tones, “Oh, sit down. I find that rubbish
tiring and get all I need from Roland.”
Pug sat. The girl took her place next to
him, and they were both silent for a moment. Finally she said, “I haven't seen
you for more than a week. Have you been busy?
Pug felt uncomfortable, still confused by
the girl and her mercurial moods. She had been only warm to him since the day,
three weeks ago, when he had saved her from the trolls, stirring up a storm of
gossip among the staff of the castle. She remained short-tempered with others,
however, especially Squire Roland.
“I have been busy with my studies.”
“Oh, pooh. You spend too much time in
that awful tower.”
Pug didn't consider the tower room the
least bit awful -- except for being a bit drafty. It was his own, and he felt
comfortable there.
“We could go riding, Your Highness, if
you would like.”
The girl smiled. “I would like that. But
I'm afraid Lady Marna won't allow it.”
Pug was surprised. He thought that after
the way he had protected the Princess, even the girl's surrogate mother would
allow that he was proper company. “Why not?”
Carline sighed. “She says that when you
were a commoner, you would keep your place. Now that you are a courtier, she suspects
you of having aspirations.” A slight smile played across her lips.
“Aspirations?” Pug said, not
understanding.
Carline said shyly, “She thinks that you
have ambitions to rise to higher station. She thinks you seek to influence me
in certain ways.”
Pug stared at Carline. Abruptly
comprehension dawned on him, and he said, “Oh,” then, “Oh! Your Highness.” He
stood up. “I never would do such a thing. I mean, I would never think to . . .
I mean . . . “
Carline abruptly stood and threw Pug an
exasperated look. “Boys! You're all idiots.” Lifting the hem of her long green
gown, she stormed off.
Pug sat down, more perplexed than before
by the girl. It was almost as if . . . He let the thought trail away. The more
it seemed possible that she could care for him, the more anxious the prospect
made him. Carline was quite a bit more than the fairy-tale Princess he had
imagined a short time back. With the stamp of one little foot, she could raise
a storm in a saltcellar, one that could shake the keep. A girl of complex mind
was the Princess, with a contradictory nature tossed into the bargain.
Further musing was interrupted by Tomas,
dashing by. Catching a glimpse of his friend, he leapt up the three steps and
halted breathlessly before him. “The Duke wants us. The man from the ship has
died.”
THEY HASTILY ASSEMBLED in the Duke's
council chamber, except Kulgan, who had not answered when a messenger knocked
at his door. It was supposed he was too deeply engrossed in the problem of the
magic scroll.
Father Tully looked pale and drawn. Pug
was shocked by his appearance. Only a little more than an hour had passed, yet
the old cleric looked as if he had spent several sleepless nights. His eyes
were red-rimmed and deep-set in dark circles. His face was ashen, and a light
sheen of perspiration showed across his brow.
Borric poured the priest a goblet of wine
from a decanter on a sideboard and handed it to him. Tully hesitated, for he
was an abstemious man, then drank deeply. The others resumed their former
positions around the table.
Borric looked at Tully and said, simply,
“Well?”
“The soldier from the beach regained
consciousness for only a few minutes, a final rally before the end. During that
time I had the opportunity to enter into a mind contact with him. I stayed with
him through his last feverish dreams, trying to learn as much about him
as
I could. I nearly didn't remove the contact in time.”
Pug paled. During the mind contact, the
priest's mind and the subject become as one. If Tully had not broken contact
with the man when he died, the priest could have died or been rendered mad, for
the two men shared feelings, fears, and sensations as well as thought. He now
understood Tully's exhausted state: the old priest had spent a great deal of
energy maintaining the link with an uncooperative subject and had been party to
the dying man's pain and terror.
Tully took another drink of wine, then
continued. “If this man's dying dreams were not the product of fevered
imaginings, then I fear his appearance heralds a grave situation.” Tully took
another sip of wine and pushed the goblet aside. “The man's name was Xomich. He
was a simple soldier of a nation, Honshoni, in something called the Empire of
Tsuranuanni.”
Borric said, “I have never heard of this
nation, nor of that Empire.”
Tully nodded and said, “I would have been
surprised if you had. That man's ship came from no sea of Midkemia.” Pug and
Tomas looked at each other, and Pug felt a chilling sensation, as, apparently,
did Tomas, whose face had turned pale.
Tully went on. “We can only speculate on
how the feat was managed, but I am certain that this ship comes from another
world, removed from our own in time and space.” Before questions could be
asked, he said, “Let me explain.”
“This man was sick with fever, and his
mind wandered.” Tally's face flickered with remembered pain. “He was part of an
honor guard for someone he thought of only as 'Great One.' There were
conflicting images, and I can't be sure, but it seems that the journey they
were on was considered strange, both for the presence of this Great One and for
the nature of the mission. The only concrete thought I gained was that this
Great One had no need to travel by ship. Beyond that, I have little but quick
and disjointed impressions. There was a city he knew as Yankora, then a
terrible storm, and a sudden blinding brilliance, which may have been lightning
striking the ship, but I think not. There was a thought of his captain and
comrades being washed overboard. Then a crash on the rocks.” He paused for a
moment. “I am not sure if those images are in order, for I think it likely that
the crew was lost before the blinding light.”
“Why?” asked Borric.
“I'm ahead of myself,” said Tully. “First
I'd like to explain why I think this man is from another world.
“This Xomich grew to manhood in a land
ruled by great armies. They are a warrior race, whose ships control the seas.
But what seas? Never, to my knowledge, has there been mention of contact with
these people. And there are other visions that are even more convincing. Great
cities, far larger than those in the heart of Kesh, the largest known to us.
Armies on parade during high holiday, marching past a review stand; city
garrisons larger than the King's Army of the West.”
Algon said, “Still, there is nothing to
say they are not from” -- he paused, as if the admission were difficult “across
the Endless Sea.” That prospect seemed to trouble him less than the notion of
some place not of this world.
Tully looked irritated at the
interruption. “There is more, much more. I followed him through his dreams,
many of his homeland. He remembers creatures unlike any I have heard of or
seen, things with six legs that pull wagons like oxen, and other creatures,
some that look like insects or reptiles, but speak like men. His land was hot,
and his memory of the sun was of one larger than ours and more green in color.
This man was not of our world.” The last was said flatly, removing from all in
the room any lingering doubts.
Tully would never make a pronouncement
like that unless he was certain.
The room was silent as each person
reflected on what had been said. The boys watched and shared the feeling. It
was as if no one were willing to speak, as if to do so would seal the priest's
information forever in fact, while to stay silent might let it pass like a bad
dream. Borric stood and paced over to the window. It looked out upon a blank
rear wall of the castle, but he stared as if seeking something there, something
that would provide an answer for the questions that spun in his mind. He turned
quickly and said, “How did they get here, Tully?”
The priest shrugged. “Perhaps Kulgan can
offer a theory as to the means. What I construct as being the most likely
series of events is this: the ship foundered in the storm; the captain of the
ship and most of its crew were lost. As a last resort this Great One, whoever
he is, invoked a spell to remove the ship from the storm, or change the
weather, or some other mighty feat. As a result, the ship was cast from its own
world into this, appearing off the coast at Sailor's Grief. With the ship
moving at great speed on its own world, it may have appeared here with the same
movement, and with the westerly blowing strong, and little or no crew, the ship
was driven straight onto the rocks. Or it simply may have appeared upon the
rocks, smashed at the instant it came into being here.”
Fannon shook his head. “From another
world. How can that be possible?”
The old priest raised his hands in a
gesture of mystification. “One can only speculate. The Ishapians have old
scrolls in their temples. Some are reputed to be copies of older works, which
in turn are copies of still older scrolls. They claim the originals date back,
in unbroken line, to the time of the Chaos Wars. Among them is mention of
'other planes' and 'other dimensions', and of concepts lost to us. One thing is
clear, however. They speak of lands and peoples unknown and suggest that once
mankind traveled to other worlds, or to Midkemia from other worlds. These
notions have been the center of religious debate for centuries, and no one
could say with certainty what truth there was in any of them.” He paused, then
said, “Until now. If I had not seen what was in Xomich's mind, I would not have
accepted such a theory to explain this day's occurrences. But now . . .”
Borric crossed to his chair to stand
behind it, his hands gripping each side of the high back. “It seems
impossible.”
“That the ship and man were here is fact,
Father,” said Lyam.
Arutha followed his brother's comment
with another. “And we must decide what the chances are that this feat may be
duplicated.”
Borric said to Tully, “You were right
when you said this may herald a grave situation. Should a great Empire be
turning its attention toward Crydee and the Kingdom.
Tully shook his head. “Borric, have you
so long been removed from my tutelage that you miss the point entirely?” He
held up a bony hand as the Duke started to protest. “Forgive me, my lord. I am
old and tired and forget my manners. But the truth is still the truth. A mighty
nation they are, or rather an empire of nations, and if they have the means to
reach us, it could prove dire, but most important is the possibility that this
Great One is a magician or priest of high art. For if he is not one alone, if
there are more within this Empire, and if they did indeed try to reach this
world with magic, then grave times are truly in store for us.”
When everyone at the table still appeared
not to comprehend what he was alluding to, Tully continued, like a patient
teacher lecturing a group of promising but occasionally slow students. “The
ship's appearance may be the product of chance and, if so, is only a cause for
curiosity. But if it was by design that it came here, then we may be in peril,
for to move a ship to another world is an order of magic beyond my imagining.
If these people, the Tsurani as they call themselves, know we are here, and if
they possess the means to reach us, then not only must we fear armies that
rival Great Kesh at the height of its power, when its reach extended to even
this remote corner of the world, we must also face magic far greater than any
we have known.”
Borric nodded, for the conclusion was
obvious, once pointed out. “We must have Kulgan's counsel on this at once.”
“One thing, Arutha,” said Tully. The
Prince looked up from his chair, for he had been lost in thought. “I know why
Xomich tried to run from you and your men. He thought you were creatures he
knew in his own world, centaurlike creatures, called Thûn, feared by the
Tsurani.”
“Why would he think that?” asked Lyam,
looking puzzled.
“He had never seen a horse, or any
creature remotely like it. I expect these people have none.”
The Duke sat down again. Drumming his
fingers on the table, he said, “If what Father Tully says is true, then we must
make some decisions, and quickly. If this is but an accident that has brought
these people to our shores, then there may be little to fear. If, however,
there is some design to their coming, then we should expect a serious threat.
Here we are the fewest in number of all the Kingdom's garrisons, and it would be
a hard thing should they come here in force.”
The others murmured agreement, and the
Duke said, “We would do well to try to understand that what has been said here
is still only speculation, though I am inclined to agree with Tully on most
points. We should have Kulgan's thoughts upon the matter of these people.” He
turned to Pug. “Lad, see if your master is free to join us.”
Pug nodded and opened the door, then
raced through the keep. He ran to the tower steps and took them two at a time.
He raised his hand to knock and felt a strange sensation, as if he were near a
lightning strike, causing the hair on his arms and scalp to stand up. A sudden
sense of wrongness swept over him, and he pounded on the door. “Kulgan! Kulgan!
Are you all right?” he shouted, but no answer was forthcoming. He tried the
door latch and found it locked. He placed his shoulder against the door and
tried to force it, but it held fast. The feeling of strangeness had passed, but
fear rose in him at Kulgan's silence. He looked about for something to force
the door and, finding nothing, ran back down the stairs.
He hurried into the long hall. Here
guards in Crydee livery stood at their post. He shouted at the two nearest,
“You two, come with me. My master is in trouble.” Without hesitation they
followed the boy up the stairs, their boots pounding on the stone steps.
When they reached the magician's door,
Pug said, “Break it down!” They quickly put aside spear and shield and leaned
their shoulders against the door. Once, twice, three times they heaved, and
with a protesting groan the timbers cracked around the lock plate. One last
shove and the door flew open. The guards stopped themselves from falling
through the door and stepped back, amazement and confusion on their faces. Pug
shouldered between them and looked into the room.
On the floor lay Kulgan, unconscious. His
blue robes were disheveled, and one arm was thrown across his face, as if in
protection. Two feet from him, where his study table should have stood, hung a
shimmering void. Pug stared at the place in the air. A large sphere of grey
that was not quite grey shimmered with traces of a broken spectrum. He could
not see through it, but there was nothing solid there. Coming out of the grey
space was a pair of human arms, reaching toward the magician. When they touched
the material of his robe, they stopped and fingered the cloth. As if a decision
had been made, they traveled over his body, until they identified Kulgan's arm.
The hands took hold of him and tried to lift his arm into the void. Pug stood
in horror, for whoever or whatever was on the other side of the void was trying
to pull the stout magician up and through. Another pair of hands reached
through and picked up the magician's arm next to where the first held him, and
Kulgan was being pulled toward the void.
Pug turned and grabbed one of the spears
from against the wall where the shocked guards had placed them. Before either
of the men-at-arms could act, he leveled it at the grey spot and threw.
The spear flew across the ten feet that
separated them from Kulgan and disappeared into the void. A brief second after,
the arms dropped Kulgan and withdrew. Suddenly the grey void blinked out of
existence, with a clap of air rushing in to fill it. Pug ran to Kulgan's side
and knelt by his master.
The magician was breathing, but his face
was white and beaded with sweat. His skin felt cold and clammy. Pug ran to
Kulgan's sleeping pallet and pulled off a blanket. As he was covering the magician,
he shouted at the guards, “Get Father Tully.”
PUG AND TOMAS sat up that night, unable
to sleep. Tully had tended to the magician, giving a favorable prognosis.
Kulgan was in shock but would recover in a day or two.
Duke Borric had questioned Pug and the
guards on what they had witnessed, and now the castle was in an uproar. All the
guards had been turned out, and patrols to the outlying areas of the Duchy had
been doubled. The Duke still did not know what the connection between the
appearance of the ship and the strange manifestation in the magician's quarters
was, but he was taking no chances with the safety of his realm. All along the
walls of the castle, torches burned, and guards had been sent to Longpoint
lighthouse and the town below.
Tomas sat next to Pug on a bench in
Princess Carline's garden, one of the few quiet places in the castle. Tomas
looked thoughtfully at Pug. “I expect that these Tsurani people are coming.”
Pug ran a hand through his hair. “We
don't know that.”
Tomas sounded tired. “I just have a
feeling.”
Pug nodded. “We'll know tomorrow when
Kulgan can tell us what happened.”
Tomas looked out toward the wall. “I've
never seen it so strange around here. Not even when the Dark Brotherhood and the
goblins attacked back when we were little, remember?”
Pug nodded, silent for a moment, then
said, “We knew what we were facing then. The dark elves have been attacking
castles on and off as far back as anyone can remember. And goblins . . . well,
they're goblins.”
They sat in silence for a long time; then
the sound of boots on the pavement announced someone coming. Swordmaster
Fannon, in chain mail and tabard, halted before them. “What? Up so late? You
should both be abed.” The old fighter turned to survey the castle walls. “There
are many who find themselves unable to sleep this night.” He turned his
attention back to the boys. “Tomas, a soldier needs to learn the knack of
taking sleep whenever he can find it, for there are many long days when there
is none. And you, Squire Pug, should be asleep as well. Now, why don't you try
to rest yourselves?”
The boys nodded, bade the Swordmaster
good night, and left. The grey-haired commander of the Duke's guard watched
them go and stood quietly in the little garden for a time, alone with his own
disquieting thoughts.
PUG WAS AWAKENED by the sound of
footsteps passing his door. He quickly pulled on trousers and tunic and hurried
up the steps to Kulgan's room. Passing the hastily replaced door, he found the
Duke and Father Tully standing over Kulgan's sleeping pallet. Pug heard his
master's voice, sounding feeble, as he complained about being kept abed. “I
tell you, I'm fine,” Kulgan insisted. “Just let me walk about a bit, and I'll
be back to normal in no time.”
Tully, still sounding weary, said, “Back
on your back, you mean. You sustained a nasty jolt, Kulgan. Whatever it was
that knocked you unconscious packed no small wallop. You were lucky, it could
have been much worse.”
Kulgan noticed Pug, who stood quietly at
the door, not wishing to disturb anyone. “Ha, Pug,” he said, his voice
regaining some of its usual volume. “Come in, come in. I understand I have you
to thank for not taking an unexpected journey with unknown companions.”
Pug smiled, for Kulgan seemed his old,
jovial self, in spite of his wan appearance. “I really did nothing, Sir. I just
felt that something was not right, and acted.”
“Acted quickly and well,” said the Duke
with a smile. “The boy is again responsible for the well-being of one of my
household. At this rate I may have to grant him the title Defender of the Ducal
Household.”
Pug smiled, pleased with the Duke's
praise. Borric turned to the magician. “Well, seeing as you are full of fire, I
think we should have a talk about yesterday. Are you well enough?”
The question brought an irritated look
from Kulgan. “Of course I'm well enough. That's what I've been trying to tell
you for the last ten minutes.” Kulgan started to rise from the bed, but as
dizziness overtook him, Tully put a restraining hand on his shoulder, guiding
him back to the large pile of pillows he had been resting on.
“You can talk here quite well enough,
thank you. Now, stay in bed.”
Kulgan made no protest. He shortly felt
better and said, “Fine, but hand me my pipe, will you, please?”
Pug fetched Kulgan's pipe and pouch of
tabac and, as the magician tamped down the bowl, a long burning taper from the
fire pot. Kulgan lit his pipe and, when it was burning to his satisfaction, lay
back with a contented look on his face. “Now,” he said, “where do we begin?”
The Duke quickly filled him in on what
Tully had revealed, with the priest adding a few details the Duke overlooked.
When they were done, Kulgan nodded. “Your assumption about the origin of these
people is likely. I suspected the possibility when I saw the artifacts brought
from the ship, and the events in this room yesterday bear me out.” He paused
for a moment, organizing his thoughts. “The scroll was a personal letter from a
magician of these people, the Tsurani, to his wife, but it was also more. The
seal was magically endowed to force the reader to incant a spell contained at
the end of the message. It is a remarkable spell enabling anyone, whether or not
they can normally read, to read the scroll.”
The Duke said, “This is a strange thing.”
Tully said, “It's astonishing.”
“The concepts involved are completely new
to me,” agreed Kulgan. “Anyway, I had neutralized that spell so I could read
the letter without fear of magical traps, common to private messages written by
magicians. The language was of course strange, and I employed a spell from
another scroll to translate it. Even understanding the language through that
spell, I don't fully understand everything discussed. “
“A magician named Fanatha was traveling
by ship to a city on his homeworld. Several days out to sea, they were struck
by a severe storm. The ship lost its mast, and many of the crew were washed
overboard. The magician took a brief time to pen the scroll -- it was written
in a hasty hand -- and cast the spells upon it. It seems this man could have
left the ship at any time and returned to his home or some other place of
safety, but was enjoined from doing so by his concern for the ship and its
cargo. I am not clear on this point, but the tone of the letter suggested that
risking his life for the others on the ship was somehow unusual. Another
puzzling thing was a mention of his duty to someone he called the 'Warlord.' I
may be reaching for straws, but the tone leads me to think this was a matter of
honor or a promise, not some personal duty. In any event he penned the note,
sealed it, and was then going to undertake to move the ship magically.”
Tully shook his head in disbelief.
“Incredible.”
“And as we understand magic, impossible,”
Kulgan added excitedly.
Pug noticed that the magician's
professional interest was not shared by the Duke, who looked openly troubled.
The boy remembered Tully's comments on what magic of that magnitude meant if
these people were to invade the Kingdom. The magician continued, “These people
possess powers about which we can only speculate. The magician was very clear
on a number of points -- his ability to compress so many ideas into so short a
message shows an unusually organized mind. “
“He took great pains to reassure his wife
he would do everything in his power to return. He referred to opening a rift to
the 'new world,' because -- and I don't fully understand this -- a bridge was
already established, and some device he possessed lacked . . . some capacity or
another to move the ship on his own world. From all indications, it was a most
desperate gamble. He placed a second spell on the scroll-and this is what
caught me in the end. I thought by neutralizing the first spell I had countered
the second also, but I was in error. The second spell was designed to activate
as soon as someone had finished reading the scroll aloud, another unheard-of
piece of magical art. The spell caused another of these rifts to open, so the
message would be transported to a place called 'the Assembly' and from there to
his wife. I was nearly caught in the rift with the message. “
Pug stepped forward. Without thinking, he
blurted, “Then those hands might have been his friends trying to find him.”
Kulgan looked at his apprentice and
nodded. “A possibility. In any event, we can derive much from this episode.
These Tsurani have the ability to control magic that we can only hint at in our
speculation. We know a little about the occurrences of rifts, and nothing of
their nature.”
The Duke looked surprised. “Please
explain.”
Kulgan drew deep on his pipe, then said,
“Magic, by its nature, is unstable. Occasionally a spell will become warped --
why, we don't know -- to such a degree, it . . . tears at the very fabric of
the world. For a brief time a rift occurs, and a passage is formed, going . . .
somewhere. Little else is known about such occurrences, except that they
involve tremendous releases of energy. “
Tully said, “There are theories, but no
one understands why every so often a spell, or magic device, suddenly explodes
in this fashion and why this instability in reality is created. There have been
several occurrences like this, but we have only secondhand observations to go
on. Those who witnessed the creation of these rifts died or vanished.”
Kulgan picked up the narrative again.
“It's considered axiomatic that they were destroyed along with anything within
several feet of the rift.” He looked thoughtful for a moment. “By rights I
should have been killed when that rift appeared in my study.”
The Duke interrupted. “From your
description, these rifts, as you call them, are dangerous.”
Kulgan nodded. “Unpredictable, as well.
They are one of the most uncontrollable forces ever discovered. If these people
know how to manufacture them and control them as well, to act as a gate between
worlds, and can pass through them safely, then they have arts of the most powerful
sort.”
Tully said, “We've suspected something of
the nature of rifts before, but this is the first time we've had anything
remotely like hard evidence.”
Kulgan said, “Bah! Strange people and
unknown objects have appeared suddenly from time to time over the years, Tully.
This would certainly explain where they came from.”
Tully appeared unwilling to concede the
point. *”Theory only, Kulgan; not proof. The people have all been dead, and the
devices . . . no one understands the two or three that were not burned and
twisted beyond recognition.”
Kulgan smiled. “Really? What about the
man who appeared twenty years ago in Salador?” To the Duke he said, “This man
spoke no language known and was dressed in the strangest fashion.”
Tully looked down his nose at Kulgan. “He was also hopelessly mad
and never could speak a word that could be understood. The temples invested
much time on him-”
Borric paled. “Gods! A nation of
warriors, with armies many times the size of our own, who have access to our
world at will. Let us hope they have not turned their eyes toward the Kingdom.”
Kulgan nodded and blew a puff of smoke.
“As yet, we have not heard of any other appearances of these people, and we may
not have to fear them, but I have a feeling . . .” He left the thought
unfinished for a moment. He turned a little to one side, easing some minor
discomfort, then said, “It may be nothing, but a reference to a bridge in the
message troubles me. It smacks of a permanent way between the worlds already in
existence. I hope I'm wrong.” The sound of feet pounding up the stairs made
them turn. A guard hurried in and came to attention before the Duke, handing
him a small paper.
The Duke dismissed the man and opened the
folded paper. He read it quickly, then handed it to Tully. “I sent fast riders
to the elves and the dwarves, with pigeons to carry replies. The Elf Queen
sends word that she is already riding to Crydee and will be here in two days'
time.”
Tully shook his head. “As long as I have
lived, I have never heard of the Lady Aglaranna leaving Elvandar. This sets my
bones cold.”
Kulgan said, “Things must be approaching
a serious turn for her to come here. I hope I am wrong, but think that we are
not the only ones to have news of these Tsurani.”
Silence descended over the room, and Pug
was struck by a feeling of hopelessness. He shook it off, but its echoes
followed him for days.
Pug
leaned out the window.
Despite the driving rain that had come in
early morning, the courtyard was in an uproar. Besides the necessary
preparations for any important visit, there was the added novelty of these
visitors being elves. Even the infrequent elf messenger from Queen Aglaranna
was the object of much curiosity when one appeared at the castle, for rarely
did the elves venture south of the river Crydee. The elves lived apart from the
society of men, and their ways were thought strange and magical. They had lived
in these lands long before the coming of men to the West, and there was an
unvoiced agreement that, in spite of any claims made by the Kingdom, they were
a free people.
A cough caused Pug to turn and see Kulgan
sitting over a large tome. The magician indicated with a glance that the boy
should return to his studies. Pug closed the window shutters and sat on his
pallet. Kulgan said, “There will be ample time for you to gawk at elves, boy,
in a few hours. Then there will be little time for studies. You must learn to
make the best use of what time you have.”
Fantus scrambled over to place his head
in the boy's lap. Pug scratched absently behind an eye ridge as he picked up a
book and started to read. Kulgan had given Pug the task of formulating shared
qualities of spells as described by different magicians, in the hope it would
deepen his understanding of the nature of magic.
Kulgan was of the opinion that Pug's
spells with the trolls had been the result of the tremendous stress of the
moment. He hoped the study of other magicians' research might help the boy
break through the barriers that held him back in his studies. The book work
also proved fascinating to Pug, and his reading had improved greatly.
Pug glanced at his master, who was
reading while puffing great clouds of smoke from his long pipe. Kulgan showed
no signs of the weakness of the day before and had insisted the boy use these
hours to study, rather than sit idly by waiting for the arrival of the Elf
Queen and her court.
A few minutes later, Pug's eyes began to
sting from the pungent smoke, and he turned back to the window and pushed open
the shutters. “Kulgan?”
“Yes, Pug?”
“It would be much nicer working with you
if we could somehow keep the fire going for warmth but move the smoke outside.”
Between the smoking fire pot and the magician's Pipe, the room was thick with a
blue-white haze.
The magician laughed loudly. “Right you
are.” He closed his eyes for a moment, his hands flew in a furious motion, and
he softly mouthed a series of incantations. Soon he was holding a large sphere
of white and grey smoke, which he took to the window and tossed outside,
leaving the room fresh and clear.
Pug shook his head, laughing. “Thank you,
Kulgan. But I had a more mundane solution in mind. What do you think of making
a chimney for the fire pot?”
“Not possible, Pug,” Kulgan said, sitting
down. He pointed to the wall. “If one had been installed when the tower was
built, fine. But to try to remove the stones from the tower, from here past my
room, and up to the roof would be difficult, not to mention costly.”
“I wasn't thinking of a chimney in the
wall, Kulgan. You know how the forge in the smithy has a stone hood taking the
heat and smoke through the roogf? The magician nodded. “Well, if I could have a
metal one fashioned by the smith, and a metal chimney coming from the hood to
carry the smoke away, it would work the same way, wouldn't it?”
Kulgan pondered this for a moment. “I
don't see why it wouldn't. But where would you put this chimney?”
“There.” Pug pointed to two stones above
and to the left of the window. They had been ill fitted when the tower was
built, and now there was a large crack between them that allowed the wind to
come howling into the room. “This stone could be taken out,” he said,
indicating the leftmost one. “I checked it and it's loose. The chimney could
come from above the fire pot, bend here” -- he pointed to a spot in the air
above the pot and level with the stone -- “and come out here. If we covered the
space around it, it would keep the wind out.”
Kulgan looked impressed. “It's a novel
idea, Pug. It might work. I'll speak to the smith in the morning and get his
opinion on the matter. I wonder that no one thought of it before.”
Feeling pleased with himself for having
thought of the chimney, Pug resumed his studies. He reread a passage that had
caught his eye before, puzzling over an ambiguity. Finally he looked up at the
magician and said, “Kulgan.”
“Yes, Pug?” he answered, looking up from
his book.
“Here it is again. Magician Lewton uses
the same cantrip here as Marsus did, to baffle the effects of the spell upon
the caster, directing it to an external target.” Placing the large tome down so
as not to lose his place, he picked up another. “But here Dorcas writes that
the use of this cantrip blunts the spell, increasing the chance that it will
not work. How can there be so much disagreement over the nature of this single
construction?”
Kulgan narrowed his gaze a moment as he
regarded his student. Then he sat back, taking a long pull on his pipe, sending
forth a cloud of blue smoke. “It shows what I've said before, lad. Despite any
vanity we magicians might feet about our craft, there's really very little
order or science involved. Magic is a collection of folk arts and skills passed
along from master to apprentice since the beginning of time. Trial and error,
trial and error is the way. There has never been an attempt to create a system
for magic, with laws and rules and axioms that are well understood and widely
accepted.” He looked thoughtfully at Pug. “Each of us is like a carpenter,
making a table, but each of us choosing different woods, different types of
saws, some using pegs and dowel, others using nails, another dovetailing joints,
some staining, others not . . . in the end there's a table, but the means for
making it are not the same in each case.
“What we have here is most likely an
insight about the limits of each of these venerable sages you study, rather
than any sort of prescription for magic. For Lewton and Marsus, the cantrip
aided the construction of the spell; for Dorcas, it hindered.”
“I understand your example, Kulgan, but
I'll never understand how these magicians all could do the same thing, but in
so many different ways. I understand that each of them wanted to achieve his
end and found a different means, but there is something missing in the manner
they did it.”
Kulgan looked intrigued. “What is
missing, Pug.
The boy looked thoughtful. “I . . . I
don't know. It's as if I expect to find something that will tell me, 'This is
the way it must be done, the only way,' or something like that. Does that make
any sense? “
Kulgan nodded. “I think I know you well
enough to understand. You have a very well-ordered mind, Pug. You understand
logic far better than most, even those much older than yourself. You see things
as a system, rather than as a haphazard collection of events. Perhaps that is
part of your trouble.”
Pug's expression showed his interest in
what the magician was saying. Kulgan continued. “Much of what I am trying to
teach is based on a system of logic, cause and effect, but much is not. It is
like trying to teach someone to play the lute. You can show them the fingering
of the strings, but that knowledge alone will not make a great troubadour. It
is the art, not the scholarship, that troubles you.”
“I think I understand, Kulgan.” He
sounded dispirited.
Kulgan stood up. “Don't dwell on it; you
are still young, and I have hope for you yet.” His tone was light, and Pug felt
the humor in it.
“Then I am not a complete loss?” he said
with a smile.
“Indeed not.” Kulgan looked thoughtfully
at his pupil. “In fact, I have the feeling that someday you may use that logical
mind of yours for the betterment of magic.”
Pug was a little startled. He did not
think of himself as one to accomplish great things.
Shouts came through the window, and Pug
hurried to look out. A troop of guards was running toward the front gate. Pug
turned to Kulgan. “The elves must be coming! The guard is out.”
Kulgan said, “Very well. We are done with
study for this day. There will be no holding you until you get a look at the
elves. Run along.”
Pug raced out the door and down the
stairs. He took them two at a time, jumping to the bottom of the tower landing
over the last four and hitting the floor at a full run. He dashed through the
kitchen and out the door. As he rounded the keep to the front courtyard, he
found Tomas standing atop a hay wagon. Pug climbed up next to him, to be better
able to see the arrival over the heads of the curious keep folk gathered
around.
Tomas said, “I thought you weren't
coming, thought you'd be locked away with your books all day.”
Pug said, “I wouldn't miss this. Elves!”
Tomas playfully dug his elbow into Pug's
side. “Haven't you had your fill of excitement for this week?”
Pug threw him a black look. “If you're so
indifferent, why are you standing in the rain on this wagon?”
Tomas didn't answer. Instead he pointed.
“Look”'
Pug turned to see the guard company snap
to attention as riders in green cloaks entered through the gate. They rode to
the main doors of the keep, where the Duke waited. Pug and Tomas watched in
awe, for they rode the most perfect white horses the boys had ever seen, using
no saddle or bridle. The horses seemed untouched by wetness, and their coats
glowed faintly; whether by some magic, or a trick of the grey afternoon light,
Pug couldn't tell. The leader rode on an especially grand animal, full
seventeen hands in height, with a long flowing mane and a tail like a plume.
The riders reared the mounts in salute, and an audible intake of breath could
be heard from those in the crowd.
“Elf steeds,” said Tomas, in hushed
tones. The horses were the legendary mounts of the elves. Martin Longbow had
once told the boys they lived in hidden, deep glades near Elvandar. It was said
they possessed intelligence and a magic nature, and no human could sit on their
backs. It was also said that only one with royal elvish blood could command
them to carry riders.
Grooms rushed forward to take the horses,
but a musical voice said, “There is no need.” It came from the first rider, the
one mounted on the greatest steed. She jumped nimbly down, without aid, landing
lightly on her feet, and threw back her hood, revealing a mane of thick reddish
hair. Even in the gloom of the afternoon rain it appeared to be shot through
with golden highlights. She was tall, nearly a match for Borric. She mounted
the steps as the Duke came forward to meet her.
Borric held out his hands and took hers
in greeting. “Welcome, my lady; you do me and my house a great honor.”
The Elf Queen said, “You are most
gracious, Lord Borric.” Her voice was rich and surprisingly clear, able to
carry over the crowd so that all in the courtyard could hear. Pug felt Tomas's
hand clutching his shoulder. He turned to see a rapt expression on Tomas's
face. “She's beautiful,” said the taller boy.
Pug returned his attention to the
welcome. He was forced to agree that the Queen of the elves was indeed
beautiful, if not in entirely human terms. Her eyes were large and a pale blue,
nearly luminous in the gloom. Her face was finely chiseled, with high
cheekbones and a strong but not masculine jaw. Her smile was full, and her
teeth shone white between almost-red lips. She wore a simple circlet of gold
around her brow, which held back her hair, revealing the lobeless, upswept ears
that were the hallmark of her race.
The others in her company dismounted, all
dressed in rich clothing. Each tunic was bright with contrasting leggings
below. One wore a tunic of deep russet, another pale yellow with a surcoat of
bright green. Some wore purple sashes, and others crimson hose. Despite the
bright colors, these were elegant and finely made garments, with nothing loud
or gaudy about them. There were eleven riders with the Queen, all similar in
appearance, tall, youthful, and lithe in movement.
The Queen turned from the Duke and said
something in her musical language. The elf steeds reared in salute, then ran
through the gate, past the surprised onlookers. The Duke ushered his guests
inside, and soon the crowd drifted away. Tomas and Pug sat quietly in the rain.
Tomas said, “If I live to be a hundred, I
don't think that I'll ever see her like.”
Pug was surprised, for his friend rarely
showed such feelings. He had a brief impulse to chide Tomas over his boyish
infatuation, but something about his companion's expression made that seem
inappropriate. “Come on,” he said, “we're getting drenched.”
Tomas followed Pug from the wagon. Pug
said, “You had better change into some dry clothing, and see if you can borrow
a dry tabard.”
Tomas said, “Why?”
With an evil grin, Pug said, “Oh? Didn't
I tell you? The Duke wants you to dine with the court. He wants you to tell the
Elf Queen what you saw on the ship.”
Tomas looked as if he were going to break
down and run. “Me? Dine in the great hall?” His face went white. “Talk? To the
Queen?”
Pug laughed with glee. “It's easy. You
open your mouth and words come out.”
Tomas swung a roundhouse at Pug, who
ducked under the blow, grabbing his friend from behind when he spun completely
around. Pug had strength in his arms even if he lacked Tomas's size, and he
easily picked his larger friend off the ground. Tomas struggled, and soon they
were laughing uncontrollably. “Pug, put me down.”
“Not until you calm down.”
“I'm all right.”
Pug put him down. “What brought that on?”
“Your smug manner, and not telling me
until the last minute.”
“All right. So I'm sorry I waited to tell
you. Now what's the rest of it?”
Tomas looked uncomfortable, more than was
reasonable from the rain. “I don't know how to eat with quality folk. I'm
afraid I'll do something stupid.”
“It's easy. Just watch me and do what I
do. Hold the fork in your left hand and cut with the knife. Don't drink from
the bowls of water; they're to wash with, and use them a lot, because your
hands will get greasy from the rib bones. And make sure you toss the bones over
your shoulder to the dogs, and not on the floor in front of the Duke's table.
And don't wipe your mouth on your sleeves, use the tablecloth, that's what it's
for.”
They walked toward the soldiers' commons,
with Pug giving his friend instruction on the finer points of court manners.
Tomas was impressed at the wealth of Pug's knowledge.
TOMAS VACILLATED BETWEEN looking sick and
pained. Each time someone regarded him, he felt as if he had been found guilty
of the most grievous breach of etiquette and looked sick. Whenever his gaze
wandered to the head table and he caught sight of the Elf Queen, his stomach
tied up in knots and he looked pained.
Pug had arranged for Tomas to sit next to
him at one of the more removed tables from the Duke's. Pug's usual place was at
Lord Borric's table, next to the Princess. He was glad for this chance to be
away from her, for she still showed displeasure with him. Usually she chatted
with him about the thousand little bits of gossip the ladies of the court found
so interesting, but last night she had pointedly ignored him, lavishing all her
attention on a surprised and obviously pleased Roland. Pug found his own
reaction puzzling, relief mixed with a large dose of irritation. While he felt
relieved to be free of her wrath, he found Roland's fawning upon her a
bothersome itch he couldn't scratch.
Pug had been troubled by Roland's hostility
toward him of late, poorly hidden behind stiff manners. He had never been as
close to Roland as Tomas had, but they had never before had cause to be angry
with one another. Roland had always been one of the crowd of boys Pug's age. He
had never hidden behind his rank when he had cause to be at odds with the
common boys, always standing ready to settle the matter in whatever way proved
necessary. And already being an experienced fighter when he arrived in Crydee,
his differences soon were settled peacefully as often as not. Now there was
this dark tension between Pug and Roland, and Pug found himself wishing he was
Tomas's equal in fighting; Tomas was the only boy Roland was unable to best
with fists, their one encounter ending quickly with Roland receiving a sound
thumping. For as certain as the sun was rising in the morning, Pug knew a
confrontation with the hotheaded young Squire was quickly approaching. He
dreaded it, but knew once it came, he'd feel relief.
Pug glanced at Tomas, finding his friend
lost in his own discomfort. Pug returned his attention to Carline. He felt
overwhelmed by the Princess, but her allure was tempered by a strange
discomfort he felt whenever she was near. As beautiful as he found her -- her
black locks and blue eyes igniting some very uncomfortable flames of
imagination --the images were always somehow hollow, colorless at heart,
lacking the amber-and-rose glow such daydreams had possessed when Carline had
been a distant, unapproachable, and unknown figure. Observing her closely for
even as short a time as he had recently made such idealized musing impossible.
She was proving herself to be just too complicated to fit into simple
daydreams. On the whole he found the question of the Princess troublesome, but
seeing her with Roland made him forget his internal conflicts over her, as a
less intellectual, more basic emotion came to the fore. He was becoming
jealous.
Pug sighed, shaking his head as he
thought about his own misery at this moment, ignoring Tomas's. At least,
thought Pug, I'm not alone. To Roland's obvious discomfort, Carline was deeply
involved at the moment in conversation with Prince Calin of Elvandar, son of
Aglaranna. The Prince seemed to be the same age as Arutha, or Lyam, but then so
did his mother, who appeared to be in her early twenties. All the elves, except
the Queen's seniormost adviser, Tathar, were quite young looking, and Tathar
looked no older than the Duke.
When the meal was over, most of the
Duke's court retired. The Duke rose and offered his arm to Aglaranna and led
those who had been ordered to attend them to his council chamber.
For the third time in two days, the boys
found themselves in the Duke's council chamber. Pug was more relaxed about
being there than before, thanks in part to the large meal, but Tomas seemed
more disturbed than ever. If the taller boy had spent the hour before dinner
staring at the Elf Queen, in these close quarters he seemed to be looking
everywhere but in her direction. Pug thought Aglaranna noticed Tomas's behavior
and smiled slightly, but he couldn't be sure.
The two elves who came with the Queen,
Calin and Tathar, went at once to the side table that held the bowl and the
artifacts taken from the Tsurani soldier. They examined them closely, fascinated
by every detail.
The Duke called the meeting to order, and
the two elves came to chairs on either side of the Queen. Pug and Tomas stood
by the door as usual.
The Duke said, “We have told you what has
occurred as well as we know, and now you have seen proof with your own eyes. If
you think it would be helpful, the boys can recount the events on the ship.”
The Queen inclined her head, but it was
Tathar who spoke. “I would like to hear the story firsthand, Your Grace.”
Borric motioned for the boys to approach.
They stepped forward, and Tathar said, “Which of you found this outworlder?”
Tomas threw Pug a look that indicated the
shorter boy should do the talking. Pug said, “We both did, sir,” not knowing
the proper address for the elf. Tathar seemed content with the general
honorific. Pug recounted the events of that day, leaving out nothing he could
remember. When he had done, Tathar asked a series of questions, each jogging
Pug's memory, bringing out small details he had forgotten.
When he was done, Pug stepped back, and
Tathar repeated the process with Tomas. Tomas began haltingly, obviously
discomfited, and the Elf Queen bestowed a reassuring smile on him. That only
served to make him more unsettled, and he was soon dismissed.
Tathar's questions provided more details
about the ship, small things forgotten by the boys: fire buckets filled with
sand tossed about the deck, empty spearracks, substantiating Arutha's surmise
that it had been, indeed, a warship.
Tathar leaned back. “We have never heard of such a ship. It is
in many ways like other ships, but not in all ways. We are convinced.”
As if by silent signal, Calin spoke.
“Since the death of my Father-King, I serve as Warleader of Elvandar. It is my
duty to supervise the scouts and patrols that guard our glades. For some time
we have been aware that there were strange occurrences in the great forest,
south of the river Crydee. Several times our runners have found tracks made by
men, in isolated parts of the forest. They have been found as near as the
borders of Elvandar, and as far as the North Pass near Stone Mountain.
“Our scouts have tried for weeks to find
these men, but only tracks could be seen. There were none of the usual things
that would be expected of a scouting or raiding party. These people were taking
great care to disguise their presence. Had they not passed so close to
Elvandar, they might have remained undetected, but no one may intrude near our
home and go unnoticed.
“Several days ago, one of our scouts
sighted a band of strangers passing the river, near the edge of our forests
heading in the direction of the North Pass. He followed for a half day's march,
then lost them.”
Fannon raised his eyebrows. “An elven
tracker lost them?”
Calin inclined his head slightly. “Not by
his lack of skill. They simply entered a thick glade and never appeared on the
other side. He followed their tracks up to the point where they vanished.”
Lyam said, “I think we know now where
they went.” He looked uncommonly somber, resembling his father more than usual.
Calin continued. “Four days before your
message arrived, I led a patrol that sighted a band near the place of last
sighting. They were short and stocky men, without beards. Some were fair and
others dark. There were ten of them, and they moved through the forest with
little ease; the slightest sound put them on guard. But with all their caution,
they still had no idea they were being tracked.
“They all wore armor of bright colors,
reds and blues, some green, others yellow, save one in black robes. They
carried swords like the one on the table and others without the serration,
round shields, and strange bows, short and curved in an odd doubled-back way.
Algon sat forward. “They're recurved
bows, like the ones used by Keshian dog-soldiers.”
Calin spread his hands. “Kesh has long
been gone from these lands, and when we knew the Empire, they used simple bows
of yew or ash.”
Algon interrupted in excited tones. “They
have a way, secret to them, of fashioning such bows from wood and animal horn.
They are small, but possess great power, though not as much the longbow. Their
range is surprisingly --”
Borric cleared his throat pointedly,
being unwilling to let the Horsemaster indulge himself in his preoccupation
with weaponry. “If His Highness will please continue?”
Algon sat back, blushing furiously, and
Calin said, “I tracked them for two days. They stopped and made cold camp at
night and took great care not to leave signs of their passing. All food scraps
and body wastes were gathered together in a sack and carried by one of
their band. They moved carefully, but
were easy for us to follow. “
“When they came to the edge of the
forest, near the mouth of North Pass, they made marks upon a parchment as they
had several times during their trek. Then the one in black activated some
strange device, and they vanished.” There was a stir from the Duke's company.
Kulgan especially looked disturbed.
Calin paused. “The thing that was most
strange, however, was their language, for their speech was unlike any we know.
They spoke in hushed tones, but we could hear them, and their words were
without meaning. “
The Queen then spoke. “Hearing this, I
became alarmed, for these outworlders are clearly mapping the West, ranging
freely through the great forest, the hills of Stone Mountain, and now the
coasts of the Kingdom. Even as we prepared to send you word, the reports of
these outworlders became more frequent. Several more bands were seen in the
area of the North Pass. “
Arutha sat forward, resting his arms on
the table. “If they cross the North Pass, they will discover the way to Yabon,
and the Free Cities. The snows will have started to fall in the mountains, and
they may discover we are effectively isolated from aid during the winter.”
For a moment alarm flickered on the
Duke's face, betraying his stoic demeanor. He regained his composure and said,
“There is still the South Pass, and they may not have mapped that far. If they
were in that area, the dwarves would most likely have seen signs of them, as
the villages of the Grey Towers are more widely scattered than those of Stone
Mountain.”
“Lord Borric,” said Aglaranna, “I would never
have ventured from Elvandar if I had not thought the situation critical. From
what you have told us of the outworld Empire, if they are as powerful as you
say, then I fear for all the free peoples of the West. While the elves have
little love for the Kingdom as such, we respect those of the Crydee, for you
have ever been honorable men and have never sought to extend your realm into
our lands. We would ally with you should these outworlders come for conquest.
Borric sat quietly for a moment. “I thank
the Lady of Elvandar for the aid of the elven folk should war come. We are also
in your debt for your counsel, for now we can act. Had we not known of these
happenings in the great forests, we would likely have given the aliens more
time for whatever trouble they are preparing.” He paused again, as if
considering his next words. “And I am convinced that these Tsurani plan us ill.
Scouting an alien and strange land I could see, trying to determine the nature
and temper of the people who live there, but extensive mapping by warriors can
only be a prelude to invasion.”
Kulgan sounded fatigued as he said, “They
most likely will come with a mighty host.”
Tully shook his head. “Perhaps not.” All
eyes turned to him as he said, “I am not so certain. Much of what I read in
Xomich's mind was confused, but there is something about this Empire of
Tsuranuanni that makes it unlike any nation we know of, there is something very
alien about their sense of duty and alliances. I can't tell you how I know, but
I suspect they may choose to test us first, with but a small part of their
might. It's as if their attentions are elsewhere, and we're an afterthought.”
He shook his head in admitted confusion. “I have this sense, nothing more.”
The Duke sat upright, a commanding tone
coming into his voice. “We will act. I will send messages to Duke Brucal of
Yabon, and again to Stone Mountain and the Grey Towers.”
Aglaranna said, “It would be good to hear
what the dwarven folk know.”
Borric said, “I had hoped for word by
now, but our messengers have not returned, nor have the pigeons they carry.”
Lyam said “Hawks, perhaps. The pigeons
are not always reliable, or perhaps the messengers never reached the dwarves.”
Borric turned to Calin. “It has been
forty years since the siege of Carse, and we have had little traffic with the
dwarves since. Who commands the dwarven clans now?”
The Elf Prince said, “As then. Stone
Mountain is under the banner of Harthorn, of Hogar's line, at village Delmoria.
The Grey Towers rally to the banner of Dolgan, of Tholin's line, at village
Caldara.”
“Both are known to me, though I was but a
boy when they raised the Dark Brothers' siege at Carse,” said, Borric. “They
will prove fierce allies if trouble comes.
Arutha said, “What of the Free Cities,
and the Prince in Krondor?”
Borric sat back. “I must think on that,
for there are problems in the East, or so I have word. I will give thought to
the matter this night.” He stood. “I thank you all for this counsel. Return to
your quarters and avail yourselves of rest and refreshments. I will ask you to
consider plans for dealing with the invaders, should they come, and we will
meet again tomorrow.”
As the Elf Queen rose, he offered her his
arm, then escorted her through the doors that Tomas and Pug held open. The boys
were the last to exit. Fannon took Tomas in tow, leading him to the soldiers'
commons, while Kulgan stood outside the hall with Tully and the two elven
advisers.
The magician turned to his apprentice.
“Pug, Prince Calin expressed an interest in your small library of magic books.
Would you please show them to him?”
Pug said he would and led the Prince up
the stairs to his door and opened it for him. Calin stepped through, and Pug
followed. Fantus was asleep and woke with a start. He threw the elf a
distrustful look.
Calin slowly crossed over to the drake
and spoke a few soft words in a language that Pug didn't understand. Fantus
lost his nervousness and stretched forth his neck to allow the Prince to
scratch his head.
After a moment the drake looked
expectantly to Pug. Pug said, “Yes, dinner is over. The kitchen will be full of
scraps.” Fantus moved to the window with a wolfish grin and used his snout to
push it open. With a snap of his wings he was out, gliding toward the kitchen.
Pug offered Calin a stool, but the Prince
said, “Thank you, but your chairs and stools are of little comfort to my kind.
I will just sit on the floor, with your leave. You have a most unusual pet,
Squire Pug.” He gave Pug a small smile. Pug was a little uncomfortable hosting
the Elf Prince in his poor room, but the elf's manner was such that the boy
started to relax.
“Fantus is less a pet than a permanent
guest. He has a mind of his own. It is not unusual for him to disappear for
weeks at a time, now and again, but mostly he stays here. He must eat outside
the kitchen now that Meecham has gone.”
Calin inquired who Meecham was. Pug
explained, adding, “Kulgan has sent him over the mountains to Bordon, with some
of the Duke's guards, before the North Pass is snowed in. He didn't say why he
was going, Highness.”
Calin looked at one of the boy's books.
“I prefer to be called Calin, Pug.”
Pug nodded, pleased. “Calin, what do you
think the Duke has in mind?”
The elf gave him an enigmatic smile. “The
Duke will reveal his own plans, I think. My guess is that Meecham is preparing
the way should the Duke choose to journey east. You will most probably know on
the morrow.” He held up the book he had glanced at. “Did you find this
interesting?”
Pug leaned over and read the title.
“Dorcas's Treatise on the Animation of Objects? Yes, though it seemed a little
unclear.”
“A fair judgment. Dorcas was an unclear
man, or at least I found him so.”
Pug started. “But Dorcas died thirty
years ago.”
Calin smiled broadly, showing even white
teeth. His pale eyes shone in the lantern light. “Then you know little of elven
lore?”
“Little,” Pug agreed. “You are the first
elf I have ever spoken with, though I may have seen another elf once, when I
was very little. I'm not sure.” Calin tossed aside the book. “I know only what
Martin Longbow has told me, that you can somehow speak with animals, and some
spirits. That you live in Elvandar and the surrounding elven forests, and that
you stay among your own kind mostly.”
The elf laughed, a soft, melodic sound.
“Nearly all true. Knowing friend Longbow, I wager some of the tales were
colorful, for while he is not a deceiving man, he has an elf's humor.” Pug's
expression showed he did not understand. “We live a very long time by your
standards. We learn to appreciate the humor in the world, often finding
amusement in places where men find little. Or you can call it simply a
different way of looking at life. Martin has learned this from us, I think.”
Pug nodded. “Mocking eyes.”
Calin raised an eyebrow in question. Pug
explained, “Many people here find Martin difficult to be with. Different,
somehow. I once heard a soldier say he had mocking eyes.”
Calin sighed. “Life has been difficult
for Martin. He was left on his own at an early age. The Monks of Saban are
good, kindly men, but ill equipped to raise a boy. Martin lived in the woods
like a wild thing when he could flee his tutors. I found him one day, fighting
with two of our children -- we are not very much different from men when very
young. Over the years he has grown to be one of the few humans who is free to
come to Elvandar at will. He is a valued friend. But I think he bears a special
burden of loneliness, not being fully in the world of elves nor of men, but
partially in both.”
Pug saw Martin in a new light and
resolved to attempt to know the Huntmaster better. Returning to the original
topic, he said, “Is what he said true?”
Calin nodded. “In some respects. We can
speak to animals only as men do, in tones to make them easy, though we are
better at it than most humans, for we read the moods of wild things more
readily. Martin has some of this knack. We do not, however, speak with spirits.
There are creatures we know whom humans consider spirits -dryads, sprites,
pixies-but they are natural beings who live near our magic.”
Pug's interest was piqued. “Your magic?”
“Ours is a magic that is part of our
being, strongest in Elvandar. It is a heritage ages old, allowing us to live at
peace within our forests. There we work as others do, hunting, tending our
gardens, celebrating our joys, teaching our young. Time passes slowly in Elvandar,
for it is an ageless place. That is why I can remember speaking with Dorcas,
for in spite of my youthful appearance, I am over a hundred years old.”
“A hundred . . .” Pug shook his head.
“Poor Tomas, he was distressed to hear you were the Queen's son. Now he will be
desolate.”
Calin inclined his head, a half-smile
playing across his face. “The lad who was with us in the council hall?”
Pug nodded. Calin said, “It is not the
first time my Mother-Queen has had such an effect upon a human, though older
men can mask the effect with more ease. “
“You don't mind?” asked Pug, feeling
protective toward his friend.
“No, Pug, of course not. All in Elvandar
love the Queen, and it is acknowledged her beauty is unsurpassed. I find it not
surprising your friend is smitten. Since my Father-King passed, more than one
bold noble of your race has come to press his suit for Aglaranna's hand. Now
her mourning is at an end, and she may take another should she wish. That it
would be one of your race is unlikely, for while a few such marriages have been
made, they are very rare, and tend to be sad things at the end for our kind.
She will live many more human life spans, the gods willing.”
Calin looked around the room, then added,
“It is likely our friend Tomas will outgrow his feelings for the great lady of
the elves. Much as your Princess will change her feelings toward you, I would
think.”
Pug felt embarrassed. He had been curious
as to what Carline and the Elf Prince had spoken about during dinner, but had
been uncomfortable asking. “I noticed you spoke with her at great length. “
“I had expected to meet a hero of seven
feet in height, with lightning dancing around his shoulders. It seems you slew
a score of trolls with a cast of your hand.”
Pug blushed. “It was only two, and mostly
by accident.”
Calin's eyebrows shot up. “Even two is an
accomplishment. I had thought, the girl guilty of a flight of fancy. I would
like to hear the story.”
Pug told him what had happened. When he
was done, Calin said, “It is an unusual tale, Pug. I know little of human
magic, but I do know enough to think that what you did was as strange as Kulgan
said. Elf magic is far different from human, but we understand ours better than
you understand your own. Never have I heard of such an occurrence, but I can
share this with you. Occasionally, at times of great need, an inner call can be
made, bringing forth powers that lay dormant, deep within.”
Pug said, “I have thought as much, though
it would be nice to understand a little better what happened.”
“That may come in time.”
Pug looked at his guest and sighed
deeply. I wish I could understand Carline, as well.”
Calin shrugged and smiled. “Who can
understand another's mind? I think for some time to come you will be the object
of her attention. Then, it may be, another will distract her, perhaps young
Squire Roland. He seems held in thrall by her. “
Pug snorted. “Roland! That . . . bother.”
Calin smiled appreciatively. “Then you
are fond of the Princess?”
Pug looked upward, as if seeking guidance
from some higher source. “I do like her,” he admitted with a heavy sigh. “But I
don't know if I care for her that special way. Sometimes I think I do --
especially when I see Roland fawning over her -- but other times I don't. She
makes it very hard for me to think clearly, and I always seem to say the wrong
things to her.”
“Unlike Squire Roland,” prompted Calin.
Pug nodded. “He's court born and bred. He
knows all the right things to say.” Pug leaned back on his elbows and sighed
wistfully. “I guess I'm just bothered by him out of envy as much as anything.
He makes me feel like an ill-mannered clod with great lumps of stone for hands
and tree stumps for feet.”
Calin nodded understandingly. “I don't
count myself an expert in all the ways of your people, Pug, but I've spent
enough time with humans to know that you choose how you feel; Roland makes you
feel clumsy only because you let him.
“I would hazard a guess young Roland
might feel much the same way when your positions are reversed. The faults we
see in others never seem as dreadful as those we see in ourselves. Roland might
envy your direct speech and honest manner.
“In any event, what you or Roland do will
have little effect on the Princess so long as she's determined to have her own
way. She has romanticized you in much the same manner your friend has our
Queen. Short of you becoming a hopeless boor, she will not be shaken from this
attitude until she is ready. I think she has you in mind as her future
consort.”
Pug gaped for a moment, then said,
“Consort?”
Calin smiled. “The young are often overly
concerned with matters to be settled in later years. I suspect her determination
in the matter is as much a result of your reluctance as from a true
appreciation of your worth. She, like many children, simply wants what she
can't have.” In a friendly tone he added, “Time will decide the issue.”
Pug leaned forward, a worried expression
on his face. “Oh, my, I have made a hash of things. Half the keep boys think
themselves in love with the Princess. If they only knew how terrifying the real
thing can be.” He closed his eyes, squeezing them tightly shut a moment. “My
head aches. I thought she and Roland . . .”
Calin said, “He may be but a tool to
provoke your interest. Sadly, that seems to have resulted in bad feelings
between you.”
Pug nodded slowly. “I think so. Roland is
a good enough sort on the whole; we've been friends for the most part. But
since I was elevated in rank, he's been openly hostile. I try to ignore it, but
it gets under my skin after a while. Maybe I should try to talk to him.”
“That would prove wise, I think. But
don't be surprised if he is not receptive to your words. He is most certainly
caught up in her spell.”
Pug was getting a headache from the
topic, and the mention of spells made him ask, “Would you tell me more about
elven magic?”
“Our magic is ancient. It is part of what
we are and in what we create. Elven boots can make even a human silent when
walking, and elven bows are better able to strike the mark, for that is the
nature of our magic. It is vested in ourselves, our forests, our creations. It
can sometimes be managed, subtly by those who fully understand it . . .
Spellweavers, such as Tathar. But this is not easily done, for out magic
resists manipulation. It is more like air than anything, always surrounding us,
yet unseen. But like air, which can be felt when the wind blows, it has
substance. Our forests are called enchanted by men, for so long have we dwelled
there, our magic has created the mystery of Elvandar. All who dwell there are
at peace. No one may enter Elvandar uninvited, save by mighty arts, and even
the distant boundaries of the elven forests cause unease in those who enter
with evil intent. It has not always been so; in ages past we shared our lot
with others, the moredhel, those you call the Brotherhood of the Dark Path.
Since the great break, when we drove them from our forests, Elvandar has been
changing, becoming more our place, our home, our essence.”
Pug said, “Are the Brothers of the Dark
Path truly cousin to the elves?”
Calin's eyes grew hooded. He paused for a
moment, then said, “We speak little of such things, for there is much we wish
were not true. I can tell you this: there is a bond between the moredhel, whom
you call the Brotherhood, and my people, though ancient and long strained. We
wish it were not so, but they are true cousins to us. Once in a great while one
comes back to us, what we call Returning.” He looked as if the topic were
making him very uncomfortable.
Pug said, “I'm sorry if-”
Calin waved away the apology. “Curiosity
is nothing to apologize for in a student, Pug. I just would rather not say more
on this subject.”
They spoke late into the night, of many
things. Pug was fascinated by the Elf Prince and was flattered so many things
he said seemed to be of interest to Calin.
At last Calin said, “I should retire.
Though I need little rest, I do need some. And I think you do as well.”
Pug rose and said, “Thank you for telling
me so much.” Then he smiled, half in embarrassment. “And for talking to me
about the Princess.”
“You needed to talk.”
Pug led Calin to the long hall, where a
servant showed him to his quarters. Pug returned to his room and lay down for
sleep, rejoined by a damp Fantus, who snorted in indignation at having to fly
through the rain. Fantus was soon asleep. Pug, however, lay staring at the
flickering light from his fire pot that danced on the ceiling, unable to call
up sleep. He tried to put the tales of strange warriors out of his mind, but
images of brightly clad fighters stalking through the forests of the westlands
made sleep impossible.
THERE WAS A somber mood throughout Castle
Crydee the next morning. The servants' gossip had spread the news about the
Tsurani, though the details were lacking. Everyone went about his duties with
one ear open for a tidbit of speculation on what the Duke was going to do.
Everyone was agreed to one thing: Borric conDoin, Duke of Crydee, was not a man
to sit idly by waiting. Something would be done, and soon.
Pug sat atop a bale of hay, watching
Tomas practice with a sword, swinging at a pell post, hacking backhand, then
forehand, over and over. His blows were halfhearted, and finally he threw his
sword down with disgust. “I'm not accomplishing a thing.” He walked over and
sat next to Pug. “I wonder what they're talking about.”
Pug shrugged. “They” were the Duke's
council; today the boys had not been asked to attend, and the last four hours
had passed slowly.
Abruptly the courtyard became busy as
servants began to rush toward the front gate. “Come on,” said Tomas. Pug jumped
off the bale and followed his friend.
They rounded the keep in time to see the
guards turning out as they had the day before. It was colder than yesterday,
but there was no rain. The boys climbed on the same wagon, and Tomas shivered.
“I think the snows will come early this year. Maybe tomorrow.
“If they do, it will be the earliest
snowfall in memory. You should have worn your cloak. Now you're all sweaty from
the drill, and the air is chilling you.”
Tomas looked pained. “Gods, you sound
like my mother.”
Pug mimicked an exasperated manner. In a
tone that was high-pitched and nasal, he said, “And don't come running to me
when you're all blue with chill, and coughing and sneezing, looking for
comfort, for you'll find none here, Tomas Megarson.”
Tomas grinned. “Now you sound exactly
like her.”
They turned at the sound of the great
doors opening. The Duke and Elf Queen led the other guests from the central
keep, the Duke holding the Queen's hand in a parting gesture of friendship.
Then the Queen placed her hand to her mouth and sang out a musical series of
words, not loud, but carrying over the noise of the crowd. The servants who
were standing in the court became silent, and soon the sound of hoofbeats could
be heard outside the castle.
Twelve white horses ran through the gates
and reared up in greeting to the Elf Queen. The elves quickly mounted, each
springing up on an elf steed's back without assistance. They raised their hands
in salute to the Duke, then turned and raced out the gate.
For a few minutes after they were gone,
the crowd stood around, as if loath to admit that they had seen their last of
the elves, probably their last in this lifetime. Slowly they began to drift
back to work.
Tomas looked far away, and Pug turned
toward him. “What is it?”
Tomas said softly, “I wish I could see
Elvandar, someday.”
Pug understood. “Maybe you will.” Then he
added, in lighter tones, “But I doubt it. For I will be a magician, and you
will be a soldier, and the Queen will reign in Elvandar long after we are
dead.”
Tomas playfully jumped atop his friend,
wrestling him down in the straw. “Oh! Is that so. Well, I will too go to
Elvandar someday.” He pinned Pug under him, sitting atop his chest. “And when I
do, I'll be a great hero, with victories over the Tsurani by the score. She'll
welcome me as an honored guest. What do you think of that?”
Pug laughed, trying to push his friend
off. “And I'll be the greatest magician in the land.”
They both laughed. A voice broke through
their play. “Pug! There you are.”
Tomas got off, and Pug sat up.
Approaching them was the stocky figure of Gardell the smith. He was a
barrelchested man, with little hair but a thick black beard. His arms were grimy
with smoke, and his apron was burned through with many small holes. He came to
the side of the wagon and placed fists on hips. “I've been looking all over for
you. I have that hood Kulgan asked me to fashion for your fire pot.”
Pug scrambled out of the wagon, with
Tomas close behind. They walked after Gardell toward the smithy behind the
central keep. The burly smith said, “Damned clever idea, that hood. I've worked
the forge for nearly thirty years and never thought of using a hood for a fire
pot. Had to make one as soon as Kulgan told me of the plan.”
They entered the smithy, a large shed
with a large and small forge and several different-sized anvils. All manner of
things lay about waiting for repair: armor, stirrup irons, and kitchen utensils.
Gardell walked to the larger forge and picked up the hood. It was about three
feet to a side, about three feet high, and formed a cone with a hole at the
top. Lengths of round metal pipe lay nearby, fashioned especially thin.
Gardell held out his creation for them to
study. “I made it fairly thin, using a lot of tin for lightness, for were it
too heavy, it would collapse.” With his toe he pointed to several lengths of
metal rods. “We'll knock some little holes in the floor and use these for support.
It may take a bit of time to get it right, but I think this thing of yours is
going to work.”
Pug smiled broadly. He found great
pleasure in seeing an idea of his taking concrete form. It was a novel and
gratifying sensation. “When can we install it?”
“Now if you like. I would like to see it
work, I must confess.”
Pug gathered up some of the pipe, and
Tomas the rest, as well as the rods. Juggling the awkward load, they set out
toward the magician's tower, with the chuckling smith following.
KULGAN WAS DEEP in thought as he started
to mount the stairs to his room. Suddenly a shout from above sounded: “Watch
out!” Kulgan glanced up in time to see a block of stone come tumbling down the
stairs, bounding over the steps as if in some fit of drunken craziness. He
leapt aside as it struck against the wall where he had stood and came to rest
at the bottom of the stairs. Mortar dust filled the air, and Kulgan sneezed.
Tomas and Pug came running down the
stairs, expressions of worry on their faces. When they saw no one was hurt,
they both looked relieved.
Kulgan-leveled a baleful gaze upon the
pair and said, “What is all this?”
Pug appeared sheepish, while Tomas tried
to blend in with the wall. Pug spoke first. “We were trying to carry the stone
down to the yard, and it sort of slipped.”
“Sort of slipped? It looked more like a
mad dash for freedom. Now, why were you carrying the stone, and where did it
come from?”
“It's the loose one from my wall,”
answered Pug. “We took it out so that Gardell could put the last pipe in
place.” When Kulgan still appeared uncomprehending, Pug said, “It's for my fire
pot hood, remember?”
“Ah,” said Kulgan, “yes. Now I do.” A
servant arrived to investigate the noise, and Kulgan asked him to fetch a
couple of workmen from the yard to carry the block away. He left, and Kulgan
said to the boys, “I think it would be better to let someone a little larger
tote that stone out. Now let us see this marvel.”
They climbed the stairs to the boys room
and found Gardell installing the last length of pipe. The smith turned when
they entered and said, “Well, what do you think?”
The pot had been moved a little closer to
the wall, and the hood sat on four metal rods of equal length over it. All of
the smoke was trapped by the hood and carried away through the light metal
pipe. Unfortunately, the hole where the stone was missing was considerably
larger than the pipe, so most of the smoke was blown back into the room by the
wind.
“Kulgan, what do you think?” said Pug.
“Well, boy. It looks rather impressive,
but I can't see much improvement in the atmosphere here.”
Gardell gave the hood a solid whack with
his hand, causing it to ring out with a tinny sound. His thick calluses kept
his hand from being burned by the hot metal. “She'll do, soon as I plug up that
hole, magician. I'll fetch some bull hide that I use for making shields for the
horsemen and cut a hole in a piece, slip it around the pipe, and nail it to the
wall. A few slaps of tanning agent on it, and the heat will dry it out all
stiff and hard. It will take the heat and keep the rain and wind out of the
room, as well as the smoke.” The smith looked pleased with his handiwork.
“Well, I'll fetch the hide. Back in a moment.”
Pug looked as if he would burst from
pride, seeing his invention before him, and Tomas reflected Pug's glory. Kulgan
chuckled softly to himself for a moment. Suddenly Pug turned to the magician,
remembering where he had spent the day. “What is the news from the council?”
“The Duke sends messages to all the
nobles of the West, explaining what has occurred in great detail, and asking
that the Armies of the West be made ready. I am afraid Tully's scribes have
some rigorous days ahead of them, since the Duke wants them all finished as
soon as possible. Tully's in a state, for he has been commanded to stay and act
as Lyam's adviser, along with Fannon and Algon, during the Duke's absence.”
“Lyam's adviser? Absence?” asked Pug,
uncomprehendingly.
“Yes, the Duke, Arutha, and I are going
to journey to the Free Cities, and on to Krondor, to speak with Prince Erland.
I am going to send a dream message to a colleague of mine tonight, if I can.
Belgan lives north of Bordon. He will send word to Meecham, who should be there
by now, to find us a ship. The Duke feels it best that he should carry the word
in person.”
Pug and Tomas looked excited. Kulgan knew
they both wanted to come along. To visit Krondor would be the greatest adventure
of their young lives. Kulgan stroked his grey beard. “It will be difficult to
continue your lessons, but Tully can brush you up on a trick or two. “
Pug looked as if he were going to burst.
“Please, Kulgan, may I come too?”
Kulgan feigned surprise. “You come? I
never thought of that.” He paused for a moment while the suspense built. “Well
. . .” Pug's eyes pleaded. “. . . I guess it would be all right.” Pug let out a
yelp and jumped in the air.
Tomas struggled to hide his
disappointment. He forced a thin smile and tried to look happy for Pug.
Kulgan walked to the door. Pug noticed
Tomas's dejected expression. “Kulgan?” Pug said. The magician turned, a faint
smile on his lips.
“Yes, Pug?”
“Tomas, too?”
Tomas shook his head, for he was neither
a member of the court nor the magician's charge, but his eyes looked at Kulgan
imploringly.
Kulgan smiled broadly. “I guess we're
better off keeping you together, so we need look for trouble in only one place.
Tomas, too. I'll arrange things with Fannon.”
Tomas shouted, and the two boys slapped
each other on the back.
Pug
said, “When do we leave?”
Kulgan laughed. “In five days' time. Or
sooner, if the Duke hears from the dwarves. Runners are being sent to the North
Pass to see if it is clear. If not, we ride by the South Pass.”
Kulgan departed, leaving the two boys
dancing arm in arm and whooping with excitement.
Pug
hurried across the courtyard.
Princess Carline had sent him a note
asking him to meet her in her flower garden. It was the first word from the
girl since she had stormed away from their last meeting, and Pug was anxious.
He did not want to be on bad terms with Carline, regardless of any conflicts he
might be feeling. After his brief discussion with Calin, two days earlier, he
had sought out Father Tully and talked with him at length.
The old priest had been willing to take
time out to speak with the boy, in spite of the demands the Duke was placing
upon his staff. It had been a good talk for Pug, leaving him with a surer sense
of himself. The final message from the old cleric had been: Stop worrying about
what the Princess feels and thinks, and start discovering what Pug feels and
thinks.
He had taken the cleric's advice and was
now sure of what he would say should Carline start referring to any sort of
“understanding” between them. For the first time in weeks he felt something
like a sense of direction -- even if he was not sure what destination he would
eventually reach, holding to such a course.
Reaching the Princess's garden, he
rounded a corner, then stopped, for instead of Carline, Squire Roland stood by
the steps. With a slight smile, Roland nodded. “Good day, Pug.”
“Good day, Roland.” Pug looked around.
“Expecting someone?” said Roland, forcing
a note of lightness that did little to hide a belligerent tone. He casually
rested his left hand on the pommel of his sword. Apart from his sword, he was
dressed as usual, in colorful breeches and tunic of green and gold, with tall
riding boots.
“Well, actually, I was expecting to see
the Princess,” Pug said, with a small note of defiance in his manner.
Roland feigned surprise. “Really? Lady
Glynis mentioned something about a note, but I had come to understand things
were strained between the two of you . . .”
While Pug had tried to sympathize with
Roland's situation over the last few days, his offhanded, superior attitude and
his chronic antagonism conspired to irritate Pug. Letting his exasperation get
the better of him, he snapped, “As one squire to another, Roland, let me put it
this way: how things stand between Carline and myself is none of your
business!”
Roland's face took on an expression of
open anger. He stepped forward, looking down at the shorter boy. “Be damned
it's none of my business! I don't know what you're playing at, Pug, but if you
do anything to hurt her, I'll --”
“Me hurt her!” Pug interrupted. He was
shocked by the intensity of Roland's anger and infuriated by the threat. “She's
the one playing us one against the other --”
Abruptly Pug felt the ground tilt under
him, rising up to strike him from behind. Lights exploded before his eyes and a
bell-like clanging sounded in his ears. It was a long moment before he realized
Roland had just hit him. Pug shook his head and his eyes refocused. He saw the
older, larger squire standing over him, both hands balled into fists. Through
tightly clenched teeth, Roland spat his words. “If you ever say ill of her
again, I'll beat you senseless.”
Pug's anger fired within him, rising each
second. He got carefully to his feet, his eyes upon Roland, who stood ready to
fight. Feeling the bitter taste of anger in his mouth, Pug said, “You've had
two years and more to win her, Roland. Leave it alone.”
Roland's face grew livid and he charged,
bowling Pug off his feet. They went down in a tangle, Roland striking Pug
harmlessly on the shoulders and arms. Rolling and grappling, neither could
inflict much damage. Pug got his arm around Roland's neck and hung on as the
older squire thrashed in a frenzy. Suddenly Roland wedged a knee against Pug's
chest and shoved him away. Pug rolled and came to his feet. Roland was up an
instant later, and they squared off. Roland's expression had changed from rage
to cold, calculating anger as he measured the distance between them. He
advanced carefully, his left arm bent and extended, his right fist held ready
before his face. Pug had no experience with this form of fighting, called
fist-boxing, though he had seen it practiced for money in traveling shows.
Roland had demonstrated on several occasions that he had more than a passing
acquaintance with the sport.
Pug sought to take the advantage and
swung a wild, roundhouse blow at Roland's head. Roland dodged back as Pug swung
completely around -- then the squire jumped forward, his left hand snapping
out, catching Pug on the cheek, rocking his head back with a stinging blow. Pug
stumbled away, and Roland's right hand missed Pug's chin by a fraction.
Pug held up his hands to ward off another
blow and shook his head, clearing it of the dancing lights that obscured his
vision, barely managing to duck beneath Roland's next blow. Under Roland's
guard, Pug lunged, catching the other boy in the stomach with his shoulder,
knocking him down again. Pug fell on top of him and struggled to pin the larger
boy's arms to his side. Roland struck out, catching Pug's temple with an elbow,
and the dazed magician's apprentice fell away, momentarily confused.
As he rose to his feet again, pain
exploded in Pug's face, and the world tilted once more. Disoriented, unable to
defend himself, Pug felt Roland's blows as distant events, somehow muted and
not fully recognized by his reeling senses. A faint note of alarm sounded in
part of Pug's mind. Without' warning, processes began to occur under the level
of pain-dimmed consciousness. Basic, more animal instincts took hold, and in a
disjointed, hardly understood awareness, a new force emerged. As in the
encounter with the trolls, blinding letters of light and flame appeared in his
mind's eye, and he silently incanted.
Pug's being became primitive. In his
remaining consciousness he was a primal creature fighting for survival with
murderous intent. All he could envision was choking the very life from his
adversary.
Suddenly an alarm rang within Pug's mind.
A deep sense of wrongness, of evil, struck him. Months of training came to the
fore, and it was as if he could hear Kulgan's voice crying, “This is not how
the power is to be used!” Ripping aside the mental shroud that covered him, Pug
opened his eyes.
Through blurred vision and sparkling
lights, Pug saw Roland kneeling a mere yard before him, eyes enlarged, vainly
struggling with the invisible fingers around his neck. Pug felt no sense of
contact with what he saw, and with returning clarity of mind knew at once what
had occurred. Leaning forward, he seized Roland's wrists. “Stop it, Roland!
Stop it! It isn't real. There are no hands but your own at your throat.”
Roland, blind with panic, seemed unable to hear Pug's shouts. Mustering what
remaining strength he possessed, Pug yanked Roland's hands away, then struck
him a stinging slap to the face. Roland's eyes teared and suddenly he breathed
in, a gasping, ragged sound.
Still panting, Pug said, “It's an
illusion. You were choking yourself “
Roland gasped and pushed himself back
from Pug, fear evident on his face. He struggled weakly to pull his sword. Pug
leaned forward and firmly gripped Roland's wrist. Barely able to speak, he
shook his head and said, “There's no reason.”
Roland looked into Pug's eyes, and the
fear in his own began to subside. Something inside the older squire seemed to
break, and there was only a fatigued, drained young man sitting on the ground.
Breathing heavily, Roland sat back, tears forming in his eyes, and asked,
'“Why?”
Pug's own fatigue made him lean back,
supporting himself on his hands. He studied the handsome young face before him,
twisted by doubt. “Because you're held under a spell more compelling than any I
could fashion.” He looked Roland in the eyes. “You truly love her, don't you?”
The last vestige of Roland's anger slowly
evaporated and his eyes showed some slight fear remaining, but also Pug saw
deep pain and anguish as a tear fell to his cheek. His shoulders slumped and he
nodded, his breath ragged as he tried to speak. For a moment he was on the
verge of crying, but he fought off his pain and regained his poise. Taking a
deep breath, Roland wiped away the tears and took another deep breath. He
looked directly at Pug, then guardedly asked, “And you?”
Pug sprawled on the ground, feeling some
strength returning. “I . . . I'm not sure. She makes me doubt myself. I don't
know. Sometimes I think of no one else, and other times I wish I were as far
from her as I could be.”
Roland indicated understanding, the last
residue of fear draining away. “Where she's concerned, I don't have a whit of
wit.”
Pug giggled. Roland looked at him, then
also began to laugh. “I don't know why,” said Pug, “but for some reason, I find
what you said terribly funny.” Roland nodded and began to laugh too. Soon they
were both sitting with tears running down their faces as the emotional vacuum
left by the fleeing anger was replaced by giddiness.
Roland recovered slightly, holding back
the laughter, when Pug looked at him and said, “A whit of wit!” which sent both
of them off on another jag of laughter.
“Well!” a voice said sharply. They turned
and found Carline, flanked by two ladies-in-waiting, surveying the scene before
her. Instantly both boys became silent. Casting a disapproving look upon the
pair as they sprawled upon the ground, she said, “Since you two seem so taken
with each other, I'll not intrude.”
Pug and Roland exchanged looks and
suddenly erupted into uproarious laughter. Roland fell over backward, while Pug
sat, legs stretched before him, laughing into his cupped hands. Carline flushed
angrily and her eyes widened. With cold fury in her voice she said “Excuse me!”
and turned, sweeping by her ladies. As she left, they could hear her loudly
exclaim, “Boys!”
Pug and Roland sat for a minute until the
near hysterical fit passed; then Roland rose and extended his hand to Pug. Pug
took it and Roland helped him to his feet. “Sorry, Pug. I had no right to be
angry with you.” His voice softened. “I can't sleep nights thinking of her. I
wait for the few moments we're together each day. But since you saved her, all
I ever hear is your name.” Touching his sore neck, Roland said, “I got so
angry, I thought I'd kill you. Damn near got myself killed instead.”
Pug looked at the comer where the
Princess had disappeared, nodding agreement. “I'm sorry, too, Roland. I'm not
very good at controlling magic yet, and when I lose my temper, it seems all
sorts of terrible things can happen. Like with the trolls.” Pug wanted Roland
to understand he was still Pug, even though he was now a magician's apprentice.
“I would never do something like that on purpose -- especially to a friend.”
Roland studied Pug's face a moment and
grinned, half-wryly, half-apologetically. “I understand. I acted badly. You
were right: she's only setting us one against the other. I am the fool. It's
you she cares for.”
Pug seemed to wilt. “Believe me, Roland,
I'm not so sure I'm to be envied.”
Roland's grin widened. “She is a
strong-willed girl, that's clear.” Caught halfway between an open display of
self-pity and mock-bravado, Roland selected mock-bravado.
Pug shook his head. “What's to be done,
Roland?”
Roland looked surprised, then laughed
loudly. “Don't look to me for advice, Pug. I dance to her tune more than any. But 'there are as many changes in a young
girl's heart as in the fickle winds,' as the old saying goes. I'll not blame
you for Carline's actions.” He winked at Pug conspiratorially. “Still, you
won't mind if I keep an eye out for a change in the weather?”
Pug laughed in spite of his exhaustion.
“I thought you seemed a little too gracious in your concessions.” A thoughtful
look came over his face. “You know, it would be simpler -- not better, but
simpler -- if she'd ignore me forever, Roland. I don't know what to think about
all this. I've got my apprenticeship to complete. Someday I'll have estates to
manage. Then there's this business with the Tsurani. It's all come so quickly,
I don't know what to do.”
Roland regarded Pug with some sympathy.
He put his hand upon the younger boy's shoulder. “I forget this business of
being apprentice and noble is all rather new to you. Still, I can't say I've
given too much time to such weighty considerations myself, even though my lot
was decided before I was born. This worrying about the future is a dry sort of
work. I think it would be benefited by a mug of strong ale.”
Feeling his aches and bruises, Pug nodded
agreement. “Would that we could. But Megar will be of a different mind, I'm
afraid.”
Roland placed his finger alongside his
nose. “We shan't let the Mastercook smell us out, then. Come on, I know a place
where the boards of the ale shed are loose. We can quaff a cup or two in
private.,)
Roland began to walk away, but Pug halted
him by saying, “Roland, I am sorry we came to blows.”
Roland stopped, studied Pug a moment, and grinned. “And I” He
extended his hand. “A peace.”
Pug gripped it. “A peace.”
They turned the corner, leaving the
Princess's garden behind, then stopped. Before them was a scene of unalloyed
misery. Tomas was walking the length of the court, from the soldiers' commons
to the side gate, in full armor -- old chain mail over gambeson, full helm, and
heavy metal greaves over knee boots. On one arm he bore a leather shield, and
in the other hand he held a heavy spear, twelve feet long and iron-tipped,
which bore down cruelly upon his right shoulder. It also gave him a comic
appearance, as it caused him to lean a little to the right and wobble slightly
as he struggled to keep it balanced while he marched.
The sergeant of the Duke's Guard stood counting out cadence for
him. Pug knew the sergeant, a tall, friendly man named Gardan. He was Keshian
by ancestry, evident in his dark skin. His white teeth split his dark, nappy
beard in a grin at the sight of Pug and Roland. He stood nearly as broad in the
shoulders as Meecham, with the same loose-gaited movement of a hunter or
fighter. Though his black hair was lightly dusted with grey, his face was
young-looking and unlined, despite thirty years' service. With a wink at Pug
and Roland, he barked, “Halt!” and Tomas stopped in his tracks.
As Pug and Roland closed the distance
between them, Gardan snapped, “Right turn!” Tomas obeyed. “Members of the court
-approaching., Present arms!” Tomas extended his right arm, and his spear
dipped in salute. He let the tip drop slightly too low, and nearly broke from
attention to pull it back.
Pug and Roland came up to stand next to
Gardan, and the large soldier gave them a casual salute and a warm smile. “Good
day, Squires.” He turned to Tomas for a moment. “Shoulder arms! March post . .
. march!” Tomas set off, marching the “post” assigned to him, in this case the
length of the yard before the soldiers' commons.
With a laugh, Roland said, “What is this?
Special drills?”
Gardan stood with one hand on his sword,
the other pointed at Tomas. “Swordmaster Fannon felt it might prove beneficial
to our young warrior if someone was here to see his drilling didn't become
sloppy from exhaustion or some other petty inconvenience.” Dropping his voice a
bit, he added, “He's a tough lad; he'll be fine, if a little footsore.”
“Why the special drilling?” asked Roland.
Pug shook his head as Gardan told them.
“Our young hero lost two swords. The
first was understandable, for the matter of the ship was vital, and in the
excitement of the moment such an oversight could be forgiven. But the second
was found lying on the wet ground near the pell the afternoon the Elf Queen and
her party left, and young Tomas was nowhere in sight.” Pug knew Tomas had
forgotten all about returning to his drilling when Gardell had come with the
hood for his fire pot.
Tomas reached the end of his appointed
route, did an about-face, and began his return. Gardan regarded the two bruised
and dirty boys and said, “What have you two young gentlemen been up to?”
Roland cleared his throat in a theatrical
fashion and said, “Ah . . . I was giving Pug a fist-boxing lesson. “
Gardan reached out and took Pug's chin in
his hand, tuming the boy's face for inspection. Evaluating the damage, he said,
“Roland, remind me never to ask you to instruct my men in swordplay -- we
couldn't withstand the casualty rate.” Releasing his hold upon Pug's face, he
said, “You'll have a beautiful eye in the morning, Squire.”
Changing the topic, Pug said, “How are
your sons, Gardan?”
“Well enough, Pug. They learn their craft
and dream of making themselves rich, save for the youngest, Faxon, who is still
intent on becoming a soldier next Choosing. The rest are becoming expert
cartwrights under my brother Jeheil's tutelage.” He smiled sadly. “With only
Faxon at home the house is very empty, though my wife seems glad for the peace.
. .” Then he grinned, an infectious smile that rarely could be viewed and not
answered. “Still, it won't be too long before the elder boys marry, and then
there'll be grandchildren under foot and plenty of merry noise again, from time
to time.”
As Tomas drew near, Pug asked, “May I
speak with the condemned?”
Gardan laughed, stroking his short beard.
“I guess I might look the other way for a moment, but be brief, Squire.” Pug
left Gardan talking with Roland and fell into step beside Tomas as he passed on
his way to the opposite end of the court. “How goes it?” Pug asked.
Out of the side of his mouth, Tomas said,
“Oh, just fine. Two more hours of this and I'll be ready for burial.”
“Can't you rest?”
“On the half hour I get five minutes to
stand at attention.” He reached the terminus of his post and did a reasonably
sharp about-face, then resumed walking back toward Gardan and Roland. “After
the fire-pot cover was finished, I came back to the pelf and found the sword
missing. I thought my heart would stop. I looked everywhere. I almost thrashed
Rulf, thinking he had hidden it to spite me. When I returned to the commons,
Fannon was sitting on my bunk, oiling down the blade. I thought the other
soldiers would hurt themselves holding in the laughter when he said, 'If you
judge yourself skilled enough with the sword, perhaps you'd care to spend your
time learning the proper way to walk post with a poll arm.' All day walking
punishment,” he added woefully. “I'll die.”
They passed Roland and Gardan, and Pug
struggled to feel sympathy. Like the others, he found the situation comical.
Hiding his amusement, he lowered his voice to a conspiratorial tone and said,
“I'd better get along. Should the Swordmaster come along, he might tack on an
extra day's marching.”
Tomas groaned at, the thought. “Gods preserve
me. Get away, Pug-”
Pug whispered, “When you're done, join us
in the ale shed if you're able.” Pug left Tomas's side and rejoined Gardan and
Roland. To the sergeant he said, “Thank you, Gardan.”
“You are welcome, Pug. Our young
knight-in-the-making will be fine, though he feels set upon now. He also chafes
at having an audience.”
Roland nodded. “Well, I expect he'll not
be losing a sword again soon.”
Gardan laughed. “Too true. Master Fannon
could forgive the first, but not the second. He thought it wise to see Tomas
didn't make a habit of it. Your friend is the finest student the Swordmaster
has known since Prince Arutha, but don't tell Tomas that. Fannon's always
hardest on those with the most potential. Well, good day to you both, Squires.
And, boys,” -- they paused -- “I won't mention the 'fist-boxing lesson.' “
They thanked the sergeant for his
discretion and walked toward the ale shed, with the measured cadence of
Gardan's voice filling the court.
PUG WAS WELL into his second mug of ale
and Roland finishing his fourth when Tomas appeared through the loose boards.
Dirty and sweating, he was rid of his armor and weapons. With a great display
of fatigue, he said, “The world must be coming to an end; Fannon excused me from
punishment early.”
“Why?” asked Pug.
Roland lazily reached over to a storage
shelf, next to where he sat upon a sack of grain soon to be used for making
ale, and got a cup from a stack. He tossed it to Tomas, who caught it, then
filled it from the hogshead of ale that Roland rested his feet upon.
Taking a deep drink, Tomas wiped his
mouth with the back of his hand and said, “Something's afoot. Fannon swooped
down, told me to put away my toys, and nearly dragged Gardan off, he was in such
a hurry.”
Pug said, “Maybe the Duke is getting
ready to ride east?”
Tomas said, “Maybe.” He studied his two
friends, taking note of their freshly bruised countenances. “All right. What
happened?”
Pug regarded Roland, indicating he should
explain the sad state of their appearance. Roland gave Tomas a lopsided grin
and said, “We had a practice bout in preparation for the Duke's fist-boxing
tourney.”
Pug nearly choked on his ale, then
laughed. Tomas shook his head. “If you two don't look a pair. Fighting over the
Princess?”
Pug and Roland exchanged glances; then as
one they leaped at Tomas and bore him to the floor under their combined weight.
Roland pinned Tomas to the floor, then, while Pug held him in place, took a
half-filled cup of ale and held it high. With mock solemnity Roland said, “I
hereby anoint thee, Tomas, First Seer of Crydee!” So saying, he poured the
contents of the cup over the struggling boy's face.
Pug belched, then said, “As do I.” He
poured what remained in his cup over his friend.
Tomas spat ale, laughing as he said,
“Right! I was right!” Struggling against the, weight upon him, he said, “Now
get off! Or need I remind you, Roland, of who gave you your last bloody nose?”
Roland moved off very slowly, intoxicated
dignity forcing him to move with glacial precision. “Quite right.” Turning
toward Pug, who had also rolled off Tomas, he said, “Still, it must be made
clear that at the time, the only reason Tomas managed to bloody my nose is that
during our fight he had an unfair advantage.”
Pug looked at Roland through bleary eyes
and said, “What unfair advantage?”
Roland put his finger to his lips
indicating secrecy, then said, “He was winning.”
Roland collapsed back upon the grain sack
and Pug and Tomas dissolved into laughter. Pug found the remark so funny, he
couldn't stop, and hearing Tomas's laughter only caused his own to redouble. At
last he sat up, gasping, with his sides hurting.
Catching his breath, Pug said, “I missed
that set-to. I was doing something else, but I don't remember what.”
“You were down in the village learning to
mend nets, if I remember rightly, when Roland first came here from Tulan.”
With a crooked grin Roland said, “I got
into an argument with someone or another -- do you remember who?” Tomas shook
his head no. “Anyway, I got into an argument, and Tomas came over and tried to
break it up. I couldn't believe this skinny boy-” Tomas began to voice an
objection, but Roland cut him off, holding a finger upright and wiggling it.
“Yes, you were. Very skinny. I couldn't believe this skinny boy -- skinny
common boy -- would presume to tell me -- a newly appointed member of the
Duke's court and a gentleman, I must add -- the way to behave. So I did the
only thing a proper gentleman could do under the circumstances.”
“What?” asked Pug.
“I hit him in the mouth.” The three
laughed again.
Tomas shook his head at the recollection,
while Roland said, “Then he proceeded to give me the worst beating I had since
the last time my father caught me out at something. That's when I got serious
about fist-boxing.”
With an air of mock gravity, Tomas said,
“Well, we were younger then.”
Pug refilled the cups. Moving his jaw in
discomfort, he said, “Well, right now I feel about a hundred years old.”
Tomas studied them both a moment.
“Seriously, what was the fight about?”
With a mixture of humor and regret,
Roland said, “Our liege lord's daughter, a girl of ineffable charm . . .”
“What's ineffable?” Tomas asked.
Roland looked at him with intoxicated
disdain. “Indescribable, dolt!”
Tomas shook his head. “I don't think the
Princess is an indescribable dolt -” He ducked as Roland's cup sailed through
the space occupied by his head an instant before. Pug fell over backward
laughing again.
Tomas grinned as Roland, in a display of
great ceremony, fetched down another cup from the shelf. “As I was saying,” he
began, filling the cup from the hogshead, “our lady, a girl of ineffable charms
-- if somewhat questionable judgment -- has taken it into her head -- for
reasons only the gods may fully comprehend -- to favor our young magician here
with her attentions. Why -- when she could spend time with me I can't imagine.”
He paused to belch. “In any event, we were discussing the proper manner in
which to accept such largess.”
Tomas looked at Pug, a huge grin on his
face. “You have my sympathy, Pug. You most certainly have your hands full.”
Pug felt himself flush. Then with a
wicked leer, he said, “Do I? And what about a certain young apprentice soldier,
well-known hereabouts, who has been seen sneaking into the larder with a
certain kitchen girl?” He leaned back and with a look of mock concern etched
upon his face added, “I'd hate to think what would happen to him should Neala
find out. . . .”
Tomas's mouth fell open. “You wouldn't .
. . you couldn't!”
Roland lay back, holding his sides.
“Never have I seen such a fair impersonation of a freshly landed fish!” He sat
up, crossed his eyes, and opened and shut his mouth rapidly. All three
degenerated into helpless mirth again.
Another round was poured, and Roland held
up his cup. “Gentlemen, a toast!”
Pug and Tomas held up their cups.
Roland's voice turned serious, and he
said, “No matter what differences we have had in the past, you are two fellows
I gladly count friends.” He held his cup higher and said, “To friendship!”
The three drained their cups and refilled
them. Roland said, “Your hand upon it.”
The three boys joined hands, and Roland
said, “No matter where we go, no matter how many years pass, never again shall
we be without friends.”
Pug was stuck by the sudden solemnity of
the pledge and said, “Friends!”
Tomas echoed Pug's words, and the three shook hands in a gesture
of affirmation.
Again the cups were drained, and the
afternoon sun quickly fled beyond the horizon as the three boys lost time in
the rosy glow of camaraderie and ale.
PUG CAME AWAKE, groggy and disoriented.
The faint glow from his nearly extinguished fire pot cast the room into
halftones of rose and black. A faint but persistent knocking sounded on his
door. He slowly stood, then nearly fell, still intoxicated from his drinking bout.
He had stayed with Tomas and Roland in the storage room all evening and into
the night, missing supper entirely. “Putting a considerable dent” in the
castle's ale supply, as Roland had described it. They hadn't partaken of any
great amount, but as their capacity was slight, it seemed a heroic undertaking.
Pug drew on his trousers and wobbled over
to the door. His eyelids felt gritty, and his mouth was cotton dry. Wondering
who could be demanding entrance in the middle of the night, he threw aside the
door.
A blur of motion passed him, and he
turned to find Carline standing in the room, a heavy cloak wrapped around her.
“Close the door!” she hissed. “Someone might pass the base of the tower and see
light upon the stairway.”
Pug obeyed, still disoriented. The only
thing that penetrated his numb mind was the thought that it was unlikely the
faint light from the coals would cast much brightness down the stairwell. He
shook his head, gathering his wits about him, and crossed to the fire pot. He
lit a taper from the coals and lit his lantern. The room sprang into cheery
brightness.
Pug's thinking began to pick up a little
as Carline looked about the room, taking stock of the disorderly pile of books
and scrolls next to the pallet. She peered into every comer of the room, then
said, “Where is that dragon thing you keep about?”
Pug's eyes focused a little, and
marshaling his balky tongue, he said, “Fantus? He's off somewhere, doing
whatever it is firedrakes do.”
Removing her cloak, she said, “Good. He
frightens me.” She sat on Pug's unmade pallet and looked sternly at him. “I
want to speak with you.” Pug's eyes went wide, and he stared, for Carline was
wearing only a light cotton sleeping gown. While covering her from neck to ankles,
it was thin and clung to her figure with alarming tenacity. Pug suddenly
realized he was dressed only in trousers and hurriedly grabbed up his tunic
from where he had dropped it onto the floor and pulled it over his head. As he
struggled with the shirt, the last shreds of alcoholic fog evaporated. “Gods!”
he said, in a pained whisper. “Should your father learn of this, he'd have my
head.”
“Not if you've wits enough to keep your
voice lowered,” she answered with a petulant look.
Pug crossed to the stool near his pallet,
freed of his drunken wobble by newly arrived terror. She studied his rumpled
appearance and with a note of disapproval in her voice said, “You've been
drinking.” When he didn't deny it, she added, “'When you and Roland didn't appear
at supper, I wondered where you'd gotten yourselves off to. It's a good thing
Father also skipped the meal with the court, otherwise he'd have sent someone
to find you.”
Pug's discomfort was growing at an
alarming rate as every tale of what horrible fate awaits lowborn lovers of
noblewomen rushed back into his memory. That Carline was an uninvited guest and
that nothing untoward had occurred were niceties he didn't think the Duke would
find particularly mitigating. Gulping down panic, Pug said, “Carline, you can't
stay here. You'll get us both into more trouble than I can imagine.”
Her expression became determined. “I'm
not leaving until I tell you what I came to say.”
Pug knew it was futile to argue. He had
seen that look too many times in the past. With a resigned sigh, he said, “All
right, then, what is it?”
Carline's eyes widened at his tone.
“Well, if that's how you're going to be, I won't tell you!”
Pug suppressed a groan and sat back with
his eyes closed. Slowly shaking his head, he said, “Very well. I'm sorry.
Please, what do you want me to do?”
She patted the pallet next to her. “Come,
sit here.”
He complied, trying to ignore the feeling
that his fate -- an abruptly short life -- was being decided by this capricious
girl. He landed rather than sat beside her. She giggled at the groan he made.
“You got drunk! What's it like?”
“At this moment, not terribly
entertaining. I feel like a used kitchen rag.”
She tried to look sympathetic, but her
blue eyes sparkled with mirth. With a theatrical pout, she said, “ You boys get
to do all the interesting things, like sword work and archery. Being a proper
lady can be such a bore. Father would have a fit if I should ever drink more
than a cup of watered wine with supper.”
With rising desperation in his voice, Pug
said, “Nothing compared to the fit he will have if you're found here. Carline,
why did you come here?”
She ignored the question. “What were you
and Roland doing this afternoon, fighting?” He nodded. “Over me?” she asked, a
glimmer in her eyes.
Pug sighed. “Yes, over you.” Her pleased
look at the reply nettled him, and irritation crept into his voice. “Carline,
you've used him rather badly.”
“He's a spineless idiot!” she snapped
back. “If I asked him to jump off the wall, he'd do it.”
“Carline,” Pug nearly whined, “why have-”
His question was cut off as she leaned
forward and covered his mouth with her own. The kiss was one-sided, for Pug was
too stunned to respond. She quickly sat back, leaving him agape, and she said,
“Well?”
Lacking any original response, Pug said,
“What?”
Her eyes flashed. “The kiss, you
simpleton.”
“Oh!” said Pug, still in shock. “It was .
. . nice.”
She rose and looked down on him, her eyes
widening with mixed anger and embarrassment. She crossed her arms and stood
tapping her foot, making a sound like summer hail striking the window shutters.
Her tone was low and harsh. “Nice! Is that all you have to say?”
Pug watched her, a variety of conflicting
emotions surging inside. At this moment panic was contesting with a nearly
painful awareness of how lovely she looked in the dim lantern light, her
features alive and animated, her dark hair loose around her face, and the thin
shift pulled tight across her bosom by her crossed arms. His own confusion made
his pose seem unintentionally casual, which further fueled her petulance.
“You're the first man -- not counting Father and my brothers -- I've ever
kissed, and all you can say is nice? “
Pug was unable to recover. Still awash
with tumultuous emotions, he blurted, “Very nice.”
She placed her hands upon her hips-which
pulled her nightdress in disturbing new directions and stood looking down on
him with an expression of open disbelief. In controlled tones she said, “I come
here and throw myself at you. I risk getting myself banished to a convent for
life!” Pug noticed she failed to mention his possible fate. “Every other boy --
and not a slight number of the older nobles -- in the West fall over themselves
to get my attention. And all you do is treat me like some common kitchen
drudge, a passing amusement for the young lord.”
Pug's wits returned, less of their own
accord than from the realization that Carline was arguing her case a little
more emphatically than was warranted. Suddenly struck with the insight that
there was a fair bit of dramatics mixed in with her genuine irritation, he
said, “Carline, wait. Give me a moment.”
“A moment! I've given you weeks. I
thought, well, I thought we had an understanding.”
Pug tried to look sympathetic, as his
mind raced. “Sit down, please. Let me try to explain.”
She hesitated, then returned to sit next
to him. Somewhat clumsily he took her hands in his own. Instantly he was struck
by the nearness of the girl, her warmth, the smell of her hair and skin. The
feelings of desire he had felt on the bluffs returned with stunning impact, and
he had to fight to keep his mind upon what he wished to say.
Forcing his thoughts away from the hot
surge he experienced, he said, “Carline, I do care for you. A great deal.
Sometimes I even think I love you as much as Roland does, but most of the time
I only get confused when you're around. That's the problem: there's so much
confusion inside of me. I don't understand what it is I feel most of the time.”
Her eyes narrowed, for this obviously
wasn't the answer she expected. Her tone was sharp as she said, “I don't know
what you mean. I've never known a boy so caught up in understanding things.”
Pug managed to force a smile. “Magicians
are trained to seek explanations. Understanding things is very important to
us.” He saw a flicker of comprehension in her eyes at this and pressed on. “I
have two offices now, both new to me. I may not become a magician, in spite of
Kulgan's attempts to make me one, for I have trouble with a lot of my work. I
don't really avoid you, you see, but with this trouble I have, I must spend as
much time with my studies as I can.”
Seeing his explanation was gaining little
sympathy, he changed tactics. “In any event, I have little time to consider my
other office. I may end up another noble of your father's court, running my
estates -- small though they might be -- caring for my tenants, answering calls
to arms, and the rest. But I can't even think of that until I resolve this
other matter, my studies of magic. I must keep trying until I'm satisfied I
made the wrong choice. Or until Kulgan dismisses me,” he added quietly.
He stopped and studied her face. Her
large blue eyes watched him intently. “Magicians are of little consequence in
the Kingdom. I mean, should I become a master magician . . . Well, could you
see yourself married to a magician, whatever his rank?”
She looked slightly alarmed. Quickly she
leaned over and kissed him again, rupturing his already frayed composure. “Poor
Pug,” she said, pulling away a little. Her soft voice rang sweetly to his ears.
“You don't have to be. A magician, I mean. You have land and title, and I know
Father could arrange others when the time was right.”
“It's not a question of what I want,
don't you see? It's a question of what I am. Part of the problem may be I
haven't truly given myself over to my work. Kulgan took me for his apprentice
as much from pity as need, you know. And in spite of what he and Tully have
said, I've never been really convinced I was especially talented. But perhaps I
need to dedicate myself, commit myself to becoming a magician.” He took a
breath. “How can I do that if I'm concerning myself with my estates and
offices? Or gaining new ones?” He paused. “Or you?”
Carline bit her lower lip slightly, and
Pug fought down the urge to take her in his arms and tell her everything would
be all right. He had no doubt that once he did that, matters would quickly be
beyond his control. No girl in his limited experience, even the prettier ones
in the town, aroused such strong feelings in him.
Lowering her lashes a little as she
looked down, she softly said, “I'll do whatever you say, Pug.” Pug felt relief
for a moment, then the full impact of what she had just said hit him. Oh, gods!
he thought. No magician's trick could keep him focused in the face of youthful
passion. He frantically sought some way to drive desire from him and then
thought of her father. Instantly an image of a scowling Duke of Crydee standing
before the hangman's gibbet banished most of his lust.
Taking a deep breath, Pug said, “In my
own way, I do love you, Carline.” Her face came aglow, and forfending disaster,
he plunged on. “But I think I should try to find out about myself before I try
to make up my mind about the rest.” His concentration was sorely tested as the
girl seemed to ignore his remarks, being busy kissing his face.
Then she stopped and sat back. Her happy
expression faded into one of thoughtfulness as her natural intelligence
overrode her childish need to get everything she wanted. Comprehension came
into her eyes as he said, “If I chose now, Carline, I might always doubt the
choice. Would you want to face the possibility I would come to resent you for
the choice I made?”
She said nothing for a while, then
quietly said, “No. I don't think I could stand that, Pug.”
He breathed a sigh of relief as he felt
tension drain away. Suddenly the room seemed cold, and both of them shivered.
Carline gripped his hands tight, with surprising strength. She mustered a smile
and said, with forced calm, “I understand, Pug.” She took a long breath, then
softly added, “That's why I think I love you. You could never be false with
anyone. Least of all with yourself.”
“Or you, Carline.” Her eyes grew moist,
but she maintained her smile. “This isn't easy,” Pug said, assaulted by
feelings for the girl. “Please, please, believe me, this is not easy.”
Suddenly the tension broke, and Carline
laughed softly, sweet music to Pug. Caught halfway between tears and laughter,
she said, “Poor Pug. I've upset you.”
Pug's face showed his relief at her
understanding. He felt buoyant with his affection for the girl. Shaking his
head slowly, with a smile of released tension that gave him a somewhat silly
expression, he said, “You've no idea, Carline. No idea.” He reached out and
touched her face tenderly. “We have time. I'm not going anywhere.”
From under lowered lashes, blue eyes
regarded him with worry. “You'll be leaving with Father soon.”
“I mean when I return. I'll be here for
years.” Gently he kissed her cheek. Forcing a lighter tone, he said, “I can't
inherit for three more years, that's the law. And I doubt your father would
part with you for as many years yet.” Attempting a wry smile, he added, “In
three years you might not be able to stand the sight of me.”
She came softly into his arms, holding
him tightly, her face resting on his shoulder. “Never, Pug. I could never care
for another.” Pug could only marvel at the feel of her. Her body trembled as
she said, “I don't have words, Pug. You're the only one who tried to . . .
understand me. You see more than anyone else.”
Gently he pulled back a little and raised
up her face with his hand. Again he kissed her, tasting salty tears upon her
lips. She suddenly responded, holding him tighter and kissing him with passion.
He could feel the heat of her body through the thin fabric of her gown, and
heard soft sighing sounds in his ear as he felt himself drifting back into
mindless passion, his own body beginning to respond. Steeling his resolve, he
gently disengaged himself from Carline's embrace. Slowly he forced himself away
from her and, with regret in his voice, said, “I think you should return to
your rooms, Carline.”
Carline looked up at Pug, her cheeks
flushed and her lips slightly parted. Her breathing was husky, and Pug fought a
mighty struggle to control himself and the situation. More firmly, he said,
“You had best return to your rooms, now. “
They rose slowly from the sleeping
pallet, each intensely aware of the other. Pug held her hand a moment longer,
then released it. He bent and retrieved her cloak, holding it for her as she
slipped into it. Guiding her to the door, he pulled it open and peered down the
steps of the tower. With no hint of anyone nearby, he opened the door fully.
She stepped through, then turned. Softly she said, “I know you think me a
sometimes silly and vain girl, and there are times when I am, Pug. But I do
love you.”
Before he could say a word, she vanished
down the stairs, the faint rustling of her cloak echoing in the darkness. Pug
quietly closed the door and then put out the lamp. He lay upon his pallet,
staring up into the darkness. He could still smell her fresh scent in the air
around him, and the remembered touch of her soft body under his hands made them
tingle. Now that she was gone and the need for self-control gone with her, he
let longing rush through himself. He could see her face alive with desire for
him. Covering his eyes with his forearm, he groaned softly to himself and said,
“I'm going to hate myself tomorrow.”
PUG AWOKE TO pounding on the door. His
first thought as he scrambled toward the door was of the Duke having learned of
Carline's visit. He's here to hang me! was all he could think. It was still
dark outside, so Pug opened the door expecting the worst. Instead of the girl's
angry father leading a company of castle guards, a castle porter stood outside
the door.
“Sorry to wake you, Squire, but Master
Kulgan wishes you to join him at once,” he said, pointing up toward Kulgan's
room. “At once,” he repeated, mistaking Pug's expression of relief for one of
sleepy confusion. Pug nodded and shut the door.
He took stock. He was still dressed,
having fallen asleep again without undressing. He stood quietly as his pounding
heart stilled. His eyes felt as if they were packed with sand, and his stomach
was upset, leaving a foul taste in his mouth. He went to his small table and
splashed cold water on his face, muttering that he would never have another cup
of ale again.
Pug reached Kulgan's room and found the
magician standing over a pile of personal belongings and books. Sitting on a
stool by the magician's sleeping pallet was Father Tully. The priest watched
the magician adding to the steadily growing pile and said, “Kulgan, you can't
take all those books along. You would need two pack mules for them, and where
you would keep them aboard ship where they would do you any good is beyond me.”
Kulgan looked at two books he held, like
a mother regarding her young. “But I must take them along to further the boy's
education.”
“Pah! So you'll have something to mull
over around the campfires and aboard ship, more likely. Spare me excuses. You
will be riding hard to clear the South Pass before it is snowed in. And who can
read in a ship crossing the Bitter Sea in winter? The boy will only be away
from his studies a month or two. He'll have over eight years more study after
that. Give him a rest. “
Pug was perplexed by the conversation and
tried to ask a question, but was ignored by the two old companions as they
bickered. After several more remonstrations from Tully, Kulgan surrendered. “I
suppose you’re right,” he said, tossing the books onto his pallet. He saw Pug
waiting by the door and said, “What? Still here?”
Pug said, “You haven't told me why you
sent for me yet, Kulgan.”
“Oh?” Kulgan said, eyes blinking wide
like those of a barn owl caught in a bright light. “I haven't?” Pug nodded.
“Well, then. The Duke orders us ready to ride at first light. The dwarves have
not answered, but he will not wait. The North Pass is almost certain to be
closed, and he fears snow in the South Pass.” Kulgan said as an aside, “Which
he should. My weather nose tells me snow is nearly here. We are in for an early
and hard winter.”
Tully shook his head as he stood up.
“This from the man who predicted drought seven years ago, when we had the worst
flooding in memory. Magicians! Charlatans, all of you.” He walked slowly to the
door, then stopped to look at Kulgan, his mock irritation replaced by genuine
concern. “Though you are right this time, Kulgan. My bones ache deeply. Winter
is upon us.
Tully left and Pug asked, “We're
leaving?”
With exasperation, Kulgan said, “Yes! I
just said so, didn't I? Get your things together and quickly. Dawn's less than
an hour away.”
Pug turned to leave, when Kulgan said,
“Oh, a moment, Pug.”
The magician crossed to the door and
glanced through it, ensuring Tully was down the stairs and out of earshot.
Kulgan turned to Pug and said, “I have no fault to find with your behavior . .
. but should you in the future find yourself with another late-night caller, I
suggest you not subject yourself to further . . . testing. I'm not so sure you
would do as well a second time.”
Pug
blanched. “You heard?”
Kulgan
pointed to a spot where the floor and wall met. “That fire-pot thing of yours
exits the wall a foot below there, and it seems a marvelous conduit for sound.”
Absently he said, “I'll have to look to see how it conducts sound so well when
we return.” Returning to the boy, he said, “In any event, I was working late
and didn't mean to eavesdrop, but I heard every word.” Pug flushed. Kulgan
said, “I don't mean to embarrass you, Pug. You acted rightly and showed
surprising wisdom.” Putting his hand upon Pug's shoulder, he said, “I'm not one
to advise you in such matters, I fear, as I've had scant experience with women,
of any age, let alone such young and headstrong ones.” Looking Pug in the eyes,
he said, “But this much I do know, it is almost impossible in the heat of the
moment to understand long-term consequences. I am proud you were able to do
this.”
Pug smiled self-consciously. “It was easy
enough, Kulgan, I just kept my mind focused on something.”
...
What?'
“Capital punishment.”
Kulgan laughed, a sharp barking sound, then
said, “Very well, but the potential for disaster would be as high for the
Princess, too, Pug. A city-bred noblewoman of the eastern court may indulge
herself in as many lovers of any rank that she can enjoy while maintaining
discretion, but the only daughter of a frontier duke who is so closely related
to the king has no such luxury. She must be above suspicion in all things. Even
suspicion could harm Carline. One who cares for her would take that into
consideration. Do you understand?”
Pug nodded, fully relieved now that he
had resisted temptation the night before.
“Good, I know you'll be careful in the
future.” Kulgan smiled. “And don't mind old Tully. He's just cross because the
Duke ordered him to stay behind. He still thinks he's as young as his acolytes.
Now run along and get ready. Dawn's less than an hour away.”
Pug nodded and hurried off, leaving
Kulgan to regard the piles of books before him. With regret he picked the
nearest one up and placed it on a nearby shelf. After a moment he grabbed
another and stuffed it into a sack. “Just one won't cause any harm,” he said to
the invisible specter of Tully shaking his head in disapproval. He put the rest
of the books back on the shelf, save the last volume, which he shoved into the
sack. “All right, then,” he said defiantly, “two!”
Light
wet snow was falling.
Pug shivered under his greatcloak,
sitting astride his horse. He had been in the saddle for the last ten minutes,
waiting as the rest of the Duke's company made ready.
The courtyard filled with hurrying,
shouting men, lashing supplies onto the balky mules of the baggage train. Dawn
was just commencing, giving the courtyard a little color instead of the blacks
and grey that had greeted Pug when he came from the tower. Porters had already
carried his baggage down and were securing it among the other items being
brought along.
A panicked “Whoa!” erupted behind Pug,
and he turned to see Tomas pulling frantically at the reins of a spirited bay,
his head tossing high. Like Pug's own sleek, light war-horse, he was a far cry
from the old draft animal they had ridden to the site of the shipwreck. “Don't
pull so hard,” Pug shouted. “You'll saw at his mouth and make him mad. Pull
back gently and release a couple of times.”
Tomas did, and the horse quieted down,
moving alongside Pug's own. Tomas sat as if the saddle had nails sticking
through it. His face was a study in concentration as he tried to guess what the
horse would do next.
“If you hadn't been walking post
yesterday, you could have gone riding, getting in some practice. Now I'll have
to teach you as we go.”
Tomas looked thankful for the promise of
aid. Pug smiled. “By the time we reach Bordon, you'll be riding like the King's
Lancers.”
“And walking like a ruptured spinster.”
Tomas shifted in the saddle. “Already I feel like I've been sitting on a stone
block for hours. After just a little way from the saddling post.”
Pug jumped down from his horse and looked
over Tomas's saddle, making Tomas move his leg so he could examine under the
saddle flap, then asked, “Who saddled this horse for you?”
“Rulf. Why?”
“I thought so. He's paying you back for
threatening him about that sword, or because we're friends. He doesn't dare
threaten me anymore, now that I'm a Squire, but he thinks nothing of knotting
your stirrup leathers. A couple of hours riding like this, and you'd be
standing at meals for a month, if you didn't get pitched on your head and
killed. Here, get down and I'll show you.”
Tomas dismounted, halfway between a leap
and a fall. Pug showed him the knots. “They would have rubbed the inside of
your thighs raw by the end of the day. And they're not long enough.” Pug took
out the knots and adjusted the leathers to the proper length. “It's going to
feel very strange for a while, but you've got to keep your heels down. I'll
remind you until you're sick of hearing it, but it'll keep you out of trouble
when you do it without thought. And don't try to grip with your knees; that's
wrong, and it'll make your legs so sore, you'll hardly be able to walk by
tomorrow.” He went on with a few basic instructions and inspected the cinch,
which was loose. He tried tightening it, and the horse sucked air. Pug struck
the gelding a blow in the side, and the animal exhaled sharply. Pug quickly
pulled the cinch strap and said, “Sometime today, you most likely would have
found yourself listing to one side, a most discomforting position.”
“That Rulf”' Tomas turned toward the stable.
“I'll thrash him within an inch of death!”
Pug grabbed his friend's arm. “Wait. We
don't have time for brawling.”
Tomas stood with fists clenched, then
relaxed with a relieved sigh. “I'm in no condition for fighting, anyway.” He
turned to see Pug inspecting the horse.
Pug shook his head, then winced. “Me
too.” He finished inspecting the saddle and bridle, and the horse shied. Pug
gentled the horse. “Rulf's also given you a temperamental mount. This fellow
would have probably thrown you before noon, and be halfway back to the stable
before you hit the ground. With sore legs and shortened stirrup leathers, you
never would have stood a chance. I'll trade with you.” Tomas looked relieved
and struggled into the saddle of the other horse. Pug readjusted the stirrups
for both riders. “We can swap our travel rolls when we take our noon meal.” Pug
then soothed the high-strung war-horse and climbed nimbly into the saddle.
Feeling surer hands at the reins, and a firm leg on either side, the gelding
quieted.
“Ho! Martin,” shouted Tomas as the Duke's
Huntmaster walked into view. “Are you traveling with us? “
A wry grin split the face of the hunter,
who was wearing his heavy green cloak over his forester's leathers. “For a
short while, Tomas. I'm to lead some trackers around the boundaries of Crydee.
I'll be heading due eastward when we come to the south branch of the river. Two
of my trackers were on their way an hour ago, breaking trail for the Duke.”
“What do you think of this Tsurani
business, Martin?” Pug asked.
The still-youthful Huntmaster's face
clouded. “If elves are given to worry, there is something to worry over.” He
turned toward the front of the assembling line. “Excuse me, I must instruct my
men.” He left the boys sitting alone.
Pug asked Tomas, “How's your head this
morning?”
Tomas made a face. “About two sizes
smaller than when I awoke.” His face brightened a bit. “Still, the excitement
seems to have stopped the banging inside. I feel almost good.”
Pug gazed at the keep. Memories of his encounter last night kept tugging
at his mind, and suddenly he regretted the need to travel with the Duke.
Tomas noticed his friend's pensive mood
and said, “Why so glum? Aren't you excited about going?”
“It's nothing. Just thinking.”
Tomas studied Pug for a moment. “I think
I understand.” With a deep sigh, he sat back in the saddle, and his horse
stamped and nickered. “I, for one, am glad to be leaving. I think Neala has
tumbled to that little matter we spoke of yesterday.”
Pug laughed. “That will teach you to be
mindful of who you escort into pantries.”
Tomas smiled sheepishly.
The doors to the keep opened, and the
Duke and Arutha came out, accompanied by Kulgan, Tully, Lyam, and Roland.
Carline followed, with Lady Marna behind. The Duke and his companions made
their way to the head of the column, but Carline hurried down to where Pug and
Tomas sat. As she passed, guardsmen saluted her, but she paid them no heed. She
reached Pug's side, and when he bowed politely, she said, “Oh, get off that
stupid horse.”
Pug climbed down, and Carline threw her
arms around his neck, holding him closely for a moment. “Take care and stay
well,” she said. “Don't let anything happen to you.” She pulled away, then
kissed him briefly. “And come home.” Holding back tears, she hurried to the
head of the line, where her father and brother waited to say good-bye.
Tomas let out a theatrical whoop and
laughed, while Pug remounted; the soldiers nearby attempted to restrain their
own amusement. “It seems the Princess has made plans for you, m'lord,” Tomas
gibed. He ducked as Pug stirred to give him a backhanded cuff. The motion
caused his horse to start forward, and suddenly Tomas was fighting to bring his
horse back into line. The horse seemed determined to go in any direction except
the one Tomas wished; now it was Pug's turn to laugh. He finally moved his own
horse alongside Tomas's and herded the fractious mare back into line. She
flattened her ears and turned to nip at Pug's horse, and the short boy said,
“We both have accounts to settle with Rulf, he gave us two horses that don't
like each other, too. We'll trade your mount off with one of the soldiers.”
With relief Tomas half dismounted, half
fell to the ground, and Pug directed the exchange with a soldier down the line.
The exchange was made, and as Tomas returned to his place, Roland came down to
where they stood and offered them both his hand. “You two watch yourselves,
now. There's plenty of trouble waiting out there without your looking for it.”
They acknowledged they would, and Roland
said to Pug, “I'll keep an eye on things for you.”
Pug noticed his wry smile, glanced back
to where Carline stood with her father, and said, “No doubt,” then added,
“Roland, whatever happens, good luck to you, too.
Roland said, “Thank you. I'll take that
as it's meant.” To Tomas he said, “And things are certainly going to be dull
without you around.”
Tomas said, “Given what's going on, dull
would be welcome.”
Roland said, “As long as it's not too
dull, right? Take good care! You're a bothersome pair, but I'd hate to lose
you.”
Tomas laughed as Roland walked off with a
friendly wave. Watching the Squire go up to the Duke's party, and seeing
Carline standing next to her father, Pug turned to Tomas. “That decides it. I
am glad to be going. I need a rest.”
Sergeant Gardan came riding back with
orders to move the column, and they set off. The Duke and Arutha rode in the van,
with Kulgan and Gardan behind. Martin Longbow and his trackers set off at a run
beside the Duke's horse. Twenty pair of mounted guards followed, with Tomas and
Pug nestled between them and the baggage train at the rear with its five pair
of guards. Slowly at first, then with increasing speed, they moved through the
gates of the castle and down the south road.
THEY HAD BEEN riding for three days, the
last two through dense woodlands. Martin Longbow and his men had turned east
that morning as they crossed the southern branch of the river Crydee, called
river Boundary. It marked the border between Crydee and the Barony of Carse,
one of Lord Borric's vassal provinces.
The sudden snows of early winter had come
and draped the autumn landscape in white. Many of the denizens of the forest
had been caught unaware by the sudden winter, rabbits whose coats were still
more brown than white, and ducks and geese who scampered across half-frozen
ponds, resting as they migrated south. The snow fell in flurries of heavy wet
flakes, melting slightly during the day, to refreeze at night, making a thin
crust of ice. As the horses' and mules' hooves cracked through the ice, the
crunching of leaves underneath could be heard in the still winter air.
In the afternoon Kulgan observed a flight
of firedrakes circling in the distance, barely visible through the trees. The
colorful beasts, red, gold, green, and blue in color, raced over the treetops
and dipped out of sight, then reappeared as they spiraled upward, with cries
and small bursts of flame. Kulgan reined in as the train passed and waited for
Pug and Tomas to overtake him. When they were alongside, he pointed out the
display, saying, “It has the appearance of a mating flight. See, the more
aggressively the males act, the more responsive the females. Oh, I wish we had,
time to study this more closely.”
Pug followed the creatures with his eyes
as they rode through a clearing, then, somewhat startled, said, “Kulgan, isn't
that Fantus there, hovering near the edge?”
Kulgan's eyes widened. “By the gods! I
think it is. “
Pug asked, “Shall I call him?”
The magician chuckled. “Given the
attention he's receiving from those females, I think it would do little good.”
They lost sight of the congregation of drakes as they rode after the Duke's
train. Kulgan said, “Unlike most creatures, drakes mate at first snow. The
females will lay eggs in nests, then sleep the winter, warming them with their
bodies. In the spring the young hatch and are cared for by their mothers.
Fantus will most likely spend the next few days . . . ahem, fathering a clutch
of young. Then he'll be back at the keep, annoying Megar and the kitchen staff
for the rest of the winter.
Tomas and Pug laughed. Tomas's father
made a great show of considering the playful drake a plague from the gods
visited upon his well-ordered kitchen, but on several occasions both boys had
spied Megar lavishing some of the choicest dinner scraps upon the beast. In the
fifteen months since Pug had become Kulgan's apprentice, Fantus had become a
winged, scaled house pet to most of the Duke's staff, though a few, like the
Princess, found Fantus's dragonlike appearance disquieting.
They continued to move east by south, as
quickly as the terrain would permit. The Duke was concerned about reaching the
South Pass before the snows made it impassable, cutting them off from the east
until spring. Kulgan's weather sense had allowed they had a fair chance of
making it before any big storms struck. Soon they came to the edge of the
deepest part of the great southern forests, the Green Heart.
Deep within the glades, at prearranged
locations, two troops of guards from the keep at Carse were waiting for them
with fresh horses. Duke Borric had sent pigeons south with instructions for
Baron Bellamy, who sent a reply the same way that horses would be waiting. The
remounts and guards would be hurrying to the meeting places from the Jonril
garrison, maintained by Bellamy and Tolburt of Tulan near the edge of the great
forests. By changing mounts, the Duke would save three, perhaps four days of
travel to Bordon. Longbow's trackers had left clear blazes for the Duke to
follow, and they were due to reach the first meeting place later that day.
Pug turned to Tomas. The taller boy was
sitting his horse somewhat better, though he still lapped his arms like a
chicken trying to fly when they were forced to a fast trot. Gardan came riding
back down the line, to where the boys rode before the baggage guards. “Be wary,”
he shouted. “From here to the Grey Towers is the darkest part of the Green
Heart. Even the elves pass through here quickly and in numbers.” The sergeant
of the Duke's Guard turned his horse and galloped back to the head of the line.
They traveled the balance of the day,
every eye searching the forest for signs of trouble. Tomas and Pug made light
conversation, with Tomas remarking on the chance of a good fight. Both boys'
banter sounded hollow to the soldiers around them, who sat silent and vigilant.
They reached the place of meeting just before sundown. It was a clearing of
considerable size, with several tree stumps grown over with ground cover that
peeked through the snow, showing that the trees had been harvested long ago.
The fresh horses stood in a picket, each
tied to a long line, while six guards stood careful watch around them. When the
Duke's party had ridden up, they had weapons ready. They lowered their weapons
when they saw the familiar banner of Crydee. These were men of Carse, who wore
the scarlet tabard of Baron Bellamy quartered by a gold cross, a golden griffin
rampant over their hearts. The shield of each man bore the same device.
The sergeant of the six guards saluted.
“Well met, my lord.”
Borric acknowledged the salute. “The
horses?”
“They are fit, lord, and restless from
waiting. As are the men.”
Borric dismounted; another soldier of
Carse took his horse's reins.
“Trouble?”
“None, my lord, but this place is suited
for other than honest men. All last night we stood watches by twos and felt the
crawl of eyes upon us.” The sergeant was a scarred veteran, who had fought
goblins and bandits in his day. He was not the type to give in to flights of
imagination, and the Duke acknowledged this. “Double the watch this night. You
will escort the horses back to your garrison tomorrow. I would rather have them
rested a day, but this is a poor place.”
Prince Arutha came forward. “I have also
felt eyes upon us for the last few hours, Father.”
Borric turned to the sergeant. “It may be
that we have been shadowed by a band of brigands, seeking to judge our mission.
I will send two men back with you, for fifty men or forty-eight is of little
difference, but eight is a far better number than six.” If the sergeant felt
any relief at this, he did not show it, simply saying, “I thank my lord.”
Borric dismissed the man and with Arutha
walked toward the center of the camp, where a large fire was burning. The
soldiers were erecting rude shelters against the night wind, as they had each
night of the journey. Borric saw two mules with the horses and noted that bales
of hay had been brought along. Arutha followed his gaze. “Bellamy is a prudent
man; he serves Your Grace well.”
Kulgan, Gardan, and the boys approached
the two nobles, who stood warming themselves before the fire. Darkness was
descending quickly; even at noon there was little light in the snow-shrouded
forest. Borric looked around and shivered from more than the cold.
“This is an ill-omened place. We will do
well to be away as soon as possible.”
They ate a quick meal and turned in. Pug
and Tomas lay close, starting at every strange sound until fatigue lulled them
to sleep.
THE DUKE'S COMPANY passed deep into the
forest, through glades so thick that often the trackers had had to change their
course, doubling back to find another way for the horses, marking the trail as
they went. Much of this forest was dark and twisted, with choking underbrush
that impeded travel.
Pug said to Tomas, “I doubt the sun ever
shines here.” He spoke in soft tones. Tomas slowly nodded, his eyes watching
the trees. Since leaving the men from Carse three days ago, they had felt more
tension each passing day. The noises of the forest had lessened as they moved
deeper into the trees, until they now rode in silence. It was as if the animals
and birds themselves shunned this part of the forest. Pug knew it was only
because there were few animals that hadn't migrated south or gone into
hibernation, but that knowledge didn't lessen his and Tomas's dread.
Tomas slowed down. “I feel something
terrible is about to happen.”
Pug said, “You've been saying that for
two days now.” After a minute he added, “I hope we don't have to fight. I don't
know how to use this sword, in spite of what you've tried to show me.”
“Here,” said Tomas, holding something
out. Pug took it and found a small pouch inside of which was a collection of
small, smooth rocks and a sling. “I thought you might feel better with a sling.
I brought one, too.
They rode for another hour, then stopped
to rest the horses and eat a cold meal. It was midmorning, and Gardan inspected
each horse, ensuring it was fit. No soldier was given a chance to overlook the
slightest possible injury or illness. Should a horse falter, its rider would
have to double up with another, and those two would have to return as best they
could, for the Duke could not wait for such a delay. This far from any safe
haven, it was something no one wished to think about or discuss aloud.
They were due to meet the second
detachment of horses at midafternoon. The breakneck pace of the first four days
had given way to a careful walk, for to rush through the trees would be
dangerous. At the rate they were progressing, they would be on time. Still, the
Duke was chafing at the slow pace.
On and on they rode, at times having to
stop while guards drew swords and cut at the brush before them, their sword
blows echoing through the stillness of the forest as they followed the narrow
path left by the trackers.
Pug was lost in thoughts of Carline when,
later, a shout erupted from the front of the column, out of sight of the boys.
Suddenly the horsemen near Pug and Tomas were charging forward, oblivious to the
thicket around them, dodging low-hanging branches by instinct.
Pug and Tomas spurred their horses after
the others, and soon their senses recorded a blur of brown and white, as
snow-spotted trees seemed to fly past. They stayed low, close to the necks of
their mounts, avoiding most tree branches, while they struggled to stay aboard.
Pug looked over his shoulder and saw Tomas failing behind. Branches and twigs
caught at Pug's cloak as he crashed through the forest into a clearing. The
sounds of battle assaulted his ears, and the boy saw fighting in progress. The
remount horses were trying to pull up their stakes, while fighting exploded
around them. Pug could only vaguely make out the form of combatants, dark
shrouded shapes slashing upward with swords at the horsemen.
A figure broke away and came running
toward him, avoiding the blow of a guard a few yards ahead of Pug. The strange
warrior grinned wickedly at Pug, seeing only the boy before him. Raising his
sword for a blow, the fighter screamed and clawed at his face as blood ran
between his fingers. Tomas had reined in behind Pug and with a yell let fly
with another stone. “I thought you'd get yourself into trouble,” he shouted. He
spurred his horse forward and rode over the fallen figure. Pug sat rooted for a
moment, then spurred his own horse. Pulling out his sling, he let fly at a
couple of targets, but couldn't be sure if the stones struck.
Suddenly Pug was in a place of calm in
the fighting. On all sides he could see figures in dark grey cloaks and leather
armor pouring out from the forest. They looked like elves, save their hair was
darker, and they shouted in a language unpleasant to Pug's ears. Arrows flew
from the trees, emptying saddles of Crydee horsemen.
Lying about were bodies of both attackers
and soldiers. Pug saw the lifeless bodies of a dozen men of Carse, as well as
Longbow's two lead trackers, tied to stakes in lifelike poses around the
campfire. Scarlet bloodstains spotted the white snow beside them. The ruse had worked,
for the Duke had ridden straight into the clearing, and now the trap was
sprung.
Lord Borric's voice rang out over the
fray. “To me! To me! We are surrounded.”
Pug looked about for Tomas as he
frantically kicked his mount toward the Duke and his gathering men. Arrows
filled the air, and the screams of the dying echoed in the glade. Borric
shouted, “This way!” and the survivors followed him. They crashed into the
forest, riding over attacking bowmen. Shouts followed them while they galloped
away from the ambush, keeping low over the necks of their mounts, avoiding
arrows and low-hanging branches.
Pug frantically pulled his horse aside,
avoiding a large tree. He looked about, but could not see Tomas. Fixing his
gaze upon the back of another horseman, Pug determined to concentrate on one
thing only, not losing sight of the man's back. Strange loud cries could be
heard from behind, and other voices answered from one side. Pug's mouth was dry
and his hands sweating in the heavy gloves he wore.
They sped through the forest, shouts and
cries echoing around them. Pug lost track of the distance covered, but he
thought it surely a mile or more. Still the voices shouted in the forest,
calling to others the course of the Duke's flight.
Suddenly Pug was crashing through the thick underbrush, forcing
his lathered, panting horse up a small but steep rise. All around him was a
gloom of grey and greens, broken only by patches of white. Atop the rise the
Duke waited, his sword drawn, as others pulled up around him. Arutha sat by his
father, his face covered with perspiration in spite of the cold. Panting horses
and exhausted guards gathered around. Pug was relieved to see Tomas beside
Kulgan and Gardan.
When the last rider approached, Lord
Borric said, “How many?”
Gardan surveyed the. survivors and said,
“We've lost eighteen men, have six wounded, and all the mules and baggage were
taken.”
Borric nodded. “Rest the horses a moment.
They'll come.”
Arutha said, “Are we to stand, Father?”
Borric shook his head. “There are too
many of them. At least a hundred struck the clearing.” He spat. “We rode into
that ambush like a rabbit into a snare. He glanced about. “We've lost nearly
half our company.
Pug asked a soldier sitting beside him,
“Who were they?”
The soldier looked at Pug. “The
Brotherhood of the *Dark Path, Squire, may Ka-hooli visit every one of the
bastards with piles,” he answered, invoking the vengeance god. The soldier
indicated a circle around them with his hand. “Small bands of them travel
through the Green Heart, though they mostly live in the mountains east of here,
and way up in the Northlands. That was more than I'd have bargained was around,
curse the luck.”
Voices shouted from behind, and the Duke
said, “They come. Ride!”
The survivors wheeled and rode off, again
racing through the trees ahead of their pursuers. Time became suspended for Pug
as he negotiated the dangerous course through the dense forest. Twice men
nearby screamed, whether from striking branches or from arrows Pug didn't know.
Again they came to a clearing, and the
Duke signaled a halt. Gardan said, “Your grace, the horses can't endure much
more of this.”
Borric struck his saddle horn in
frustration, his face dark with anger. “Damn them! And where are we? “
Pug looked about. He had no idea of where
they stood in relationship to the original site of attack, and from the looks
on the faces around him, no one else did either.
Arutha said, “We must strike eastward,
Father, and make for the mountains.” Borric nodded. “But which way lies east?”
The tall trees and overcast sky with its defused sunlight conspired spired to
deny them any point of reference.
Kulgan said, “One moment, your grace,” and
closed his eyes. Again shouts of pursuit echoed through the trees, as Kulgan
opened his eyes and pointed. “That way. There lies the east.” Without question
or comment, the Duke spurred his horse in the indicated direction, motioning
for the others to follow. Pug felt a strong urge to be near someone familiar
and tried to rejoin Tomas, but couldn't make his way through the press of
riders. He swallowed hard and admitted to himself he was badly scared. The grim
faces of the nearby soldiers told him he was not alone in that feeling.
More time passed as they raced through
the dark corridors of the Green Heart. Every advance along the escape route was
accompanied by the echoing cries of Dark Brothers as they alerted others of the
fugitives' route. Occasionally Pug would spy a shape loping along in the
distance, quickly lost in the darkness of the trees as it ran a parallel
course. The accompanying runners did not seek to hinder them, but always they
were near.
Once more the Duke ordered a halt. Turning
to Gardan, he said, “Skirmishers! Find out how close they follow. We must have
rest.” Gardan indicated three men, who quickly leapt from their horses and ran
back along the route of their retreat. A single clash of steel and a strangled
cry heralded their encounter with the closest Dark Brother tracker.
“Damn them!” said the Duke. “They're
herding us in a circle, seeking to bring us back into their main strength.
Already we're moving more north than east.”
Pug took the opportunity to move next to
Tomas. The horses were panting and shivering as perspiration steamed off them
in the cold. Tomas managed a feeble smile, but said nothing.
Men moved quickly among the horses,
checking for injury. In a few minutes the skirmishers returned at a run.
Panting, one said, “Lord, they are close behind, fifty, sixty at least.”
“How long?”
The man stood with perspiration pouring
down his face as he answered, “Five minutes, my lord.” With grim humor he said,
“The two we killed will make them pause, but no more time than that.”
Borric said to the company, “We rest a
moment, then we ride.”
Arutha said, “A moment or an hour, what
does it matter? The horses are done. We should stand before more Brothers come
to the call.”
Borric shook his head. “I must get
through to Erland. He must know of the coming of the Tsurani.”
An arrow, quickly followed by a second,
flew from the nearby trees, and another rider fell. Borric shouted, “Ride!”
They cantered the exhausted horses deeper
into the woods, then slowed to a walk, while they kept watch for the coming
attack. The Duke used hand signals to deploy the line of soldiers so they might
swing to either flank and charge on command. Horses blew foam as their nostrils
distended, and Pug knew they were close to dropping.
“Why don't they attack?” whispered Tomas.
“I don't know,” answered Pug. “They just
harry us from the sides and behind.”
The Duke raised his hand and the column
halted. No sounds of pursuit could be heard. He turned and spoke in a low tone.
“They may have lost us. Pass the word to inspect your mounts -” An arrow sped
past his head, missing him by inches. “Forward!” he shouted, and they began a
ragged trot along the path they had been following.
Gardan shouted, “My lord, it seems they
wish us to keep moving.”
In a harsh whisper Borric swore, then
asked, “Kulgan, which way lies east?”
The magician closed his eyes again, and
Pug knew he was tiring himself with this particular spell. Not difficult if one
was standing calmly, it had to be fatiguing him under these conditions.
Kulgan's eyes opened and he pointed to the right. The column was heading
northward.
Arutha said, “Again they slowly turn us,
Father, back into their main strength.”
Raising his voice, Borric said, “Only
fools or children would keep to this route. On my command, wheel to the right
and charge.” He waited as every man readied weapons and made silent prayers to
their gods that the horses could withstand one more gallop. Then the Duke
shouted, “Now!” As a body, the column wheeled to the right, and riders spurred
their flagging mounts. Arrows came pouring from the trees, and men and horses
screamed.
Pug ducked under a branch, desperately
holding on to the reins while he fumbled with sword and shield. He felt the
shield slipping and, as he struggled with it, sensed his horse slowing. He
couldn't exercise the needed control over the animal and manage the weapons at
the same time.
Pug reined in; risking a momentary stop
to put his equipment right. A noise made him look to the right. Standing less
than five yards away was a bowman of the Brotherhood of the Dark Path. Pug
stayed rooted for a moment, as did the bowman. Pug was struck by his
resemblance to the Elf Prince, Calin. There was little to distinguish the two
races, nearly the same in height and build, save hair and eyes. The creature's
bowstring had snapped, and he stood with dark eyes fixed upon Pug while calmly
setting about restringing his bow.
Pug's astonishment at finding the Dark
Brother standing so close to him momentarily caused him to forget the reason he
had halted. He sat numbly watching the bowman repairing his weapon, entranced
by the dark elf 's coolly efficient manner.
Then he was pulling an arrow from his
quiver in a fluid motion and fitting the shaft to the bowstring. Sudden alarm
made Pug act. His staggering horse answered his frantic kicks and was off
again. He didn't see the bowman's arrow, but heard and felt it speed past his
ear, then he was back to a gallop, the bowman lost behind as Pug overtook the
Duke's company.
Noise from ahead made Pug urge his horse
on, though the poor animal was giving every indication it was moving as fast as
possible. Pug wove through the forest, the gloom making it difficult to
negotiate.
Abruptly he was behind a rider wearing
the Duke's colors and then passing the man as Pug's horse proved fresher for
carrying a lighter rider. The terrain became more hilly, and Pug wondered if
they were entering the foothills of the Grey Towers.
A horse's scream caused Pug to glance
behind. He saw the soldier he had passed thrown as his mount collapsed, foaming
blood spurting from the animal's nose. Pug and another rider halted, and the
soldier turned back, riding over to where the first man stood. He extended his
hand to offer the fallen man a double ride. The fallen soldier just shook his
head, as he struck the standing horse on the rump, sending it ahead again. Pug
knew the second man's horse could barely carry one rider, never two. The fallen
rider pulled his sword and put down the injured horse, then turned to wait for
the pursuing' Dark Brothers. Pug found his eyes tearing as he contemplated the
man's courage. The other soldier shouted something over his shoulder that was
lost to the boy, then suddenly he was riding by. He shouted, “Move, Squire!”
Pug put heels to the sides of his horse,
and the animal picked up a staggering trot.
The fleeing column continued on its
stumbling, exhausted flight, Pug moving up through the company of riders to a
place near the Duke. After a few minutes Lord Borric signaled for them to slow.
They entered another clearing. Borric surveyed his company. A look of helpless
rage crossed his face, to be replaced by surprise. He held his hand aloft, and
the riders stopped their milling about. Shouts sounded in the forest, but from
some distance away.
Arutha, eyes wide with wonder, said,
“Have we lost them?”
Slowly the Duke nodded, his attention focused
on the distant shouts. “For the moment. When we broke through the archers, we
must have slipped behind their pursuit. They'll discover that fact shortly and
double back. We have ten, fifteen minutes at best.” He looked over his ragged
company. “If only we could find a place to hide.”
Kulgan moved his staggering horse
alongside the Duke. “My lord, I might have a solution, though it is risky and
might prove fatal.”
Borric said, “No more fatal than waiting
for them to come for us. What is your plan?”
“I have an amulet, which can control
weather. I had planned to save it against possible storms at sea, for its use
is limited. I may be able to mask our whereabouts with it. Let every man gather
his horse at the far end of the clearing, near that outcropping of rock. Have
them silence the animals.”
Borric ordered it done, and the animals
were moved to the opposite end of the clearing. Reassuring hands gentled
exhausted and excited horses, quieting the mounts after their long flight.
They had gathered at the highest end of a narrow clearing, their
backs to an outcropping of granite that rose overhead like a grey fist. On
three sides the ground sloped away gently. Kulgan began to walk along the
perimeter of the compact company.
He chanted in a low voice, waving the
amulet in an intricate pattern. Slowly the grey afternoon light faded, and a
mist began to gather around him. At first only light wisps appeared nearby,
then other, more substantial patches of moisture formed, becoming light fog.
Soon the air between the Duke's company
and the tree line grew hazy. Kulgan moved more quickly and the fog deepened,
filling the clearing with whiteness, moving outward from the magician into the
trees on all sides. Within a few minutes it was impossible to see beyond a few
yards.
On and on paced Kulgan, sending thicker
blankets of haze to obscure the already grey light in the trees. The clearing
slowly became darker as the gloomy fog deepened with every incantation made by
the magician.
Then Kulgan stopped and turned to the
Duke, whispering, “All must remain quiet. Should the dark elves wander blindly
into the fog, the sloping terrain will, I hope, guide them past on one side or
the other as they come around the rocks. But let no man move. Any sound will
defeat us.”
Each man nodded, understanding the danger
coming fast. They would stand in the center of this deep fog in the hope the
Dark Brothers would walk past, putting the Duke and his men once more behind
them. It was an all-or-nothing gambit, for should they win free, there was a
good chance they would be far removed from this spot when the Brotherhood once
more backtracked.
Pug looked at Tomas and whispered, “It's
a good thing it's rocky here, else we'd leave some pretty tracks.”
Tomas nodded, too frightened to speak. A
nearby guard motioned for Pug to be silent, and the young Squire nodded.
Gardan and several guards, with the Duke
and Arutha, took up position near the front of the company, weapons ready
should the ploy fail. Shouts grew louder as the Dark Brotherhood returned along
their trail. Kulgan stood near the Duke, enchanting quietly, gathering more
mist around him, then sending it forth. Pug knew the mist would be expanding
rapidly, shrouding a continuously larger area as long as Kulgan continued to
incant. Every extra minute would encompass more of the Green Heart in fog,
making it increasingly more difficult for the attackers to find them.
Pug felt wetness on his cheek and looked
up. Snow was beginning to fall. With apprehension he looked to the mist, to see
if the newly arriving snow was affecting it. He watched a tense minute, then
silently sighed with relief, for if anything, the snow was adding to the
masking effects of the fog.
A
soft footfall could be heard nearby. Pug froze, as did every man near him. A
voice rang out in the Brotherhood's strange language.
Pug felt an itch between his shoulders,
but refused to move, fighting to ignore the nagging sensation on his back. He
glanced sideways at Tomas. Tomas stood stock-still, his hand on his horse's
muzzle, looking like a statue in the haze. Like every other remaining horse,
Tomas's mount knew the hand upon his face was a command for quiet.
Another voice rang out in the mist, and
Pug nearly jumped. It sounded as if the caller were standing directly in front
of him. Again the answering call came, sounding farther away.
Gardan stood directly before Pug, who saw
the sergeant's back twitch. Gardan slowly knelt, silently laying his sword and
shield on the ground. He rose up, still moving slowly, pulling his belt knife.
Then suddenly he stepped into the mist, his movements as quick and fluid as a
cat disappearing into the night. There was a faint sound, and Gardan reappeared.
Before him struggled the form of a Dark
Brother, one of Gardan's huge black hands damped tightly over the creature's
mouth. The other arm was choking its throat. Pug could see the sergeant
couldn't risk letting go for the brief instant needed to plunge the knife in
its back. Gardan gritted his teeth in pain as the creature raked the sergeant's
arm with clawlike nails. Its eyes bulged as it fought to breathe. Gardan stood
rooted to the spot, holding the Dark Brother off the ground by main force as it
struggled to get free. The creature's face turned red, then purple, as Gardan
choked the life from it. Blood from the creature's raking nails flowed freely
down Gardan's arm; but the powerful soldier barely moved at all. Then the Dark
Brother went limp, and Gardan gave it a final, throat-crushing jerk of his arm
and let the creature slide silently to the ground.
Gardan's eyes were wide with exertion,
and he panted quietly as he regained his breath. Slowly he turned, knelt, and
replaced his knife. Recovering his sword and shield, he stood, resuming his
watch in the mist.
Pug felt nothing but awe and admiration
for the sergeant, but like the others he could only silently watch. Time
passed, and the voices grew more faint as they sounded their angry inquiries to
one another, seeking the fugitives' hiding place. The voices moved off, and
then, like a long sigh of relief heaved by all in the clearing, it was silent.
The Duke whispered, “They are past us. Lead the horses. We go east.”
PUG LOOKED ABOUT in the gloom. Ahead,
Duke Borric and Prince Arutha led the way. Gardan stayed beside Kulgan, who was
still exhausted from his magical undertaking. Tomas walked silently beside his
friend. Of the fifty guardsmen who had set out with the Duke from Crydee,
thirteen remained. Only six horses had survived the day. As they had faltered,
the others had been quickly put down by silent, tight-lipped riders.
They trudged upward, climbing higher into
the foothills. The sun had set, but the Duke ordered them onward, fearful of
the return of their pursuers. The men stepped cautiously forward, tentative in
the rough terrain at night. The darkness was punctuated by softly uttered oaths
as men lost their footing on the icy rocks time and again.
Pug plodded along, his body numb with
fatigue and cold. The day had seemed an eternity, and he could not remember
when he had last stopped or eaten. Once he had been handed a waterskin by a
soldier, but the lone drink was a dim memory. He grabbed a handful of snow and
put it in his mouth, but the melting iciness gave him little relief The snow
was falling more heavily, or at least it seemed so to Pug; he couldn't see it
fall, but it struck his face with more frequency and force. It was bitterly
cold, and he shivered inside his cloak.
Like a booming call, the Duke's whisper
sounded in the murk. “Stop. I doubt they are wandering about in the dark. We'll
rest here.”
Arutha's whisper could be heard from
somewhere ahead: “The falling snow should cover our tracks by morning.”
Pug dropped to his knees and pulled his
cloak about himself. Tomas's voice sounded nearby. “Pug?”
Softly he answered, “Here.”
Tomas dropped heavily beside him. “I
think”, he said between panting breaths, “I'll never . . . move again.”
Pug could only nod. The Duke's voice came
from a short distance away. “No fires.”
Gardan answered, “It's a bitter night for
a cold camp, Your Grace.”
Borric said, “Agreed, but if those sons
of hell are nearby, a fire would bring them howling down upon us. Huddle
together for warmth, so no one will freeze. Post guards and tell the others to
sleep. When dawn breaks, I want to put as much distance between ourselves and
them as possible.” Pug felt bodies begin to press around him and didn't mind
the discomfort for the warmth. Soon he drifted off into a fitful doze, starting
awake often during the night. Then suddenly it was dawn.
THREE MORE HORSES died during the night,
their frozen bodies lying uncovered in the snow. Pug came to his feet, feeling
light-headed and stiff. He shivered uncontrollably as he stamped his feet,
trying to stir some life into his chilled, aching body. Tomas stirred, then
awoke with a start, looking to see what was occurring. He climbed awkwardly to his
feet, then joined Pug in stamping feet and swinging arms. “I've never been so
cold in my life,” he said through chattering teeth.
Pug looked around. They were in a hollow
between large outcroppings of granite, still bare and grey in patches, which
rose up behind them thirty feet into the air, joining a ridge above. The ground
sloped away along the path of their -march, and Pug noticed the trees were
thinner here. “Come along,” he said to Tomas as he began to scramble up the
rocks.
“Damn!” sounded from behind, and Pug and
Tomas looked back to see Gardan kneeling over the still form of a guard. The
sergeant looked at the Duke and said, “Died in the night, Your Grace.” He shook
his head as he added, “He took a wound and never spoke of it. “
Pug counted; besides himself, Tomas, Kulgan, the Duke, and his
son, there were now just twelve soldiers. Tomas looked up at Pug, who had
climbed ahead, and said, “Where are we going?”
Pug noticed he whispered. He inclined his
head upward and said, “To see what's over there.”
Tomas nodded, and they continued their
climb. Stiff fingers protested against the need to grip hard rock, but soon Pug
found himself warm again as exertion heated his body. He reached up and gripped
the edge of the ridge above. He pulled himself up and over and waited for
Tomas.
Tomas came over the ridge, panting for
breath, looked past Pug, and said, “Oh, glory!”
Rising up majestically before them were
the tall peaks of the Grey Towers. The sun rose behind, casting rose and golden
highlights on the north faces of the mountains, while the western faces were
still veiled in indigo darkness. The sky was clear, the snowfall over.
Everywhere they looked, the scenery was draped in white.
Pug waved toward Gardan. The sergeant
walked up to the base of the rocks, climbed a short way, and said, “What is
it?” Pug said, “The Grey Towers! No more than five miles away.”
Gardan waved for the boys to return, and
they scrambled down, falling the last few feet to land with a thump. With their
destination in sight, they felt revived. They came to where Gardan stood in
conference with the Duke, Arutha, and Kulgan. Borric spoke softly, his words
carrying clearly in the crisp morning air. “Take whatever is left on the dead animals
and divide it among the men. Bring the remaining horses, but no one rides. No
use covering the animals, for we'll make broad tracks anyway.”
Gardan saluted and began circulating
among the soldiers. They stood about in pairs or singly, eyes watching for
signs of possible pursuit.
Borric said to Kulgan, “Have you an idea
where the South Pass lies?”
“I will try to use my magic sight, my
lord.” Kulgan concentrated, and Pug watched closely, for seeing with the mind's
eye was another of the feats that had eluded him in his studies. It was akin to
using the crystal, but less pictorial, more an impression of where something
was in relation to the spellcaster. After a few minutes of silence, Kulgan
said, “I cannot tell, Sire. If I had been there before, then perhaps, but I get
no impression of where the pass may lie.”
Borric nodded. “I wish Longbow were here.
He knows the landmarks of the area.” He turned to the east, as if seeing the
Grey Towers through the intervening ridge. “One mountain looks much like
another to me.
Arutha said, “Father, to the north?”
Borric smiled a little at Arutha's logic.
“Yes. If the pass lies northward, we still might chance across it before it is
impassable. Once across the mountains, the weather will prove milder in the
east -- at least that is the rule this time of year. We should be able to walk
to Bordon. If we are already north of the pass, then we will eventually reach
the dwarves. They will shelter us and perhaps know another route to the east.”
He inspected his exhausted company. “With three horses and snow melted for
drinking water, we should last another week.” He looked around, studying the
sky. “If the weather holds.”
Kulgan said, “We should be free of bad
weather in two, perhaps three days. Farther into the future I cannot judge.” A
distant shout echoed over the trees, from deep within the forest below.
Instantly everyone was still. Borric looked to Gardan. “Sergeant, how far away
do you judge them?”
Gardan listened. “It is hard to say, my
lord. One mile, two, maybe more. Sound carries oddly in the forest, more so
when it is this cold.” Borric nodded. “Gather the men. We leave now.”
PUG'S FINGERTIPS BLED through his torn
gloves. At every opportunity during the day, the Duke had kept the men
traveling over rock, to prevent Dark Brotherhood trackers from following. Every
hour guards had been sent back to cut false trails over their own, pulling
blankets taken from the dead horses behind, obscuring the tracks as best they could.
They stood at the edge of a clearing, a
circle of bare rock surrounded on all sides by scattered pines and aspens. The
trees had grown progressively thinner as they moved up into the mountains,
staying on the rougher, higher terrain rather than risk being followed. Since
dawn they had moved northeast, following a ridge of rugged hills toward the
Grey Towers, but to Pug's dismay the mountains seemed no closer.
The sun stood high overhead, but Pug felt
little of its warmth, for a cold wind blew down from the heights of the Grey
Towers. Pug heard Kulgan's voice some distance behind. “As long as the wind is
from the northeast, we'll have no snow, as any moisture will have fallen on the
peaks. Should the wind shift and come from the west, or northwest, from off the
Endless Sea, we'll have more snow.”
Pug panted as he scrambled along the
rocks, balancing on the slippery surface. “Kulgan, must we have lessons, too?”
Several men laughed, and momentarily the
grim tension of the last two days lessened. They reached a large flat, before
another upward rise, and the Duke ordered a halt. “Build a fire and slaughter
an animal. We'll wait here for the last rear guard.”
Gardan quickly sent men to gather wood in
the trees, and one was given two of the horses to lead away. The high-strung
mounts were footsore, tired, and unfed, and in spite of their training, Gardan
wanted them removed from the smell of blood.
The chosen horse screamed, then was
suddenly silent, and when the fires were ready, the soldiers placed spits over
the flames. Soon the aroma of roasting meat filled the air. In spite of his
anticipated distaste, Pug found his mouth watering at the smell. In a while he
was handed a stick, with a large piece of roasted liver on it, which he wolfed
down. Nearby, Tomas was doing equal justice to a portion of sizzling haunch.
When they were done eating, the still-hot
meat left over was wrapped with strips from horse blankets and torn tabards,
then divided among the men.
Pug and Tomas sat by Kulgan as men broke
camp, putting out fires, covering signs of passing, and readying for the
resumption of the march.
Gardan came to the Duke. “My lord, the
rear guard is overdue.”
Borric nodded. “I know. They should have
returned a half hour ago.” He peered down the hillside, toward the huge forest,
mist shrouded in the distance. “We'll wait five more minutes, then we will go.”
They waited in silence, but the guards
didn't return. Finally Gardan gave the order. “All right, lads. Off we go.”
The men formed up behind the Duke and
Kulgan, and the boys fell in at the rear. Pug counted. There were only ten
soldiers left.
TWO DAYS LATER the howling winds came,
icy knives ripping at exposed flesh. Cloaks were gathered around each figure
tramping slowly northward, leaning into the wind. Rags had been torn and tied
around boots in a feeble attempt to hold off frostbite. Pug tried vainly to
keep his eyelashes free of ice, but the harsh wind made his eyes tear, and the
drops quickly froze, blurring his vision.
Pug heard Kulgan's voice above the wind.
“My lord, a storm comes. We must find shelter or perish.” The Duke nodded and
waved two men ahead to seek shelter. The two set off at a stumbling run, moving
only slightly faster than the others, but valiantly putting their remaining
meager strength into the task.
Clouds began to roll in from the
northwest, and the skies darkened. “How much time, Kulgan?” shouted the Duke
over the shrieking wind.
The magician waved his hand above his
head, as the wind, blew his hair and beard back from his face, exposing his
high forehead. “An hour at most.” The Duke nodded again and exhorted his men to
move along.
A sad sound, a neighing cry, pierced the
wind, and a soldier called out that the last horse was down. Borric stopped and
with a curse ordered it slaughtered as quickly as possible. Soldiers butchered
the animal, steaming hunks of meat being cut away, to chill in the snow where
they were cast before they could be wrapped. When they were done, the meat was
divided among the men.
“If we can find shelter, we will build a
fire and cook the meat,” the Duke shouted.
Silently Pug added that if they couldn't
find shelter, they'd have little use for the meat. They resumed their march.
A short time later the two guards
returned with the news of a cave less than a quarter mile distant. The Duke
ordered them to show the way.
Snow began to fall, whipped by the
driving wind. The sky was now dark, limiting visibility to only a few hundred
feet. Pug felt light-headed and had to struggle to pull his feet from the
resisting snow. Both hands were numb, and he wondered if he was frostbitten.
Tomas looked slightly better, being
somewhat hardier by nature, but he also was too exhausted to speak. He just
plodded along beside his friend.
Suddenly Pug was lying face down in the
snow feeling surprisingly warm and sleepy. Tomas knelt beside the fallen
magician's apprentice. He shook Pug, and the nearly unconscious boy groaned.
“Get up,” Tomas shouted. “It's only a
little way farther.”
Pug struggled upright, aided by Tomas and
one of the soldiers. When he was standing, Tomas indicated to the soldier he
could take care of his friend. The soldier nodded, but stayed near. Tomas
loosened one of the many strips of blanket tied around him for warmth, knotted
one end to Pug's belt, and half guided, half pulled the smaller boy along.
The boys followed the guard who had
helped them around an outcropping of rock and found themselves at the mouth of
a cave. They staggered forward a few steps into the sheltering darkness, then
fell to the stone floor. In contrast to the biting wind outside, the cave
seemed warm, and they lapsed into an exhausted sleep.
PUG AWOKE TO the smell of cooking horsemeat. He roused himself
and saw it was dark outside, beyond the fire. Piles of branches and deadwood
were heaped nearby, and men were carefully feeding the fire. Others stood by,
roasting pieces of meat. Pug flexed his fingers and found them painfully sore,
but as he peeled off his tattered gloves, he saw no signs of frostbite. He
nudged Tomas awake, and the other boy raised himself up on his elbows, blinking
at the firelight.
Gardan stood on the other side of the
fire, speaking with a guard. The Duke sat nearby, in quiet conversation with
his son and Kulgan. Beyond Gardan and the guard, Pug could see only blackness.
He couldn't remember what time of day it had been when they found the cave, but
he and Tomas must have slept for hours.
Kulgan saw them stirring and came over.
“How do you feel?” he asked, a look of concern on his face. The boys indicated
they felt all right, considering the circumstances. Pug and Tomas doffed their
boots at Kulgan's orders, and he was pleased to report they had suffered no
frostbite, though one of the soldiers, he said, hadn't been as lucky.
“How long were we asleep?” asked Pug.
“Throughout last night and all this day,”
said the magician with a sigh.
Then Pug noticed signs that a lot of work
had been done. Besides the brush being cut, he and Tomas had been covered by
some of the blankets. A pair of snared rabbits hung near the cave mouth with a
row of freshly filled waterskins stacked near the fire. “You could have woken
us,” Pug said, a note of worry in his voice.
Kulgan shook his head. “The Duke wouldn't
have moved until the storm had passed, and that was only a few hours ago. In
any event, you and Tomas weren't the only tired ones here. I doubt even the
hearty sergeant there could have gone more than another few miles with only one
night's rest. The Duke will see how things stand tomorrow. I expect we shall
leave then, if the weather holds.”
Kulgan stood and, with a small gesture
indicating the boys should return to sleep if possible, went to stand beside
the Duke. Pug was surprised that, for someone who had slept the day around, he
was again tired, though he thought he would fill his stomach before seeking
more sleep. Tomas nodded at his unspoken question, and the two scooted over by
the fire. One of the soldiers was busy cooking meat and handed them hot
portions.
The boys wolfed down the food and after
they were done sat back against one wall of the large cave. Pug started to
speak to Tomas but was distracted when he caught sight of the guard by the
cave's mouth. A queer look passed over the man's face as he stood talking to
Sergeant Gardan, then his knees buckled. Gardan reached out to catch him,
lowering him to the floor. The big sergeant's eyes widened as he saw the arrow
protruding from the man's side.
Time seemed suspended for an instant,
then Gardan shouted, “Attack!”
A howling cry sounded from outside the
cave's mouth, and a figure came bounding into the light, jumping over the low
brush, then again bounding over the fire, knocking down the soldier cooking
meat. It landed a short way from the boys and spun to face those it had leapt
past. It was wrapped in a coat and trousers of animal furs. On one arm it bore
a battle scarred buckler-size shield, and in the other a curved sword was held
high.
Pug stayed motionless as the creature
regarded the company in the cave, a snarl on inhuman lips, eyes glowing with
reflected firelight and fangs bared. Tomas's training asserted itself, and the
sword he had clung to over the long march was out of its scabbard in an
instant. With a show the creature swung downward at Pug, who rolled sideways,
avoiding the blow. The blade rang out as it struck the ground, and Tomas made
an off-balance lunge, awkwardly taking the creature low in the chest. It fell
to its knees and gurgled as blood filled its lungs, then fell forward.
Other attackers were leaping into the
cave and were quickly engaged by the men from Crydee. Curses and oaths sounded,
and swords rang out in the close confines of the cave. Guards and attackers
stood face-to-face, unable to move more than a few feet. Several of the Duke's
men dropped swords and pulled daggers from their belts, better for close
fighting.
Pug grabbed his sword and looked for an
attacker, but found none. In the dancing light of the fire, he could see the
attackers were outnumbered by the remaining guards, and as two or three men of
Crydee grappled with each attacker, it was quickly down and killed.
Suddenly the cave was quiet, save for the heavy breathing of the
soldiers. Pug looked and saw only one man down, the one who had taken the
arrow. A few others sported light wounds. Kulgan hurried among the men, checking
the wounds, then said to the Duke, “My lord, we have no other serious
injuries.”
Pug looked at the dead creatures. Six of
them lay sprawled upon the cave floor. They were smaller than men, but not by
much. Above thick browridges, their sloping foreheads were topped by thick
black hair. Their blue-green tinged skins were smooth, save for one who had
something like a youth's beard upon his cheeks. Their eyes, open in death, were
huge and round, with black irises on yellow. All died with snarls upon their
hideous faces, showing long teeth that came close to being fangs.
Pug crossed to Gardan, peering into the
gloom of the night for signs of more of the creatures. “What are they,
Sergeant?”
“Goblins, Pug. Though I can't fathom what
they are doing this far from their normal range.”
The Duke came to stand next to him and
said, “Only a half dozen, Gardan. I have never heard of goblins attacking armed
men except when the advantage was theirs. This was suicide.”
“My lord, look here,” came Kulgan's call,
as he knelt over the body of a goblin. He had pulled away the dirty fur jacket
worn by the creature and pointed to a poorly bandaged long, jagged wound on its
chest. “This was not made by us. It is three, four days old and healing badly.”
Guards inspected the other bodies and
reported three others also bore recent wounds, not caused by this fight. One
had a broken arm and had fought without a shield.
Gardan said, “Sire, they wear no armor.
Only the weapons in their hands.” He pointed to a dead goblin with a bow slung
over its back, and an empty quiver at its belt. “They had but the one arrow
they used to wound Daniel.”
Arutha glanced at the carnage. “This was
madness. Hopeless madness.”
Kulgan said, “Yes, Highness; madness.
They were battle weary, freezing, and starved. The smell of cooking meat must
have driven them mad. From their appearance I'd say they've not eaten in some
time. They preferred to gamble all on one last, frantic assault than to watch
us eat while they froze to death.”
Borric looked at the goblins again, then
ordered his men to take the bodies outside the cave. To no one in particular,
he said, “But who have they been fighting?”
Pug said, “The Brotherhood?”
Borric shook his head. “They are the
Brotherhood's creatures, or when not allied against us, they leave one another
alone. No, it was someone else.”
Tomas looked around as he joined those by
the entrance. He wasn't as comfortable speaking to the Duke as Pug, but finally
he said, “My lord, the dwarves?”
Borric nodded. “If there's been a dwarven raid on a nearby goblin
village, it would explain why they were unarmored and unprovisioned. They would
have grabbed the nearest weapons and fought their way free, fleeing at first
chance. Yes, perhaps it was the dwarves.”
The guards who had carried the bodies off
into the snow ran back into the cave. “Your, Grace,” one of them said, “we hear
movement in the trees.”
Borric turned to the others. “Get ready!”
Every man in the cave quickly readied his
weapons. Soon all could hear the tread of feet crunching through the icy snow.
It grew louder as they waited, getting closer. Pug stood tensely, holding his
sword, pushing down a churning feeling inside.
Suddenly the sounds of footfalls stopped,
as those outside halted. Then the sound of a single pair of boots could be
heard coming closer. Appearing out of the dark came a figure directly toward
the cave. Pug craned his neck to see past the soldiers, and the Duke said, “Who
passes this night?”
A short figure, no more than five feet
tall, pulled back the hood of his cloak, revealing a metal helm sitting over a
shock of thick brown hair. Two sparkling green eyes reflected the firelight.
Heavy brows of brown-red hair came together at a point above a large hooked
nose. The figure stood regarding the party, then signaled behind. More figures
appeared from out of the night, and Pug pressed forward to get a better view,
Tomas at his side. At the rear they could see several of the arrivals leading
mules.
The Duke and soldiers visibly relaxed,
and Tomas said, “They're dwarves!”
Several of the guards laughed, as did the
closest dwarf. The dwarf fixed Tomas with a wry gaze, saying, “What were you
expecting, boy? Some pretty dryad come to fetch you away?”
The lead dwarf walked into the firelight.
He stopped before the Duke and said, “From your tabard, I see you to be men of
Crydee.” He struck himself upon the chest and said, formally, I hight Dolgan,
chief of village Caldara, and Warleader of the Grey Towers dwarven people.”
Pulling a pipe out of his cloak, from under a long beard that fell below his
belt, he filled his pipe as he looked at the others in the cave. Then in less
formal language he said, “Now, what in the name of the gods brings such a
sorry-looking party of tall folk to this cold and forlorn place?”
The
dwarves stood guard.
Pug and the others from Crydee sat around
the campfire as they hungrily ate the meal prepared by Dolgan's men. A pot of
stew bubbled near the fire. Hot loaves of trail bread, thick hard crust broken
to reveal dark sweet dough thick with honey, were quickly being devoured.
Smoked fish, from the dwarves' pack animals, provided a welcome change from the
diet of horsemeat of the last few days.
Pug looked from where he sat beside
Tomas, who was hard at work consuming his third portion of bread and stew. Pug
watched as the dwarves worked efficiently about the camp. Most were outside the
cave's mouth, for they seemed less inconvenienced by the cold than the humans.
Two tended the injured man, who would live, while two others served the hot
meal to the Duke's men, and another filled ale cups from a large skin filled
with the bubbling brown liquid.
There were forty dwarves with Dolgan. The
dwarven chief was flanked by his sons, Weylin, the older, and Udell. Both
showed a striking resemblance to their father, though Udell tended to darkness,
having black hair rather than red-brown. Both seemed quiet compared to their
father, who gestured expansively with a pipe in one hand and a cup of ale in
the other as he spoke with the Duke.
The dwarves had been on some sort of
patrol along the edge of the forest, though Pug gained the impression a patrol
this far from their villages was unusual. They had come across the tracks of
the goblins who had attacked a few minutes before and were following closely
behind, otherwise they would have missed the Duke's party as the night's storm
obliterated all tracks of the men from Crydee's passage.
“I remember you, Lord Borric,” said
Dolgan, sipping at his ale cup, “though you were scarcely more than a baby when
I was last at Crydee. I dined with your father. He set a fine table.”
“And should you come again to Crydee,
Dolgan, I hope you'll find my table equally satisfactory.” They had spoken of
the Duke's mission, and Dolgan had remained mostly silent during the
preparation of the meal, lost in thought. Suddenly he regarded his pipe, which
had gone out. He sighed forlornly, putting it away, until he noticed Kulgan had
pulled out his own and was producing respectable clouds of smoke. Brightening
visibly, he said, “Would you be having the requirement of an extra pipe upon
you, master magician?” He spoke with the deep, rolling burr the dwarves made
when speaking the King's Tongue.
Kulgan fetched out his tabac pouch and
handed it across to the dwarf “Providentially,” said Kulgan, “my pipe and pouch
are two items always kept upon my person at all times. I can withstand the loss
of my other goods, though the loss of my two books troubles me deeply -- but to
endure any circumstance without the comfort of my pipe is unthinkable.”
“Aye,” agreed the dwarf as he lit up his
own, “you have the right of it there. Except for autumn's ale -- and my loving
wife's company or a good fight, of course, there's little to match the pipe for
pure pleasure.” He drew forth a long pull and blew out a large cloud of smoke
to emphasize his point. A thoughtful look crossed his rugged face, and he said,
“Now to the matter of the news you carry. They are strange tidings, but explain
away some mysteries we have been tussling with for some time now.”
Borric said, “What mysteries?”
Dolgan pointed out of the cave mouth. “As
we told you, we've had to patrol the area hereabouts. This is a new thing, for
in years past the lands along the borders of our mines and farms have been free
from trouble.” He smiled. “Occasionally a band of especially bold bandits or
moredhel -- the Dark Brothers you call them -- or a more than usually stupid
tribe of goblins troubles us for a time. But for the most part things remain
pretty peaceful. “
“But of late, everything's gone agley.
About a month ago, or a bit more, we began to see signs of large movements of
moredhel and goblins from their villages to the north of ours. We sent some
lads to investigate. They found entire villages abandoned, both goblin and
moredhel. Some were sacked, but others stood empty without sign of trouble. “
“Needless to say, the displacement of
those miscreants caused an increase in problems for us. Our villages are in the
higher meadows and plateaus, so they dare not attack, but they do raid our
herds in the lower valleys as they pass -- which is why we now mount patrols
down the mountainside. With the winter upon us, our herds are in our lowest
meadows, and we must keep vigilant.
“Most likely your messengers didn't reach
our villages because of the large number of moredhel and goblins fleeing the
mountains down into the forests. Now at least we've some gleaning of what's
causing this migration.”
The Duke nodded. “The Tsurani.”
Dolgan was thoughtful for a moment, while
Arutha said, “Then they're up there in strength.”
Borric gave his son a questioning look,
while Dolgan chuckled and said, “That's a bright lad you've got, Lord Borric.”
He nodded thoughtfully, then said, “Aye, Prince. They're up there, and in
strength. Despite their other grievous faults, the moredhel are not without
skill in warcraft.” He fell silent again, lost in thought for a few minutes.
Then, tapping out the dottle of his pipe, he said, “The dwarven folk are not
counted the finest warriors in the West for naught, but we lack the numbers to
dispose of our more troublesome neighbors. To dislodge such a host as have been
passing would require a great force of men, well armed and provisioned.”
Kulgan said, “I would give anything to
know how they reached these mountains.”
“I would rather know how many there are,”
said the Duke.
Dolgan refilled his pipe and, after it
was lit, stared thoughtfully into the fire. Weylin and Udell nodded at each
other, and Weylin said, “Lord Borric, there may be as many as five thousand.”
Before the startled Duke could respond,
Dolgan came out of his reverie. Swearing an oath, he said, “Closer to ten
thousand!” He turned to look at the Duke, whose expression showed he clearly
didn't understand what was being said. Dolgan added, “We've given every reason
for this migration save invasion. Plague, internal warfare between bands, pests
in their crops causing famine, but an invading army of aliens was not one of
them. “
“From the number of towns empty, we guess
a few thousand goblins and moredhel have descended into the Green Heart. Some
of those villages are a clutch of huts my two boys could overcome unaided. But
others are walled hill forts, with a hundred, two hundred warriors to man the
palisade. They've swept away a dozen such in little over a month. How many men
do you judge you'd need to accomplish such a deed, Lord Borric?”
For the first time in his memory, Pug saw
fear clearly etched upon the Duke's face. Borric leaned forward, his arm
resting across his knee, as he said, “I've fifteen hundred men in Crydee,
counting those in the frontier garrisons along the boundary. I can call another
eight hundred or a thousand each from the garrisons at Carse and Tulan, though
to do so would strip them fully. The levies from the villages and towns number
at best a thousand, and most would be old veterans from the siege at Carse or
young boys without skiffs.”
Arutha looked as grim as his father as he
said, “Forty-five hundred at the outside, a full third unproved, against an
army of ten thousand.”
Udell looked at his father, then at Lord
Borric. “My father makes no boast of our skills, nor of the moredhel's, Your
Grace. Whether there be five thousand or ten thousand, they'll be hard,
experienced fighters to drive out the enemies of our blood so quickly.”
“Then I'm thinking,” said Dolgan, “you'd
best send word to your older son and your vassal barons, telling them to stay
safely behind the walls of your castles, and hie yourself to Krondor. It will
take all the Armies of the West to withstand these newcomers this spring.”
Tomas suddenly said, “Is it really that
bad?” then looked embarrassed for interrupting the council. “I'm sorry, my
lord.”
Borric waved away the apology. “It may be
we are weaving many threads of fear together into a larger tapestry than
exists, but a good soldier prepares for the worst, Tomas. Dolgan is right. I
must enlist the Prince's aid.” He looked at Dolgan. “But to call the Armies of
the West to arms, I must reach Krondor.”
Dolgan said, “The South Pass is closed,
and your human ships' masters have too much sense to brave the Straits of
Darkness in winter. But there is another way, though it is a difficult path.
There are mines throughout these mountains, ancient tunnels under the Grey
Towers. Many were carved by my people as we dug for iron and gold. Some are
natural, fashioned when the mountains were born. And still others were here
when my people first came to these mountains, dug by only the gods know whom.
There is one mine that passes completely under the mountains, coming out on the
other side of the range, only a day's march from the road to Bordon. It will
take two days to pass through, and there may be dangers.”.
The dwarven brothers looked at their
father, and Weylin said, “Father, the Mac Mordain Cadal?”
Dolgan nodded his head. “Aye, the
abandoned mine of my grandfather, and his father before him.” He said to the
Duke, “We have dug many miles of tunnels under the mountain, and some connect
with the ancient passages I have spoken of. There are dark and queer tales
about Mac Mordain Cadal, for it is connected with these old passages. Not a few
dwarves have ventured deep into the old mines, seeking legendary riches, and
most have returned. But a few have vanished. Once upon a path, a dwarf can
never lose his way back, so they were not lost in their searching. Something
must have befallen them. I tell you this so there will be no misunderstandings,
but if we keep to the passages dug by my ancestors, we should have small risk.”
“'We,' friend dwarf?” said the Duke.
Dolgan grinned. “Should I simply place
your feet upon the path, you'd be hopelessly lost within an hour. No, I'd care
not for traveling to Rillanon to explain to your King how I'd managed to lose
one of his better Dukes. I will guide you willingly, Lord Borric, for a small
price.” He winked at Pug and Tomas as he spoke the last. “Say, a pouch of tabac
and a fine dinner at Crydee.”
The Duke's mood lightened a little. With
a smile he said, “Done, and our thanks, Dolgan.”
The dwarf turned to his sons. “Udell, you
take half the company and one of the mules, and the Duke's men too ill or
wounded to continue. Make for the castle at Crydee. There's an inkhorn and
quill, wrapped in parchment, somewhere in our baggage; find it for his
lordship, so he may instruct his men. Weylin, take the others of our kin back
to Caldara, then send word to the other villages before the winter blizzards
strike. Come spring, the dwarves of the Grey Towers go to war. “
Dolgan looked at Borric. “No one has ever
conquered our highland villages, not in the longest memory of the dwarven folk.
But it would prove an irritation for someone to try. The dwarves will stand
with the Kingdom, Your Lordship. You have long been a friend to us, trading
fairly and giving aid when asked. And we have never run from battle when we
were called.”
Arutha said, “And what of Stone
Mountain?”
Dolgan laughed. “I thank His Highness for
the jog to my memory. Old Harthorn and his clans would be sorely troubled
should a good fight come and they were not invited. I'll send runners to Stone
Mountain as well.”
Pug and Tomas watched while the Duke
wrote messages to Lyam and Fannon, then full stomachs and fatigue began to lull
them, despite their long sleep. The dwarves gave them the loan of heavy cloaks,
which they wrapped about pine boughs to make comfortable mattresses.
Occasionally Pug would turn in the night, coming out of his deep sleep, and
hear voices speaking low. More than once he heard the name 'Mac Mordain Cadal'.
DOLGAN LED THE Duke's party along the
rocky foothills of the Grey Towers. They had left at first light, the dwarven
chieftain's sons departing for their own destinations with their men. Dolgan
walked before the Duke and his son, followed by the puffing Kulgan and the boys.
Five soldiers of Crydee, those still able to continue, under the supervision of
Sergeant Gardan followed behind, leading two mules. Walking behind the
struggling magician, Pug said, “Kulgan, ask for a rest. You're all done in.”
The magician said, “No, boy, I'll be all
right. Once into the mines, the pace will slow, and we should be there soon.”
Tomas regarded the stocky figure of
Dolgan, marching along at the head of the party, short legs striding along,
setting a rugged pace. “Doesn't he ever tire?”
Kulgan shook his head. “The dwarven folk
are renowned for their strong constitutions. At the Battle of Carse Keep, when
the castle was nearly taken by the Dark Brotherhood, the dwarves of Stone
Mountain and the Grey Towers were on the march to aid the besieged. A messenger
carried the news of the castle's imminent fall, and the dwarves ran for a day
and a night and half a day again to fall on the Brotherhood from behind without
any lessening of their fighting ability. The Brotherhood was broken, never
again organizing under a single leader.” He panted a bit. “There was no idle
boasting in Dolgan's appraisal of the aid forthcoming from the dwarves, for
they are undoubtedly the finest fighters in the West. While they have few
numbers compared to men, only the Hadati hillmen come close to their equal as
mountain fighters.”
Pug and Tomas looked with newfound
respect upon the dwarf as he strode along. While the pace was brisk, the meal
of the night before and another this morning had restored the flagging energies
of the boys, and they were not pushed to keep up.
They came to the mine entrance, overgrown
with brush. The soldiers cleared it away, revealing a wide, low tunnel. Dolgan
turned to the company. “You might have to duck a bit here and there, but many a
mule has been led through here by dwarven miners. There should be ample room.”
Pug smiled. The dwarves proved taller
than tales had led him to expect, averaging about four and a half to five feet
tall. Except for being short-legged and broad-shouldered, they looked much like
other people. It was going to be a tight fit for the Duke and Gardan, but Pug
was only a few inches taller than the dwarf, so he'd manage.
Gardan ordered torches lit, and when the
party was ready, Dolgan led them into the mine. As they entered the gloom of
the tunnel, the dwarf said, “Keep alert, for only the gods know what is living
in these tunnels. We should not be troubled, but it is best to be cautious.”
Pug entered and, as the gloom enveloped him,
looked over his shoulder. He saw Gardan outlined against the receding light.
For a brief instant he thought of Carline, and Roland, then wondered how she
could seem so far removed so quickly, or how indifferent he was to his rival's
attentions. He shook his head, and. his gaze returned to the dark tunnel ahead.
THE TUNNELS WERE damp. Every once in a
while they would pass a tunnel branching off to one side or the other. Pug
peered down each as he passed, but they were quickly swallowed up in gloom. The
torches sent flickering shadows dancing on the walls, expanding and contracting
as they moved closer or farther from each other, or as the ceiling rose or
fell. At several places they had to pull the mules' heads down, but for most of
their passage there was ample room.
Pug heard Tomas, who walked in front of
him, mutter, “I'd not want to stray down here; I've lost all sense of
direction.” Pug said nothing, for the mines had an oppressive feeling to him.
After some time they came to a large
cavern with several tunnels leading out. The column halted, and the Duke
ordered watches to be posted. Torches were wedged in the rocks and the mules
watered. Pug and Tomas stood with the last watch, and Pug thought a hundred
times that shapes moved just outside the fire's glow. Soon guards came to
replace them, and the boys joined the others, who were eating. They were given
dried meat and biscuits to eat. Tomas asked Dolgan, “What place is this?”
The dwarf puffed on his pipe. “It is a
glory hole, laddie. When my people mined this area, we fashioned many such
places. When great runs of iron, gold, silver, and other metals would come
together, many tunnels would be joined. And as the metals were taken out, these
caverns would be formed. There are natural ones down here as large, but the
look of them is different. They have great spires of stone rising from the
floor, and others hanging from the ceiling, unlike this one. You'll see one as
we pass through.”
Tomas looked above him. “How high does it
go?”
Dolgan looked up. “I can't rightly say.
Perhaps a hundred feet, perhaps two or three times as much. These mountains are
rich with metals still, but when my grandfather's grandfather first mined here,
the metal was rich beyond imagining. There are hundreds of tunnels throughout
these mountains, with many levels upward and downward from here. Through that
tunnel there” -- he pointed to another on the same level as the floor of the
glory hole -- “lies a tunnel that will join with another tunnel, then yet
another. Follow that one, and you'll end up in the Mac Bronin Alroth, another
abandoned mine. Beyond that you could make your way to the Mac Owyn Dur, where
several of my people would be inquiring how you managed entrance into their
gold mine.” He laughed. “Though I doubt you could find the way, unless you were
dwarven born. “
He puffed at his pipe, and the balance of
the guards came over to eat. Dolgan said, “Well, we had best be on our way. “
Tomas looked startled. “I thought we were
stopping for the night.”
“The sun is yet high in the sky, laddie.
There's half the day left before we sleep.”
“But I thought . . .”
“I know. It is easy to lose track of time
down here, unless you have the knack of it.”
They gathered together their gear and
started off again. After more walking they entered a series of twisting,
turning passages that seemed to slant down. Dolgan explained that the entrance
on the east side of the mountains was several hundred feet lower than on the west,
and they would be moving downward most of the journey.
Later they passed through another of the
glory holes, smaller than the last, but still impressive for the number of
tunnels leading from it. Dolgan picked one with no hesitation and led them through.
Soon they could hear the sound of water,
coming from ahead. Dolgan said, over his shoulder, “You'll soon see a sight
that no man living and few dwarves have ever seen.”
As they walked, the sound of rushing
water became louder. They entered another cavern, this one natural and larger
than the first by several times. The tunnel they had been walking in became a
ledge, twenty feet wide, that ran along the right side of the cavern. They all
peered over the edge and could see nothing but darkness stretching away below.
The path rounded a curve in the wall, and
when they passed around it, they were greeted with a sight that made them all
gasp. Across the cavern, a mighty waterfall spilled over a huge outcropping of
stone. From fully three hundred feet above where they stood, it poured into the
cavern, crashing down the stone face of the opposite wall to disappear into the
darkness below. It filled the cavern with reverberations that made it
impossible to hear it striking bottom, confounding any attempt to judge the
fall's height. Throughout the cascade luminous colors danced, aglow with an
inner light. Reds, golds, greens, blues, and yellows played among the white
foam, falling along the wall, blazing with brief flashes of intense luminosity
where the water struck the wall, painting a fairy picture in the darkness.
Dolgan shouted over the roar, “Ages ago
the river Wynn-Ula ran from the Grey Towers to the Bitter Sea. A great quake
opened a fissure under the river, and now it falls into a mighty underground
lake below. As it runs through the rocks, it picks up the minerals that give it
its glowing colors.” They stood quietly for a while, marveling at the sight of
the falls of Mac Mordain Cadal.
The Duke signaled for the march to resume,
and they moved on. Besides the spectacle of the falls, they had been refreshed
by spray and cool wind off them, for the caverns were dank and musty. Onward
they went, deeper into the mines, past numberless tunnels and passages. After a
time, Gardan asked the boys how they fared. Pug and Tomas both answered that
they were fine, though tired.
Later they came to yet another cavern,
and Dolgan said it was time to rest the night. More torches were lit, and the
Duke said, “I hope we have enough brands to last the journey. They burn
quickly.”
Dolgan said, “Give me a few men, and I
will fetch some old timbers for a fire. There are many lying about, if you know
where to find them without bringing the ceiling down upon your head.”
Gardan and two other men followed the
dwarf into a side tunnel, while the others unloaded the mules and staked them
out. They were given water from the waterskins and a small portion of grain
carried for the times when they could not graze.
Borric sat next to Kulgan. “I have had an
ill feeling for the last few hours. Is it my imagining, or does something about
this place bode evil?”
Kulgan nodded as Arutha joined them. “I
have felt something also, but it comes and goes. It is nothing I can put a name
to.”
Arutha hunkered down and used his dagger to draw aimlessly in the
dirt. “This place would give anyone a case of the jumping fits and starts.
Perhaps we all feel the same thing: dread at being where men do not belong.”
The Duke said, “I hope that is all it is.
This would be a poor place to fight” -- he paused -- “or flee from. “
The boys stood watch, but could overhear
the conversation, as could the other men, for no one else was speaking in the
cavern and the sound carried well. Pug said in a hushed voice, “I will also be
glad to be done with this mine.”
Tomas grinned in the torchlight, his face
set in an evil leer. “Afraid of the dark, little boy?”
Pug snorted. “No more than you, should
you but admit it. Do you think you could find your way out?”
Tomas lost his smile. Further
conversation was interrupted by the return of Dolgan and the others. They
carried a good supply of broken timbers, used to shore up the passages in days
gone by. A fire was quickly made from the old, dry wood, and soon the cavern
was brightly lit.
The boys were relieved of guard-duty and
ate. As soon as they were done eating, they spread their cloaks. Pug found the
hard dirt floor uncomfortable, but he was very tired, and sleep soon overtook
him.
THEY LED THE mules deeper into the mines, the animal's hooves
clattering on the stone, the sound echoing down the dark tunnels. They had
walked the entire day, taking only a short rest to eat at noon. Now they were
approaching the cavern where Dolgan said they were to spend their second night.
Pug felt a strange sensation, as if remembering a cold chill. It had touched
him several times over the last hour, and he was worried. Each time he had
turned to look behind him. This time Gardan said, “I feel it too, boy, as if
something is near.”
They entered another large glory hole,
and Dolgan stood with his hand upraised. All movement ceased as the dwarf
listened for something. Pug and Tomas strained to hear as well, but no sounds
came to them. Finally the dwarf said, “For a time I thought I heard . . . but
then I guess not. We will camp here.” They had carried spare timber with them
and used it to make a fire.
When Pug and Tomas left their watch, they
found a subdued party around the fire. Dolgan was saying, “This part of Mac
Mordain Cadal is closest to the deeper, ancient tunnels. The next cavern we
come to will have several that lead directly to the old mines. Once past that
cavern, we will have a speedy passage to the surface. We should be out of the
mine by midday tomorrow.
Borric looked around. “This place may
suit your nature, dwarf, but I will be glad to have it behind.”
Dolgan laughed, the rich, hearty sound
echoing off the cavern walls. “It is not that the place suits my nature, Lord
Borric, but rather that my nature suits the place. I can travel easily under
the mountains, and my folk have ever been miners. But as to choice, I would
rather spend my time in the high pastures of Caldara tending my herd, or sit in
the long hall with my brethren, drinking ale and singing ballads.”
Pug asked, “Do you spend much time
singing ballads?”
Dolgan fixed him with a friendly smile,
his eyes shining in the firelight. “Aye. For winters are long and hard in the
mountains. Once the herds are safely in winter pasture, there is little to do,
so we sing our songs and drink autumn ale, and wait for spring. It is a good
life.”
Pug nodded. “I would like to see your
village sometime, Dolgan.”
Dolgan puffed on his ever-present pipe. “Perhaps
you will someday, laddie.”
They turned in for the night, and Pug
drifted off to sleep. Once in the dead of night, when the fire had burned low,
he awoke, feeling the chilling sensation that had plagued him earlier. He sat
up, cold sweat dripping down his body, and looked around. He could see the
guards who were on duty, standing near their torches. Around him he saw the
forms of sleeping bodies. The feeling grew stronger for a moment, as if
something dreadful was approaching, and he was about to wake Tomas when it
passed, leaving him tired and wrung out. He lay back down and soon was lost in
dreamless sleep.
HE AWOKE COLD and stiff. The guards were
readying the mules, and soon they would all leave. Pug roused Tomas, who
protested at being pulled from his dream. “I was in the kitchen at home, and
Mother was preparing a large platter of sausages and corn cakes dripping with
honey,” he said sleepily.
Pug threw a biscuit at him. “This will
have to do until Bordon. Then we shall eat.”
They gathered together their meager provisions, loaded them on the
mules, and set off. As they made their way along, Pug began to experience the
icy feeling of the night before. Several times it came and went. Hours passed,
and they came to the last great cave. Here Dolgan stopped them while he looked
into the gloom. Pug could hear him saying, “For a moment I thought . . .”
Suddenly the hairs on Pug's neck stood
up, and the feeling of icy terror swept over him, more horrible than before.
“Dolgan, Lord Borric!” he cried. “Something terrible is happening!”
Dolgan stood stock-still, listening. A
faint moan echoed from down another tunnel.
Kulgan shouted, “I feel something also.”
Suddenly the sound repeated, closer, a
chilling moan that echoed off the vaulted ceiling, making its origins
uncertain.
“By the gods!” shouted the dwarf “'Tis a
wraith! Hurry! Form a circle, or it will be upon us and we'll be lost. “
Gardan pushed the boys forward, and the
guards moved the mules to the center of the cavern. They quickly staked the two
mules down and formed a circle around the frantic animals. Weapons were drawn.
Gardan placed himself before the two boys, forcing them back near the mules.
Both had swords out, but held them uncertainly. Tomas could feel his heart
pound, and Pug was bathed in cold sweat. The terror that gripped him had not
increased since Dolgan had put a name to it, but it had not lessened either.
They heard the sharp hiss of intaken
breath and looked to the right. Before the soldier who had made the sound, a
figure loomed out of the darkness: a shifting man-shape, darker blackness
against the black, with two glowing, redcoal lights where eyes should be.
Dolgan shouted, “Keep close, and guard
your neighbor. You can't kill it, but they like not the feel of cold iron.
Don't let it touch you, for it'll draw your life from your body. It is how they
feed.”
It approached them slowly, as if having
no need to hurry. It stopped for a moment, as if inspecting the defense before
it.
The wraith let out another low, long
moan, sounding like all the terror and hopelessness of the world given voice.
Suddenly one of the guards struck downward, slashing at the wraith. A shrill
moan erupted from the creature when the sword hit, and cold blue fire danced
along the blade for a moment. The creature shrank away, then with sudden speed
struck out at the guard. An armlike shadow extended from its body, and the
guard shrieked as he crumpled to the ground.
The mules broke, pulling up stakes,
terrified by the presence of the wraith. Guards were knocked to the ground, and
confusion reigned. Pug lost sight of the wraith for a moment, being more
concerned with flying hooves. As the mules kicked, Pug found himself dodging through
the melee. He heard Kulgan's voice behind him and saw the magician standing
next to Prince Arutha. “Stand close, all of you,” the magician commanded.
Obeying, Pug closed to Kulgan with the others as the scream of another guard
echoed through the gallery. Within a moment a great cloud of white smoke began
to appear around them, issuing from Kulgan's body. “We must leave the mules,”
said the magician. “The undead will not enter the smoke, but I cannot keep it
together long or walk far. We must escape now!”
Dolgan pointed to a tunnel, on the other
side of the cavern from where they had entered. “That's the way we must go.”
Keeping close together, the group started toward the tunnel while a terrified
bray sounded. Bodies lay on the floor: the two mules as well as the fallen
guards. Dropped torches flickered, giving the scene a nightmarish quality, as
the black shape closed upon the party. Reaching the edge of the smoke, it
recoiled from its touch. It ranged about the edge, unable or unwilling to enter
the white smoke.
Pug looked past the creature, and the pit
of his stomach churned.
Clearly standing in the light of a torch
held in his hand was Tomas, behind the creature. Tomas looked helplessly past
the wraith at Pug and the escaping party. “'Tomas!” ripped from Pug's throat,
followed by a sob.
The party halted for a brief second, and
Dolgan said, “We can't stop. We'd all perish for the sake of the boy. We must
press on.” A firm hand clutched at Pug's shoulder as he started forward to aid
his friend. He looked back and saw that it was Gardan holding him. “We must
leave him, Pug,” he said, a grim expression on his ebony face. “Tomas is a
soldier. He understands.” Pug was pulled along helplessly. He saw the wraith
follow along for a moment, then stop and turn toward Tomas.
Whether alerted by Pug's cries or by some
evil sense, the undead creature started toward Tomas, slowly stalking him. The
boy hesitated, then spun and ran to another tunnel. The wraith shrieked and
started after him. Pug saw the glow of Tomas's torch disappear down the tunnel,
then flicker into blackness.
TOMAS SAW THE pained expression on Pug's
face as Gardan pulled his friend away. When the mules had broken, he had dodged
away from the others and now found himself separated from them. He looked for a
way to circle around the wraith, but it was too close to the passage his
companions were taking. As Kulgan and the others escaped up the tunnel, Tomas
saw the wraith turn toward him. It started to approach, and he hesitated a
moment, then ran toward a different tunnel.
Shadows and light danced madly on the
walls as Tomas fled down the passage, his footfalls echoing in the gloom. His
torch was held tightly in his left hand, the sword clutched in his right. He looked
over his shoulder and saw the two glowing red eyes pursuing him, though they
seemed not to be gaining. With grim determination he thought, if it catches me,
it will catch the fastest runner in all of Crydee. He lengthened his strides
into a long, easy lope, saving strength and wind. He knew that if he had to
turn and face the creature, he would surely die. The initial fear lessened, and
now he felt a cold clarity holding his mind, the cunning reason of a prey
knowing it is hopeless to fight. All his energy was turned toward fleeing. He
would try to lose the creature any way possible.
He ducked into a side corridor and
hurried along it, checking to see if the wraith would follow. The glowing red
eyes appeared at the entrance to the tunnel he had turned into, following him.
The distance between them seemed to have increased. The thought that many might
have died at the thing's hand because they were too frightened to run crossed
his mind. The wraith's strength lay in the numbing terror it caused.
Another corridor and another turn. Still
the wraith followed. Ahead lay a large cavern, and Tomas found himself entering
the same hall in which the wraith had attacked the party. He had circled around
and entered through another tunnel. Racing across the floor, he saw the bodies
of mules and guards lying in his path. He paused long enough to grab a fresh
torch, for his was nearly spent, and transferred the flame.
He looked backward to see the undead
creature closing on him and started off again. Hope briefly flickered in his
breast, for if he could pick the proper corridor, he might catch up to the
others. Dolgan had said that from this cavern it was a straight journey to the
surface. He picked what he thought was the proper one, though he was disoriented
and couldn't be sure.
The wraith let out a howl of rage at its
prey's eluding it again, and followed. Tomas felt terror bordering on elation
as his long legs stretched out, eating up the distance ahead of him. He gained
his second wind and set a steady pace for himself. Never had he run so well,
but then never had he possessed such a reason.
After what seemed an endless time of
running, he found himself coming to a series of side tunnels, set closely
together. He felt hope die, for this was not the straight path the dwarf had
mentioned. Picking one at random, he turned into a passage and found more
tunnels close by. Cutting through several more, he turned as quickly as
possible, weaving his way through a maze of passages. Ducking around a wall
formed between two such tunnels, he stopped briefly and caught his breath. He
listened for a moment and heard only the sound of his pounding heart. He had
been too busy to look behind and was unsure of the wraith's whereabouts.
Suddenly a shriek of rage echoed faintly
down the corridors, sounding far off Tomas sank to the floor of the tunnel and
felt his body go limp. Another shriek echoed more faintly, and Tomas felt
certain that the wraith had lost his trail and was moving off in another direction.
A sense of relief flooded through him,
nearly causing him to laugh giddily. It was closely followed by the sudden
realization of his situation. He sat up and took stock. If he could find his
way back to the dead animals, he would at least have food and water. But as he
stood up, he realized that he had no notion which way the cavern lay. Cursing
himself for not counting the turns as he had made them, he tried to remember
the general pattern he had followed. He had turned mostly to the right, he
reminded himself, so if he retraced his steps mostly to the left, he should be
able to find one of the many tunnels that led to the glory hole. Looking
cautiously around the first corner, Tomas set off, searching his way through
the maze of passages.
AFTER AN UNKNOWN time had passed, Tomas stopped and looked around
in the second large cavern he had come to since he had fled the wraith. Like
the first, this cavern was devoid of mules and men-and the hoped for food and
water. Tomas opened his pouch and took out the small biscuit he had hoarded to
nibble while walking. It gave him little relief from his hunger.
When he was done, he set off again,
trying to find some clue to the way out. He knew he had only a short time
before his torch died, but he refused to simply sit and wait for a nameless
death in the dark.
After some time Tomas could hear the
sound of water echoing through the tunnel. Hurrying forward, his thirst
spurring him on, he entered a large cavern, the biggest yet, as far as he could
tell. Tar away he could hear the faint roar of the Mac Mordain Cadal falls, but
in which direction he couldn't be sure. Somewhere high in the darkness lay the
path that they had taken two days earlier. Tomas felt his heart sink, he had
moved deeper into the earth than he had thought.
The tunnel widened to a landing of some
sort and disappeared beneath what appeared to be a large lake, constantly
lapping against the sides of the cavern, filling it with muted echoes. Quickly
he fell to his knees and drank. The water tasted rich with minerals, but was
clear and fresh.
Sitting back on his haunches, he looked
about. The landing was packed earth and sand and appeared to be fashioned
rather than natural. Tomas guessed the dwarves might have used boats to cross
the underground lake, but could only wonder what lay on the other side. Then
the thought hit him that perhaps someone other than the dwarves had used boats
to cross the lake, and he felt fear again.
To his left he spied a pile of wood, nestled
against a junction of the landing and the cavern wall. Crossing to it, he
pulled out several pieces and started a small fire. The wood was mostly timber
pieces, used to shore up the tunnels, but mixed in were several branches and
twigs. They must have been brought down by the falls from above, where the
river enters the mountain, he thought. Underneath the pile he found some
fibrous weeds growing. Wondering at the plants' ability to grow without
sunlight, the boy was nevertheless thankful, for after cutting them with his
sword, he was able to fashion some rude torches with the weeds wrapped around
some driftwood. He tied them in a bundle, using his sword belt, forcing him to
give up his scabbard. At least, he thought, I'll have a little more light. Some
extra time to see where he was going was comforting.
He threw some bigger timber pieces on his
small fire, and soon it was roaring into brightness. Abruptly the cavern seemed
to light up, and Tomas spun around. The entire cavern was glowing with sparkling
light, as some sort of mineral, or crystal, caught the light and reflected it
to be caught and reflected again. It was a glittering, sparkling rainbow of
colors cascading over walls and ceiling, giving the entire cavern a fairylike
quality as far as the eye could follow.
Tomas stood in awe for a minute, drinking
in the sight, for he knew he would never be able to explain in words what he
was seeing. The thought struck him that he might be the only human ever to have
witnessed the display.
It
was hard to tear his eyes from the glory of the vision, but Tomas forced
himself He used the extra illumination to examine the area he was in. There was
nothing beyond the landing, but he did spy another tunnel off to the left,
leaving the cavern at the far end of the sand.
He gathered together his torches and
walked along the landing. As he reached the tunnel, his fire died down, the dry
timber being quickly consumed. Another glorious vision assaulted his senses,
for the gemlike walls and ceiling continued to glimmer and glow. Again he stood
silently watching the display. Slowly the sparkling dimmed, until the cavern
was again dark, except for his torch and the quickly dying fire's red glow.
He had to stretch to reach the other
tunnel, but made it without dropping his sword or torches, or getting his boots
wet. Turning away from the cavern, he resumed his journey.
He made his way for hours, the torch
burning lower. He lit one of the new ones and found that it gave a satisfactory
light. He was still frightened, but felt good about keeping his head under
these conditions and was sure Swordmaster Fannon would approve of his actions.
After walking for a while, he came to an
intersection. He found the bones of a creature in the dust, its fate
unknowable. He spotted the tracks of some other small creature leading away,
but they were faint with age. With no other notion than the need for a clear
path, Tomas followed them. Soon they also vanished in the dust.
He had no means to reckon time, but
thought that it must be well into night by now. There was a timeless feeling to
these passages, and he felt lost beyond recovery. Fighting down what he
recognized as budding panic, he continued to walk. He kept his mind on pleasant
memories of home, and dreams of the future. He would find a way out, and he
would become a great hero in the coming war. And most cherished dream of all,
he would journey to Elvandar and see the beautiful lady of the elves again.
He followed the tunnel downward. This
area seemed different from the other caverns and tunnels, its manner of
fashioning unlike the others. He thought that Dolgan could tell if this was so,
and who had done the work.
He entered another cavern and looked
around. Some of the tunnels that entered the cavern were barely tall enough for
a man to walk through upright. Others were broad enough for a company of men to
walk through ten abreast, with long spears upon their shoulders. He hoped this
meant the dwarves had fashioned the smaller tunnels and he could follow one
upward, back to the surface.
Looking around, he spied a likely ledge
to rest upon, within jumping distance. He crossed to it and tossed up his sword
and the bundle of torches. He then gently tossed up his torch, so as not to put
it out, and pulled himself up. It was large enough to sleep upon without
rolling off. Four feet up the wall was a small hole, about three feet in
diameter. Looking down it, Tomas could see that it opened up quickly to a size
large enough to stand in and stretched away into blackness.
Satisfied that nothing lurked immediately
above him, and that anything coming from below would awaken him, Tomas pulled
his cloak around him, rested his head on his hand, and put out the torch. He
was frightened, but the exhaustion of the day lulled him quickly to sleep. He
lay in fitful dreams of red glowing eyes chasing him down endless black
corridors, terror washing over him. He ran until he came to a green place where
he could rest, feeling safe, under the gaze of a beautiful woman with red-gold
hair and pale blue eyes.
He started awake to some nameless call.
He had no idea of how long he had slept, but he felt as if it had been long
enough for his body to run again, if need be. He felt in the dark for his torch
and took flint and steel from out of his pouch. He struck sparks into the
wadding of the torch and started a glow. Quickly bringing the torch close, he
blew the spark into flame. Looking about, he found the cavern unchanged. A
faint echoing of his own movements was all he heard.
He realized he could have a chance of
survival only if he kept moving and found a way up. He stood and was about to
climb down from the ledge when a faint noise sounded from the hole above.
He peered down it but could see nothing.
Again there came a faint sound, and Tomas strained to hear what it was. It was
almost like the tread of footfalls, but he could not be sure. He nearly
shouted, but held off, for there was no assurance it was his friends returned
to find him. His imagination provided many other possibilities, all of them
unpleasant.
He thought for a moment, then decided.
Whatever was making the noise might lead him out of the mines, even if only by
providing a trail to follow. With no other option appearing more attractive, he
pulled himself up through the small hole, entering the new tunnel.
It
was a dispirited group that
emerged from the mine.
The survivors sank to the ground, near
exhaustion. Pug had fought tears for hours after Tomas had fled, and now he lay
on the wet ground staring upward at the grey sky, feeling numb. Kulgan had
fared worst of all, being completely drained of energy by the spell used to
repel the wraith. He had been carried on the shoulders of the others most of
the way, and they showed the price of their burden. All fell into an exhausted
sleep, except Dolgan, who lit a fire and stood watch.
Pug awoke to the sound of voices and a
clear, starry night. The smell of food cooking greeted him. When Gardan and the
three remaining guards awakened, Dolgan had left them to watch over the others
and had snared a brace of rabbits. These were roasting over a fire. The others
awoke, except Kulgan, who snored deeply.
Arutha and the Duke saw the boy wake, and
the Prince came to where he sat. The younger son of the Duke, ignoring the
snow, sat on the ground next to Pug, who had his cloak wrapped around him. “How
do you feel, Pug?” Arutha asked, concern showing in his eyes.
This was the first time Pug had seen
Arutha's gender nature. Pug tried to speak and found tears coming to his eyes.
Tomas had been his friend as long as he could remember, more a brother than a
friend. As he tried to speak, great racking sobs broke from his throat, and he
felt hot, salty tears run down into his mouth.
Arutha placed his arm around Pug, letting
the boy cry on his shoulder. When the initial flood of grief had passed, the
Prince said, “There is nothing shameful in mourning the loss of a friend, Pug.
My father and I share your pain.”
Dolgan came to stand behind the Prince.
“I also, Pug, for he was a likable lad. We all share your loss.” The dwarf
seemed to consider something and spoke to the Duke.
Kulgan had just awakened, sitting up like
a bear waking from winter's sleep. He regained his bearings and, seeing Arutha
with Pug, quickly forgot his own aching joints and joined them.
There was little they could say, but Pug
found comfort in their closeness. He finally regained his composure and pulled
away from the Prince. “Thank you, Your Highness,” he said, sniffing. “I will be
all right.”
They joined Dolgan, Gardan, and the Duke
near the fire. Borric was shaking his head at something the dwarf had said. “I
thank you for your bravery, Dolgan, but I can't allow it.”
Dolgan puffed on his pipe, a friendly
smile splitting his beard. “And how do you intend to stop me, Your Grace?
Surely not by force?”
Borric shook his head. “No, of course
not. But to go would be the sheerest folly.”
Kulgan and Arutha exchanged questioning
looks. Pug paid little attention, being lost in a cold, numb world. In spite of
having just awakened, he felt ready for sleep again, welcoming its warm, soft
relief.
Borric told them, “This mad dwarf means
to return to the mines.”
Before Kulgan and Arutha could voice a
protest, Dolgan said, “I know it is only a slim hope, but if the boy has eluded
the foul spirit, he'll be wandering lost and alone. There are tunnels down
there that have never known the tread of a dwarfs foot, let alone a boy's. Once
down a passage, I have no trouble making my way back, but Tomas has no such
natural sense. If I can find his trail, I can find him. If he is to have any
chance of escaping the mines, he'll be needing my guidance. I'll bring home the
boy if he lives, on this you have the word of Dolgan Tagarson, chief of village
Caldara. I could not rest in my long hall this winter if I did not try.”
Pug was roused from his lethargy by the
dwarfs words. “Do you think you can find him, Dolgan?”
“If any can, I can,” he said. He leaned
close to Pug. “Do not get your hopes too high, for it is unlikely that Tomas
eluded the wraith. I would do you a disservice if I said otherwise, boy.”
Seeing the tears brimming in Pug's eyes again, he quickly added, “But if there
is a way, I shall find it.”
Pug nodded, seeking a middle path between
desolation and renewed hope. He understood the admonition, but still could not
give up the faint flicker of comfort Dolgan's undertaking would provide.
Dolgan crossed over to where his shield
and ax lay and picked them up. “When the dawn comes, quickly follow the trail
down the hills through the woodlands.
While
not the Green Heart, this place has menace aplenty for so small a band. If you
lose your way, head due east. You'll find your way to the road to Bordon. From
there it is a matter of three days' walk. May the gods protect you. “
Borric nodded, and Kulgan walked over to
where the dwarf made ready to leave. He handed Dolgan a pouch. “I can get more
tabac in the town, friend dwarf. Please take this.”
Dolgan took it and smiled at Kulgan.
“Thank you, magician. I am in your debt.”
Borric came to stand before the dwarf and
place a hand on his shoulder. “It is we who are in your debt, Dolgan. If you
come to Crydee, we will have that meal you were promised. That, and more. May
good fortune go with you.”
“Thank you, Your Lordship. I'll look
forward to it.” Without another word, Dolgan walked into the blackness of Mac
Mordain Cadal.
DOLGAN STOPPED By the dead mules, Pausing
only long enough to pick up food, water, and a lantern. The dwarf needed no
light to make his way underground; his people had long ago adapted other senses
for the darkness. But, he thought, it will increase the chances of finding
Tomas if the boy can see the light, no matter the risk of attracting unwelcome
attention. Assuming he is still alive, he added grimly.
Entering the tunnel where he had last
seen Tomas, Dolgan searched about for signs of the boy's passing. The dust was
thin, but here and there he could make out a slight disturbance, perhaps a
footprint. Following, the dwarf came to even dustier passages, where the boy's
footfalls were clearly marked. Hurrying, he followed them.
Dolgan came back to the same cavern,
after a few minutes, and cursed.
He felt little hope of finding the boy's
tracks again among all the disturbance caused by the fight with the wraith.
Pausing briefly, he set out to examine each tunnel leading out of the cavern
for signs. After an hour he found a single footprint heading away from the
cavern, through a tunnel to the right of where he had entered the first time.
Moving up it, he found several more prints, set wide apart, and decided the boy
must have been running. Hurrying on, he saw more tracks, as the passage became
dustier.
Dolgan came to the cavern on the lake and
nearly lost the trail again, until he saw the tunnel near the edge of the
landing. He slogged through the water, pulling himself up into the passage, and
saw Tomas's tracks. His faint lantern light was insufficient to illuminate the
crystals in the cavern. But even if it had, he would not have paused to admire
the sight, so intent was he on finding the boy.
Downward he followed, never resting. He
knew that Tomas had long before outdistanced the wraith. There were signs that
most of his journey was at a slower pace: footprints in the dust showed he had
been walking, and the cold campfire showed he had stopped. But there were other
terrors besides the wraith down here, just as dreadful.
Dolgan again lost the trail in the last
cavern, finding it only when he spied the ledge above where the tracks ended.
He had difficulty climbing to it, but when he did, he saw the blackened spot
where the boy had snuffed out his torch. Here Tomas must have rested. Dolgan
looked around the empty cavern. The air did not move this deep below the
mountains. Even the dwarf, who was used to such things, found this an unnerving
place. He looked down at the black mark on the ledge. But how long did Tomas
stay, and where did he go?
Dolgan saw the hole in the wall and,
since no tracks led away from the ledge, decided that was the way Tomas must
have gone. He climbed through and followed the passage until it came to a
larger one, heading downward, into the bowels of the mountain.
Dolgan followed what seemed to be a group
of tracks, as if a band of men had come this way. Tomas's tracks were mixed in,
and he was worried, for the boy could have been along this way before or after
the others, or could have been with them. If the boy was held prisoner by
someone, then Dolgan knew every moment was critical.
The tunnel wound downward and soon
changed into a hall fashioned from great stone blocks fitted closely together
and polished smooth. In all his years he had never seen its like. The passage
leveled out, and Dolgan walked along quietly. The tracks had vanished, for the
stone was hard and free of dust. High overhead, Dolgan could make out the first
of several crystal chandeliers hung from the ceiling by chains. They could be
lowered by meant of a pulley, so the candies might be lit. The sound of his
boots echoed hollowly off the high ceiling.
At the far end of the passage he spied
large doors, fashioned from wood, with bands of iron and a great lock. They
were ajar, and light could be seen coming through.
Without a sound, Dolgan crept close to
the doors and peered in. He gaped at what he saw, his shield and ax coming up
instinctively.
Sitting on a pile of gold coins, and gems
the size of a man's fist, was Tomas, eating what looked to be a fish. Opposite
him crouched a figure that caused Dolgan to doubt his eyes.
A head the size of a small wagon rested
on the floor. Shield-size scales of a deep golden color covered it, and the
long, supple neck led back to a huge body extending into the gloom of the giant
hall. Enormous wings were folded across its back, their drooping tips touching
the floor. Two pointed ears sat atop its head, separated by a delicate-looking
crest, flecked with silver. Its long muzzle was set in a wolflike grin, showing
fangs as long as broadswords, and a long forked tongue flicked out for a
moment.
Dolgan fought down the overwhelming and
rare urge to run, for Tomas was sitting, and to all appearances sharing a meal,
with the dwarven folk's most feared hereditary enemy, a great dragon. He
stepped forward, and his boots clacked on the stone floor.
Tomas turned at the sound, and the
dragon's great head came up. Giant ruby eyes regarded the small intruder. Tomas
jumped to his feet, an expression of joy upon his face. “Dolgan!” He scrambled
down from the pile of wealth and rushed to the dwarf.
The dragon's voice rumbled through the
great hall, echoing like thunder through a valley. “Welcome, dwarf. Thy friend
hath told me that thou wouldst not forsake him.”
Tomas stood before the dwarf, asking a
dozen questions, while Dolgan's senses reeled. Behind the boy, the Prince of
all dragons sat quietly observing the exchange, and the dwarf was having
trouble maintaining the equanimity that was normally his. Making little sense
of Tomas's questions, Dolgan gently pushed him to one side to better see the
dragon. “I came alone,” he said softly to the boy. “The others were loath to
leave the search to me, but they had to press on, so vital was the mission.”
Tomas said, “I understand.”
“What manner of wizardry is this?” asked
Dolgan softly.
The dragon chuckled, and the room rumbled
with the sound. “Come into my home, dwarf, and I will tell thee.” The great
dragon's head returned to the floor, his eyes still resting above Dolgan's
head. The dwarf approached slowly, shield and ax unconsciously at the ready.
The dragon laughed, a deep, echoing sound, like water cascading down a canyon.
“Stay thy hand, small warrior, I'll not harm thee or thy friend.”
Dolgan let his shield down and hung his
ax on his belt. He looked around and saw that they were standing in a vast
hall, fashioned out of the living rock of the mountain. On all its walls could
be seen large tapestries and banners, faded and torn; something about their
look set Dolgan's teeth on edge, for they were as alien as they were ancient --
no creature he knew of, human, elf, or goblin fashioned those pennants. More of
the giant crystal chandeliers hung from timbers across the ceiling. At the far
end of the hall, a throne could be seen on a dais, and long tables with chairs
for many diners stood before it. Upon the tables were flagons of crystal and
plates of gold. And all was covered with the dust of ages.
Elsewhere in the hall lay piles of
wealth: gold, gems, crowns, silver, rich armor, bolts of rare cloth, and carved
chests of precious woods, fitted with inlaid enamels of great craft.
Dolgan sat upon a lifetime's riches of
gold, absently moving it around to make as comfortable a seat as was possible.
Tomas sat next to him as the dwarf pulled out his pipe. He didn't show it, but
he felt the need to calm himself, and his pipe always soothed his nerves. He
lit a taper from his lantern and struck it to his pipe. The dragon watched him,
then said, “Canst thou now breathe fire and smoke, dwarf? Art thou the new
dragon? Hath ever a dragon been so small?”
Dolgan shook his head. “'Tis but my
pipe.” He explained the use of tabac.
The dragon said, “This is a strange
thing, but thine are a strange folk, in truth.”
Dolgan cocked a brow at this but said
nothing. “Tomas, how did you come to this place?”
Tomas seemed unmindful of the dragon, and
Dolgan found this reassuring. If the great beast had wished to harm them, he
could have done so with little effort. Dragons were undisputedly the mightiest
creatures on Midkemia. And this was the mightiest dragon Dolgan had heard of,
half again the size of those he had fought in his youth.
Tomas finished the fish he had been
eating and said, “I wandered for a long time and came to a place where I could
sleep.”
“Aye, I found it.”
“I awoke at the sound of something and
found tracks that led here.”
“Those I saw also. I was afraid you had
been taken.”
“I wasn't. It was a party of goblins and
a few Dark Brothers, coming to this place. They were very concerned about what
was ahead and didn't pay attention to what was behind, so I could follow fairly
close.”
“That was a dangerous thing to do.”
“I know, but I was desperate for a way
out. I thought they might lead me to the surface, and I could wait while they
went on ahead, then slip out. If I could get out of the mines, I could have
headed north toward your village.”
“A bold plan, Tomas,” said Dolgan, an
approving look in his eyes.
“They came to this place, and I
followed.”
“What happened to them?”
The dragon spoke. “I sent them far away,
dwarf, for they were not company I would choose.”
“Sent them away? How?”
The dragon raised his head a little, and
Dolgan could see that his scales were faded and dull in places. The red eyes
were filmed over slightly, and suddenly Dolgan, knew the dragon was blind.
“The dragons have long had magic, though
it is unlike any other. It is by my arts that I can see thee, dwarf, for the
light hath long been denied me. I took the foul creatures and sent them far to
the north. They do not know how they came to that place, nor remember this
place.”
Dolgan puffed on his pipe, thinking of
what he was hearing. “In the tales of my people, there are legends of dragon
magicians, though you are the first I have seen.”
The dragon lowered his head to the floor
slowly, as if tired. “For I am one of the last of the golden dragons, dwarf,
and none of the lesser dragons have the art of sorcery. I have sworn never to
take a life, but I would not have their kind invade my resting place.”
Tomas spoke up. “Rhuagh has been kind to
me, Dolgan. He let me stay until you found me, for he knew that someone was
coming.”
Dolgan looked at the dragon, wondering at
his foretelling.
Tomas continued, “He gave me some smoked
fish to eat, and a place to rest.”
“Smoked fish?”
The dragon said, “The kobolds, those thou
knowest as gnomes, worship me as a god and bring me offerings, fish caught in
the deep lake and smoked, and treasure gleaned from deeper halls.”
“Aye,” said Dolgan, “gnomes have never
been known for being overly bright.”
The dragon chuckled. “True. The kobolds
are shy and harm only those who trouble them in their deep tunnels. They are a
simple folk, and it pleaseth them to have a god. As I am not able to hunt, it
is an agreeable arrangement. “
Dolgan considered his next question. “I
mean no disrespect, Rhuagh, but it has ever been my experience with dragons
that you have little love for others not your own kind. Why have you aided the
boy?”
The dragon closed his eyes for a moment,
then opened them again to stare blankly toward the dwarf “Know this, dwarf,
that such was not always the way of it. Thy people are old, but mine are the
oldest of all, save one. We were here before the elves and the moredhel. We
served those whose names may not be spoken, and were a happy people.”
“The Dragon Lords? “
“So your legends call them. They were our
masters, and we were their servants, as were the elves and the moredhel. When
they left this land, on a journey beyond imagining, we became the most powerful
of the free people, in a time before the dwarves or men came to these lands.
Ours was a dominion over the skies and all things, for we were mighty beyond
any other.”
“Ages ago, men and dwarves came to our
mountains, and for a time we lived in peace. But ways change, and soon strife
came. The elves drove the moredhel from the forest now called Elvandar, and men
and dwarves warred with dragons.”
“We were strong, but humans are like the
trees of the forest, their numbers uncountable. Slowly my people fled to the
south, and I am the last in these mountains. I have lived here for ages, for I
would not forsake my home. “
“By magic I could turn away those who
sought this treasure, and kill those whose arts foiled my clouding of their
minds. I sickened of the killing and vowed to take no more lives, even those as
hateful as the moredhel. That is why I sent them far, and why I aided the boy,
for he is undeserving of harm.”
Dolgan studied the dragon. “I thank you,
Rhuagh.”
“Thy thanks are welcome, Dolgan of the
Grey Towers. I am glad of thy coming also. It is only a little longer that I
could shelter the boy, for I summoned Tomas to my side by magic arts, so he
might sit my deathwatch.”
“What?” exclaimed Tomas.
“It is given to dragons to know the hour
of their death, Tomas, and mine is close. I am old, even by the measure of my
people, and have led a full life. I am content for it to be so. It is our way.”
Dolgan looked troubled. “Still, I find it
strange to sit here hearing you speak of this.”
“Why, dwarf? Is it not true with thine
own people that when one dieth, it is accounted how well he lived, rather than
how long?”
“You have the truth of that.”
“Then why should it matter if the death hour is known or not? It
is still the same. I have had all that one of my kind could hope for: health,
mates, young, riches, and rest. These are all I have ever wanted, and I have
had them.”
“'Tis a wise thing to know what is
wanted, and wiser still to know when 'tis achieved,” said Dolgan.
“True. And still wiser to know when it is
unachievable, for then striving is folly. It is the way of my people to sit the
deathwatch, but there are none of my kind near enough to call. I would ask thee
to wait for my passing before thy leaving. Wilt thou?”
Dolgan looked at Tomas, who bobbed his
head in agreement. “Aye, dragon, we will, though it is not a thing to gladden
our hearts.”
The dragon closed his eyes; Tomas and
Dolgan could see they were beginning to swell shut. “Thanks to thee, Dolgan,
and to thee, Tomas.”
The dragon lay there and spoke to them of
his life, flying the skies of Midkemia, of far lands where tigers lived in
cities, and mountains where eagles could speak. Tales of wonder and awe were
told, long into the night.
When his voice began to falter, Rhuagh
said, “Once a man came to this place, a magician of mighty arts. He could not
be turned from this place by my magic, nor could I slay him. For three days we
battled, his arts against mine, and when done, he had bested me. I thought he
would slay me and carry off my riches, but instead he stayed, for his only
thought was to learn my magic, so that it would not be lost when I passed.”
Tomas sat in wonder, for as little as he
knew about magic from Pug, he thought this a marvelous thing. In his mind's eye
he could see the titanic struggle and the great powers working.
“With him he had a strange creature, much
like a goblin, though upright, and with features of finer aspect. For three
years he stayed with me, while his servant came and went. He learned all I
could teach, for I could deny him not. But he taught as well, and his wisdom
gave me great comfort. It was because of him that I learned to respect life, no
matter how mean of character, and vowed to spare any that came to me. He also
had suffered at the hands of others, as I had in the wars with men, for much
that I cherished was lost. This man had the art of healing the wounds of the
heart and mind, and when he left, I felt the victor, not the vanquished.” He
paused and swallowed, and Tomas could
see
that speech was coming to him with more difficulty. “If a dragon could not have
attended my deathwatch, I would as soon have him sit here, for he was the first
of thy kind, boy, that I would count a friend.”
“Who was he, Rhuagh?” Tomas asked.
“He was called Macros.”
Dolgan looked thoughtful. “I've heard his
name, a magician of most puissant arts. He is nearly a myth, having lived
somewhere to the east.”
“A myth he is not, Dolgan,” said Rhuagh,
thickly. “Still, it may be that he is dead, for he dwelt with me ages ago. “
The dragon paused. “My time is now close, so I must finish. I would ask a boon
of thee, dwarf.” He moved his head slightly and said, “In yon box is a gift
from the mage, to be used at this time. It is a rod fashioned of magic. Macros
left it so that when I die no bones will be left for scavengers to pick over.
Wilt thou bring it here?”
Dolgan went to the indicated chest. He opened it to discover a black
metal rod lying upon a blue velvet cloth. He picked up the rod and found it
surprisingly heavy for its size. He carried it over to the dragon.
The dragon spoke, his words nearly
unintelligible, for his tongue was swollen. “In a moment, touch the rod to me,
Dolgan, for then will I end.”
“Aye,” said Dolgan, “though it will give
me scant pleasure to see your end, dragon.”
“Before that I have one last thing to
tell. In a box next to the other is a gift for thee, dwarf. Thou mayest take
whatever else here pleaseth thee, for I will have no use for any of it. But of
all in this hall, that in the box is what I wish thee to have.” He tried to
move his head toward Tomas, but could not. “Tomas, thanks to thee, for spending
my last with me. In the box with the dwarf 's gift is one for you. Take
whatever else pleaseth thee, also, for thy heart is good.” He drew a deep
breath, and Tomas could hear it rattle in his throat. “Now, Dolgan.”
Dolgan extended the rod and lightly
touched the dragon on the head with it. At first nothing happened. Rhuagh said
softly, “It was Macros's last gift.”
Suddenly a soft golden light began to
form around the dragon. A faint humming could be heard, as. if the walls of the
hall reverberated with fey music. The sound increased as the light grew
brighter and began to pulse with energy. Tomas and Dolgan watched as the
discolored patches faded from Rhuagh's scales. His hide shone with golden sparkle,
and the film started to lift from his eyes. He slowly raised his head, and they
knew he could again see the hall around him. His crest stood erect, and his
wings lifted, showing the rich. silver sheen underneath. The yellowed teeth
became brilliant white, and his faded black claws shone like polished ebony as
he stood upright, lifting his head high.
Dolgan said softly, “'Tis the grandest
sight I've ever beheld. “
Slowly the light grew in intensity as
Rhuagh returned to the image of his youthful power. He pulled himself to his
full, impressive height, his crest dancing with silver lights. The dragon threw
back his head, a youthful, vigorous motion, and with a shout of joy sent a
powerful blast of flame up to the high vaulted ceiling. With a roar like a
hundred trumpets he shouted, “I thank thee, Macros. It is a princely gift
indeed.”
Then the strangely harmonic thrumming
changed in tone, becoming more insistent, louder. For a brief instant both
Dolgan and Tomas thought a voice could be heard among the pulsing tones, a
deep, hollow echo saying, “You are welcome, friend.”
Tomas felt wetness on his face, and
touched it. Tears of joy from the dragon's sheer beauty were running down his
cheeks. The dragon's great golden wings unfolded, as if he were about to launch
himself in flight. The shimmering light became so bright, Tomas and Dolgan
could barely stand to look, though they could not pull their eyes from the
spectacle. The sound in the room grew to a pitch so loud, dust fell from the ceiling
upon their heads, and they could feel the floor shake. The dragon launched
himself upward, wings extended, then vanished in a blinding flash of cold white
light. Suddenly the room was as it had been and the sound was gone.
The emptiness in the cavern felt
oppressive after the dragon vanished, and Tomas looked at the dwarf. “Let's
leave, Dolgan. I have little wish to stay.”
Dolgan looked thoughtful. “Aye, Tomas, I
also have little desire to stay. Still, there is the matter of the dragon's gifts.”
He crossed over to the box the dragon had identified and opened it.
Dolgan's eyes became round as he reached
in and pulled out a dwarven hammer. He held it out before himself and looked
upon it with reverence. The head was made from a silver metal that shone in the
lantern light with bluish highlights. Across the- side were carved dwarven
symbols. The haft was carved oak, with scrollwork running the length. It was
polished, and the deep rich grain showed through the finish. Dolgan said,
faintly, “'Tis the Hammer of Tholin. Long removed from my people. Its return
will cause rejoicing in every dwarven long hall throughout the West. It is the
symbol of our last king, lost ages ago.”
Tomas came over to watch and saw
something else in the box. He reached past Dolgan and pulled out a large bundle
of white cloth. He unrolled it and found that the cloth was a tabard of white,
with a golden dragon emblazoned on the front. Inside were a shield with the
same device and a golden helm. Most marvelous of all was a golden sword with a
white hilt. Its scabbard was fashioned from a smooth white material like ivory,
but stronger, like metal. Beneath the bundle lay a coat of golden chain mail,
which he removed with an “Oh!” of wonder.
Dolgan watched him and said, “Take them,
boy. The dragon said it was your gift.”
“They are much too fine for me, Dolgan.
They belong to a prince or a king.”
“I'm thinking the previous owner has
scant use for them, laddie. They were freely given, and you may do what you
will, but I think that there is something special to them, or else they
wouldn't have been placed in the box with the hammer. Tholin's hammer is a
weapon of power, forged in the ancient hearths of the Mac Cadman Alair, the
oldest mine in these mountains. In it rests magic unsurpassed in the history of
the dwarves. It is likely the gilded armor and sword are also such. It may be
there is a purpose in their coming to you.
Tomas thought for a moment, then quickly
pulled off his great cloak. His tunic was no gambeson, but the golden mail went
over it easily enough, being fashioned for someone of larger stature. He pulled
the tabard over it and put the helm upon his head. Picking up the -sword and
shield, he stood before Dolgan “Do I look foolish?”
The dwarf regarded him closely. “They are a bit large, but you'll grow
into them, no doubt.” He thought he saw something in the way the boy stood and
held the sword in one hand and the shield in the other. “No, Tomas, you do not
look foolish. Perhaps grand, and
not
at ease, but not foolish. They are grand, and you will come to wear them as
they were meant to be worn, I think.”
Tomas nodded, picked up his cloak, and
turned toward the door, putting up his sword. The armor was surprisingly light,
much lighter than what he had worn at Crydee. The boy said, “I don't feel like
taking anything else, Dolgan. I suppose that sounds strange.”
Dolgan walked over to him. “No, boy, for
I also wish nothing of the dragon's riches.” With a backward glance at the
hall, he added, “Though there will be nights to come when I will wonder at the
wisdom of that. I may return someday, but I doubt it. Now let us find a way
home.” They set off and soon were in tunnels Dolgan knew well, taking them to
the surface.
DOLGAN GRIPPED TOMAS'S arm in silent warning. The boy knew enough
not to speak. He also felt the same alarm he had experienced just before the
wraith had attacked the day before. But this time it was almost physically
felt. The undead creature was near. Putting down the lantern, Tomas shuttered
it. His eyes widened in sudden astonishment, for instead of the expected
blackness, he saw faintly the figure of the dwarf moving slowly forward.
Without thought he said, “Dolgan --”
The dwarf turned, and suddenly a black
form loomed up at his back. “Behind you!” shouted Tomas.
Dolgan spun to confront the wraith,
instinctively bringing up his shield and Tholin's hammer. The undead creature
struck at the dwarf, and only Dolgan's battle-trained reflexes and dwarven
ability to sense movement in the inky darkness saved him, for he took the
contact on his iron-bosked shield. The creature howled in rage at the contact
with iron. Then Dolgan lashed out with the legendary weapon of his ancestors,
and, the creature screamed as the hammer struck its form. Blue-green light
sprang about the head of the hammer, and the creature retreated, wailing in
agony.
“Stay behind me,” shouted Dolgan. “If
iron irritates it, then Tholin's hammer pains it. I may be able to drive it
off.”
Tomas began to obey the dwarf, then found
his right hand crossing to pull the golden sword free of the scabbard on his
left hip. Suddenly the ill-fitting armor seemed to settle more comfortably
around his shoulders, and the shield balanced upon his arm as if he had carried
it for years. Without volition of his own, Tomas moved behind Dolgan, then
stepped past, bringing the golden sword to the ready.
The creature seemed to hesitate, then
moved toward Tomas. Tomas raised his sword, readying to strike. With a sound of
utter terror, the wraith turned and fled. Dolgan glanced at Tomas, and
something he saw made him hesitate as Tomas seemed to come to an awareness of
himself and put up his sword.
Dolgan returned to the lantern and said,
“Why did you do that, lad?”
Tomas said, “I . . . don't know.” Feeling
suddenly self-conscious at having disobeyed the dwarfs instructions, he said,
“But it worked. The thing left.”
“Aye, it worked,” agreed Dolgan, removing
the shutter from the lantern. In the light he studied the boy.
Tomas said, “I think your ancestor's
hammer was too much for it.”
Dolgan said nothing, but he knew that
wasn't the case. The creature had fled in fear from the sight of Tomas in his
armor of white and gold. Then another thought struck the dwarf. “Boy, how did
you know to warn me the creature was behind me?”
“I saw it.”
Dolgan turned to look at Tomas with open
astonishment. “You saw it? How? You had shuttered the Iantern. “
“I don't know how. I just did.”
Dolgan closed the shutter on the lantern
again and stood up. Moving a few feet away, he said, “Where am I now, lad?”
Without hesitation Tomas came to stand
before him, placing a hand upon his shoulder. “Here.”
“What-?” said the dwarf.
Tomas touched the helm, then the shield.
“You said they were special.”
“Aye, lad. But I didn't think they were
that special.”
“Should I take them off?'' asked the
worried boy.
“No, no.” Leaving the lantern upon the
floor, Dolgan said, “We can move more quickly if I don't have to worry about
what you can and can't see.” He forced a note of cheeriness into his voice.
“And despite there being no two finer warriors in the land, it's best if we
don't announce our presence with that light. The dragon's telling of the
moredhel being down in our mines gives me no comfort. If one band was brave
enough to risk my people's wrath, there may be others. Yon wraith may be
terrified of your golden sword and my ancient hammer, but twenty or so moredhel
might not be so easily impressed.”
Tomas could find nothing to say, so they
started moving off into the darkness.
THREE TIMES THEY stopped and hid while
hurrying groups of goblins and Dark Brothers passed near by. From their dark
vantage point they could see that many of those who passed harbored wounds or
were aided by their kinsmen as they limped along. After the last group was
gone, Dolgan turned to Tomas and said, “Never in history have the goblins and
moredhel dared to enter our mines in such numbers. Too much do they fear my
people to risk it.”
Tomas said, “They look pretty beat up,
Dolgan, and they have females and young with them, and carry great bundles,
too. They are fleeing something.”
The dwarf nodded. “They are all moving
from the direction of the northern valley in the Grey Towers, heading toward
the Green Heart. Something still drives them south.”
“The Tsurani?”
Dolgan nodded. “My thought also. Come. We
had best return to Caldara as quickly as we can. They set off and soon were in
tunnels Dolgan knew well, taking them to the surface and home.
THEY WERE BOTH exhausted when they
reached Caldara five days later. The snows in the mountains were heavy, and the
going was slow. As they approached the village, they were sighted by guards,
and soon the entire village turned out to greet them.
They were taken to the village long hall,
and Tomas was given a room. He was so tired that he fell asleep at once, and
even the stout dwarf was fatigued. The dwarves agreed to call the village
elders together the next day in council and discuss the latest news to reach
the valley.
Tomas awoke feeling ravenous. He
stretched as he stood up and was surprised to find no stiffness. He had fallen
asleep in the golden mail and should have wakened to protesting joints and
muscles. Instead he felt rested and well. He opened the door and stepped into a
hall. He saw no one until he came to the central room of the long hall. There
were several dwarves seated along the great table, with Dolgan at the head.
Tomas saw one was Weylin, Dolgan's son. Dolgan motioned the boy to a chair and
introduced him, to the company.
The dwarves all greeted Tomas, who made
polite responses. Mostly he stared at the great feast of food on the table.
Dolgan laughed and said, “Help yourself,
laddie; there is little cause for you to be hungry with the board full.” Tomas
heaped a plate with beef, cheese, and bread and took a flagon of ale, though he
had little head for it and it was early in the day. He quickly consumed what
was on the platter and helped himself to another portion, looking to see if
anyone disapproved. Most of the dwarves were involved in a complicated
discussion of an unknown nature to Tomas, having to do with the allocation of
winter stores to various villages in the area.
Dolgan called a halt to the discussion
and said, “Now that Tomas is with us, I think we had best speak of these
Tsurani.”
Tomas's ears pricked up at that, and he
turned his attention fully to what was being said. Dolgan continued, “Since I
left on patrol, we have had runners from Elvandar and Stone Mountain.
There-have been many sightings of these aliens near the North Pass. They have
made camp in the hills south of Stone Mountain.”
One of the dwarves said, “That is Stone
Mountain's business, unless they call us to arms.”
Dolgan said, “True, Orwin, but there is
also the news they have been seen moving in and out of the valley just south of
the pass. They have intruded on lands traditionally ours, and that is the
business of the Grey Towers.”
The dwarf addressed as Orwin nodded.
“Indeed it is, but there is naught we can do until spring-”
Dolgan put his feet up on the table,
lighting a pipe. “And that is true also. But we can be thankful the Tsurani can
do naught until spring, as well.”
Tomas put down a joint of beef he was
holding. “Has the blizzard struck?”
Dolgan looked at him. “Aye, laddie, the
passes are all solid with snow, for the first winter blizzard came upon us last
night. There will be nothing that can move out there, least of all an army.”
Tomas looked at Dolgan. “Then . . .”
“Aye. You'll guest with us this winter,
for not even our hardiest runner could make his way out of these mountains to
Crydee.”
Tomas sat back, for in spite of the
comforts of the dwarven long hall, he wished for more familiar surroundings.
Still, there was nothing that could be done. He resigned himself to that and
returned his attention to his meal.
The weary group
trudged into Bordon.
Around them rode a company of Natalese
Rangers, dressed in their traditional grey tunics, trousers, and cloaks. They
had been on patrol, had encountered the travelers a mile out of town, and were
now escorting them. Borric was irritated that the rangers had not offered to
let the exhausted travelers ride double, but he hid it well. They had little
reason to recognize this group of ragamuffins as the Duke of Crydee and his
party, and even if he should have arrived in state, there was little warmth
between the Free Cities of Natal and the Kingdom.
Pug looked at Bordon with wonder. It was
a small city by Kingdom standards, little more than a seaport town, but far
larger than Crydee. Everywhere he looked, people were hurrying about on unknown
tasks, busy and preoccupied. Little attention was paid the travelers except for
an occasional glance from a shopkeeper or a woman at market. Never had the boy
seen so many people, horses, mules, and wagons all in one Place. It was a
confusion of colors and sounds, overwhelming his senses. Barking dogs ran
behind the rangers' horses, nimbly avoiding kicks by the irritated mounts. A
few street boys shouted obscenities at the party, all obviously outlanders from
their look, and most likely prisoners from the escort. Pug was vaguely troubled
by this rudeness, but his attention was quickly distracted by the newness of
the city.
Bordon, like the other cities in the
area, had no standing army, but instead supported a garrison of Natalese
Rangers, descendants of the legendary Imperial Keshian Guides and counted among
the best horse soldiers and trackers in the west. They could provide ample
warning of approaching trouble and allow the local militia time to turn out.
Nominally independent, the rangers were free to dispose of outlaws and
renegades on the spot, but after hearing the Duke's story, and at mention of
the name Martin Longbow -- whom they knew well -- the leader of the patrol
decided this matter should be turned over to the local prefects.
They were taken to the office of the
local prefect, located in a small building near the city square. The rangers
appeared pleased to be shed of the prisoners and return to their patrol as they
gave over custody to the prefect.
The prefect was a short, swarthy man
given to brightly colored sashes about his ample girth and large golden rings
upon his fingers. He smoothed his dark beard as the ranger captain explained
his company's meeting with the Duke's party. As the rangers rode off, the
prefect greeted Borric coolly. When the Duke made it clear they were expected
by Talbott Kilrane, the largest ships' broker in the city and Borric's trading
agent in the Free Cities, the prefect's manner changed abruptly. They were
taken from the office to the prefect's private quarters and offered hot, dark
coffee. The prefect sent one of his servants with a message to the house of
Kilrane and waited quietly, only occasionally making noncommittal small talk with
the Duke.
Kulgan leaned over to Pug and said, “Our
host is the sort who sees which way the wind blows before making up his mind;
he waits word from the merchant before deciding if we're prisoners or guests.”
The magician chuckled. “You'll find as you grow older that minor functionaries
are the same the world over.”
An angry storm in the person of Meecham
appeared suddenly in the door of the prefect's home a short time later, one of
Kilrane's senior clerks at his elbow. The clerk quickly made it clear that this
was indeed the Duke of Crydee and, yes, he was expected by Talbott Kilrane. The
prefect was abjectly apologetic and hopeful the Duke would forgive the
inconvenience, but under the present conditions, in these troubled times, he
could understand? His manner was fawning and his smile unctuous.
Borric indicated that, yes, he did
understand, all too well. Without any further delay, they left the prefect and
went outside, where a group of grooms waited with horses. Quickly they mounted
up, and Meecham and the clerk led them through the town, toward a hillside
community of large, imposing houses.
The house of Talbott Kilrane stood
topmost upon the highest hill overlooking the city. From the road Pug could see
ships standing at anchor. Dozens of them were sitting with masts removed,
obviously out of service during the harsh weather. A few coast-huggers bound
for Ylith in the north or the other Free Cities were making their way
cautiously in and out of the harbor, but for the most part the harbor was
quiet.
They reached the house and entered an
open gate in a low wall, where servants ran to take their horses. As they
dismounted, their host came through the large entrance to the house
“Welcome, Lord Borric, welcome,” he said,
a warm smile splitting his gaunt face. Talbott Kilrane looked like a vulture
reincarnated into human form, with a balding head, sharp features, and small,
dark eyes. His expensive robes did little to hide his gauntness, but there was
an ease to his manner, and a concern in his eyes, that softened the
unattractive aspect.
In spite of the man's appearance, Pug
found him likable. He shooed servants off, to make ready rooms and hot meals
for the party. He would not listen as the Duke tried to explain the mission.
Raising a hand, he said, “Later, Your Grace. We can speak at length, after you
have had rest and food. I will expect you for dinner tonight, but for now there
are hot baths and clean beds for your party. I will have warm meals delivered
to your quarters. Good food, rest, and clean clothes, and you'll feet like a
new man. Then we can speak.”
He clapped his hands, and a housecarl
came to show them their rooms. The Duke and his son were given separate
quarters, while Pug and Kulgan shared another. Gardan was shown to Meecham's
room, and the Duke's soldiers were taken to the servants' quarters.
Kulgan told Pug to take the first bath
while the magician spoke with his servant for a while. Meecham and Kulgan went
off to the franklin's room, and Pug stripped off his dirty clothes. In the
center of the room was a large metal tub, filled with scented water, hot and
steaming. He stepped into it and pulled his foot out quickly. After three days
of walking through snow, the water felt as if it were boiling. Gently he placed
his foot back in and, when he had become used to the heat, slowly entered the
water.
He sat back in the tub, the sloping back
providing support. The inside of the tub was enameled, and Pug found the slick,
smooth feeling strange after the wooden tubs of home. He lathered himself over
with a sweet soap and washed the dirt from his hair, then stood in the tub and
poured a bucket of cold water over his head to rinse off.
He dried himself and put on the clean
nightshirt that had been left for him. In spite of the early hour he fell into
the warm bed. His last thought was of the sandy-haired boy with the ready grin.
As Pug slipped into sleep, he wondered if Dolgan had found his friend.
He awoke once during the day, hearing a
nameless tune being hummed, while water was being splashed about with great
zeal as Kulgan soaped his large body. Pug closed his eyes and was quickly
asleep again.
He was hard asleep when Kulgan roused him
for dinner. His tunic and trousers had been cleaned and a small rent in the
shirt mended. His boots were polished and shone with a black gleam. As he stood
inspecting himself in a mirror, he noticed for the first time a soft black
shadow on his cheeks. He leaned closer and saw the early signs of a beard.
Kulgan watched him and said, “Well, Pug.
Shall I have them fetch you a razor so you can keep your chin bare like Prince
Arutha? Or do you wish to cultivate a magnificent beard?” He exaggeratedly
brushed his own grey beard.
Pug smiled for the first time since
leaving Mac Mordain Cadal. “I think I can leave off worrying about it for a
time.”
Kulgan laughed, glad to see the boy's
spirits returning. The magician had been troubled at the depth of Pug's
mourning for Tomas and was relieved to see the boy's resilient nature assert
itself. Kulgan held the door open. “Shall we?”
Pug inclined his head, imitating a
courtly bow, and said, “Certes, master magician. After you?” and broke into a
laugh.
They made their way to the dining room, a
large and well-lit hall, though nothing as large as in the castle of Crydee.
The Duke and Prince Arutha were already seated, and Kulgan and Pug quickly took
their places at the table.
Borric was just finishing his account of
the events at Crydee and in the great forest when Pug and Kulgan sat. “So,” he
said, “I chose to carry this news myself, so important I believe it to be.”
The merchant leaned back in his chair as
servants brought a wide variety of dishes for the diners. “Lord Borric,” said
Talbott, “when your man Meecham first approached me, his request on your behalf
was somewhat vague, due, I believe, to the manner in which the information was
transmitted.” He referred to the magic employed by Kulgan to contact Belgan,
who had in turn sent the message to Meecham. “I never expected your desire to
reach Krondor would prove as vital to my own people as I now see it to be.” He
paused, then continued, “I am, of course, alarmed by the news you bear. I was
willing to act as a broker to find you a ship, but now I will undertake to send
you in one of my own vessels.” He picked up a small bell that sat near his hand
and rang. In a moment a servant was standing at his shoulder. “Send word to
Captain Abram to ready the Storm Queen. He leaves on tomorrow's afternoon tide
for Krondor. I will send more detailed instructions later.”
The servant bowed and left. The Duke
said, “I thank you, Master Kilrane. I had hoped that you would understand, but
I did not expect to find a ship so quickly.”
The merchant looked directly at Borric. “Duke Borric, let me be
frank. There is little love lost between the Free Cities and the Kingdom. And,
to be franker still, less love for the name conDoin. It was your grandfather
who laid waste to Walinor and siege to Natal. He was stopped only ten miles
north of this very city, and that memory still rankles many of us. We are
Keshian by ancestry, but freemen by birth, and have little affection for
conquerors.” Kilrane continued as the Duke sat stiffly in his chair, “Still, we
are forced to admit that your father later, and yourself now, have been good
neighbors, treating fairly with the Free Cities, even generously at times. I
believe you to be a man of honor and realize these Tsurani people are likely
all you say they are. You are not the sort of man given to exaggeration, I
think.”
The Duke relaxed a little at this.
Talbott took a sip of wine, then resumed his conversation. “We would be foolish
not to recognize that our best interests lie with those of the Kingdom, for
alone we are helpless. When you have departed, I will summon a meeting of the
Council of Guilds and Merchants and will argue for support of the Kingdom in
this.” He smiled, and all at the table could see that here was a man as
confident in his influence and authority as the Duke was in his. “I think I
will have little difficulty in making the council see the wisdom of this. A
brief mention of that Tsurani war galley and a little conjecture on how our
ships would fare against a fleet of such ships should convince them.”
Borric laughed and slapped his hand upon
the table. “Master merchant, I can see your wealth was not acquired by a lucky
cast of fate's knucklebones. Your shrewd mind is a match for my own Father
Tully's. As is your wisdom. I give you my thanks.”
The Duke and the merchant continued to
talk late into the night, but Pug was still tired and returned to his bed. When
Kulgan came in hours later, he found the boy lying restfully, a peaceful
expression on his face.
THE STORM QUEEN ran before the wind, her
topgallants and skysails slamming her through the raging sea. The swirling,
stinging icy rain made the night so black that the tops of her tall masts were
lost in hazy darkness to those who stood on her decks.
On the quarterdeck, figures huddled under
great fur-lined oilcloth cloaks, trying to stay warm and dry in the bitterly
cold wetness. Twice during the last two weeks they had run through high seas,
but this was by far the worst weather they had encountered. A cry went up from
the rigging, and word was carried to the captain that two men had fallen from
the yards. Duke Borric shouted to Captain Abram, “Can nothing be done?”
“Nay, my lord. They are dead men, and to
search would be folly, even if possible, which it is not,” the captain shouted
back, his voice carrying over the storm 's roar.
A full watch was above in the treacherous
rigging, knocking away the ice that was forming on the spars, threatening to
crack them with additional weight, disabling the ship. Captain Abram held the
rail with one hand, watching for signs of trouble, his whole body in tune with
his ship. Next to him stood the Duke and Kulgan, less sure of their footing on
the pitching deck. A loud groaning, cracking sound came from below, and the
captain swore.
Moments later a sailor appeared before
them. “Captain, we've cracked a timber and she's taking water.”
The captain waved to one of his mates who
stood on the main deck. “Take a crew below and shore up the damage, then report.”
The mate quickly picked four men to
accompany him below. Kulgan seemed to go into a trance for a minute before he
said, “Captain, this storm will blow another three days.”
The captain cursed the luck the gods had
sent him and said to the Duke, “I can't run her before the storm for three days
taking water. I must find a place to heave to and repair the hull.”
The Duke nodded, shouting over the storm,
“Are you turning for Queg?”
The captain shook his head, dislodging
snow and water dripping from his black beard. “I cannot turn her into the wind
for Queg. We will have to lie off Sorcerer's Isle.”
Kulgan shook his head, though the gesture
was not noticed by the others. The magician asked, “Is there nowhere else we
can put in?”
The captain looked at the magician and
the Duke. “Not as close. We would risk the loss of a mast. Then, if we didn't
founder and sink, we'd lose six days rather than three. The seas run higher,
and I fear I may lose more men.” He shouted orders aloft and to the steersman,
and they took a more southerly course, heading for Sorcerer's Isle.
Kulgan went below with the Duke. The
rocking, surging motion of the ship made the ladder and narrow passageway
difficult to negotiate, and the stout magician was tossed from one side to the
other as they made their way to their cabins. The Duke went into his cabin,
shared with his son, and Kulgan entered his own. Gardan, Meecham, and Pug were
trying to rest on their respective bunks during the buffeting. The boy was
having a difficult time, for he had been sick the first two days. He had gained
sea legs of a sort, but still couldn't bring himself to eat the salty pork and
hard tack they were forced to consume. Because of the rough seas, the ship's
cook had been unable to perform his usual duties.
The ship's timbers groaned in protest at
the pounding the waves were giving, and from ahead they could hear the sound of
hammers as the work crew struggled to repair the breached hull.
Pug rolled over and looked at Kulgan.
“What about the storm?”
Meecham came up on one elbow and looked
at his master. Gardan did likewise. Kulgan said, “It will blow three days
longer. We will put in to the lee of an island and hold there until it
slackens.”
“What island?” asked Pug.
“Sorcerer's Isle.”
Meecham shot up out of his bunk, hitting
his head on the low ceiling. Cursing and rubbing his head, while Gardan stifled
a laugh, he exclaimed, “The island of Macros the Black?”
Kulgan nodded, while using one hand to
steady himself as the ship nosed over a high crest and forward into a deep
trough. “The same. I have little liking for the idea, but the captain fears for
the ship.” As if to punctuate the point, the hull creaked and groaned
alarmingly for a moment.
“Who is Macros?” asked Pug.
Kulgan looked thoughtful for a moment, as
much from listening to the work crew in the hold as from the boy's question,
then said, “Macros is a great sorcerer, Pug. Perhaps the greatest the world has
ever known.”
“Aye,” added Meecham, “and the spawn of
some demon from the deepest circle of hell. His arts are the blackest, and even
the bloody Priests of Lims-Kragma fear to set foot on his island.”
Gardan laughed. “I have yet to see a
wizard who could cow the death goddess's priests. He must be a powerful mage.”
“Those are only stories, Pug,” Kulgan
said. “What we do know about him is that when the persecution of magicians
reached its height in the Kingdom, Macros fled to this island. No one has since
traveled to or from it.”
Pug sat up on his bunk, interested in
what he was hearing, oblivious to the terrible noise of the storm. He watched
as Kulgan's face was bathed in moving half lights and shadows by the crazily
swinging lantern that danced with every lurch of the ship.
“Macros is very old,” Kulgan continued.
“By what arts he keeps alive, only he knows, but he has lived there over three
hundred years.”
Gardan scoffed, “Or several men by the
same name have lived there.”
Kulgan nodded. “Perhaps. In any event,
there is nothing truly known about him, except terrible tales told by sailors.
I suspect that even if Macros does practice the darker side of magic, his
reputation is greatly inflated, perhaps as a means of securing privacy.”
A loud cracking noise, as if another
timber in the hull had split, quieted them. The cabin rolled with the storm,
and Meecham spoke all their minds: “And I'm hoping we'll all be able to stand
upon Sorcerer's Isle.”
THE SHIP LIMPED into the southern bay of
the island They would have to wait until the storm subsided before they could
put divers over the side to inspect the damage to the hull.
Kulgan, Pug, Gardan, and Meecham came out
on deck. The weather was slightly kinder with the cliffs cutting the fury of
the storm. Pug walked to where the captain and Kulgan were standing. He
followed their gaze up to the top of the cliffs.
High above the bay sat a castle, its tall
towers outlined against the sky by the grey light of day. It was a strange
place, with spires and turrets pointing upward like some clawed hand. The
castle was dark save for one window in a high tower that shone with blue,
pulsating light, as if lightning had been captured and put to work by the
inhabitant.
Pug heard Meecham say, “There, upon the
bluff. Macros.”
THREE DAYS LATER the divers broke the
surface and yelled to the captain their appraisal of the damage. Pug was on the
main deck with Meecham, Gardan, and Kulgan. Prince Arutha and his father stood
near the captain, awaiting the verdict on the ship's condition. Above, the
seabirds wheeled, looking for the scraps and garbage heralded by a ship in
these waters. The storms of winter did little to supplement the meager feeding
of the birds, and a ship was a welcome source of fare.
Arutha came down to the main deck where
the others waited. “It will take all of this day and half tomorrow to repair
the damage, but the captain thinks it will hold fair until we reach Krondor. We
should have little trouble from here.”
Meecham and Gardan threw each other
meaningful glances. Not wanting to let the opportunity pass, Kulgan said, “Will
we be able to put ashore, Your Highness?”
Arutha rubbed his clean-shaven chin with
a gloved hand. “Aye, though not one sailor will put out a boat to carry us.”
“Us?” asked the magician.
Arutha smiled his crooked smile. “I have
had my fill of cabins, Kulgan. I feel the need to stretch my legs on firm
ground. Besides, without supervision, you'd spend the day wandering about
places where you've no business.” Pug looked up toward the castle, his glance
noted by the magician.
“We'll keep clear of that castle and the
road up from the beach, to be sure. The tales of this island only speak of ill
coming to those who seek to enter the sorcerer's halls.”
Arutha signaled a seaman. A boat was
readied, and the four men and the boy got aboard. The boat was hauled over the
side and lowered by a crew sweating despite the cold wind that still blew after
the storm. By the glances they kept throwing toward the crest of the bluffs,
Pug knew they were not sweating because of work or weather.
As if reading his thoughts, Arutha said,
“There may be a more superstitious breed on Midkemia than sailors, but who they
are I could not tell you.”
When the boat was in the water, Meecham
and Gardan cast off the lines that hung suspended from the davits. The two men
awkwardly took oars and began to row toward the beach. It was a broken,
stuttering rhythm at first, but with disapproving looks from the Prince, along
with several comments about how men could spend their lives in a sea town and
not know how to row, they finally got the boat moving in good order.
They put in at a sandy stretch of beach,
a little cove that broke the bluffs of the bay. Upward toward the castle ran a
path, which joined another leading away across the island.
Pug leaped out of the boat and helped
pull it ashore. When it was fast aground, the others got out and stretched
their legs.
Pug felt as if they were being watched,
but each time he looked around, there was nothing in sight but the rocks, and
the few seabirds that lived the winter in clefts of the cliff face.
Kulgan and the Prince studied the two
paths up from the beach. The magician looked at the other path, away from the
sorcerer's castle, and said, “There should be little harm in exploring the
other trail. Shall we?”
Days of boredom and confinement
outweighed whatever anxiety they felt. With a brusque nod, Arutha led the way
up the trail.
Pug followed last, behind Meecham. The
bigshouldered franklin was armed with a broadsword, upon which his hand rested.
Pug kept his sling handy, for he still didn't feel comfortable with a sword,
though Gardan was giving him lessons when possible. The boy fingered the sling
absently, his eyes taking in the scene before them.
Along the trail they startled several
colonies of turnstones and plovers, which took flight when the party came near.
The birds squawked their protests and hovered near their roosts until the
hikers passed, then returned to the scant comfort of the hillside.
They crested the first of a series of
hills, and the path away from the castle could be seen to dip behind another
crest. Kulgan said, “It must lead somewhere. Shall we continue?” Arutha nodded,
and the others said nothing. They continued their journey until they came to a
small valley, little more than a dell, between two ranges of low hills. On the
floor of the valley sat some buildings.
Arutha said softly, “What do you think,
Kulgan? Are they inhabited?”
Kulgan studied them for a moment, then
turned to Meecham, who stepped forward. The franklin inspected the vista below,
his gaze traveling from the floor of the vale to the hills around. “I think
not. There is no sign of smoke from cook fires, nor sound of people working.”
Arutha resumed his march down toward the
floor of the valley, and the others followed. Meecham turned to watch Pug for a
moment, then noticed the boy was unarmed except for his sling. The franklin
pulled a long hunting knife from his belt and handed it to the boy without
comment. Pug bobbed his head once in acknowledgment and took the knife in
silence.
They reached a plateau above the
buildings, and Pug could see an alien-looking house, the central building
circled by a large court and several outbuildings. The entire property was
surrounded by a low wall, no more than four feet tall.
They worked their way down the hillside
to a gate in the wall. There were several barren fruit trees in the courtyard,
and a garden area overgrown with weeds. Near the front of the central building
a fountain stood, topped with a statue of three dolphins. They approached the
fountain and saw that the interior of the low pool surrounding the statue was
covered in blue tiles, faded and discolored with age. Kulgan examined the
construction of the fountain. “This is fashioned in a clever manner. I believe
that water should issue from the mouths of the dolphins.”
Arutha agreed. “I have seen the King's fountains in Rillanon,
and they are similar, though lacking the grace of this.”
There was little snow on the ground, for
it seemed the sheltered valley and the entire island received little even in
the most severe winters. But it was still cold. Pug wandered a little way off
and studied the house. It had a single story, with windows every ten feet along
the wall. There was but one opening for a double door in the wall he stood
facing, though the doors were long off their hinges.
“Whoever lived here expected no trouble.”
Pug turned to see Gardan standing behind
him, staring at the house as well. “There is no tower for lookout,” continued
the sergeant. “And the low wall seems more likely to keep livestock out of the
gardens than for defense.”
Meecham joined the them, hearing Gardan's
last remark. “Aye, there is little concern for defense here. This is the lowest
spot on the island, save for that small stream you could see behind the house
when we came down the hill.” He turned to stare up at the castle, the highest
spires of which could still be seen from the valley. “There is where you build
for trouble. This place,” he said, indicating the low buildings with a sweep of
his hand, “was fashioned by those who knew little of strife.”
Pug nodded as he moved away. Gardan and
Meecham headed in a different direction, toward an abandoned stable.
Pug moved around to the back of the house
and found several smaller buildings. He clutched his knife in his right hand
and entered the closest. It was open to the sky, for the roof had collapsed.
Red roof tiles, shattered and faded, lay about the floor, in what seemed to be
a storeroom, with large wooden shelves along three walls. Pug investigated the
other rooms in the building, finding them to be of similar configuration. The
entire building was some sort of storage area.
He moved to the next building and found a
large kitchen. A stone stove stood against one wall, big enough for several
kettles to cook upon it simultaneously, while a spit hung over a back opening
above the fire was large enough for a beef side or whole lamb. A mammoth
butcher's block stood in the center of the room, scarred from countless blows
of cleaver and knife.
Pug examined a strange-looking bronze pot
in the corner, overlaid with dust and cobwebs. He turned it over and found a
wooden spoon. As he looked up, he thought he saw a glimpse of someone outside
the door of the cookhouse.
“Meecham? Gardan?” he asked, as he slowly
approached the door. When he stepped outside, there was no one in sight, but he
did catch another glimpse of movement at the rear door of the main house.
He hurried toward that door, assuming his
companions had already entered the building. As he entered the main house, he
caught a hint of movement down a side corridor. He stopped for a moment to
survey this strange house.
The door before him stood open, a sliding
door fallen from railings that had once held it in place. Through the door he
could see a large central courtyard, open to the sky above. The house was
actually a hollow square, with pillars holding up the interior of the partial
roof. Another fountain and a small garden occupied the very center of the
courtyard. Like the one outside, the fountain was in disrepair, and this garden
was also choked with weeds.
Pug turned toward the hall down which he
had seen movement. He passed through a low side door into a shadowy corridor.
In places the roof had lost several tiles, so that occasionally light shone
down from above, making it easy for the boy to find his way. He passed two
empty rooms; he suspected they might be sleeping quarters.
He turned a corner to find himself before
the door of an odd-looking room and entered. The walls were tile mosaics, of
sea creatures sporting in the foam with scantily dressed men and women. The
style of art was new to Pug. The few tapestries and fewer paintings on, display
in the Duke's halls were all very lifelike, with muted colors and detailed
execution in the' finish. These mosaics were suggestive of people and animals
without capturing details.
In the floor was a large depression, like
a pool, with steps leading down before him. Out of the wall opposite obtruded a
brass fish head, hanging over the pool. The nature of the room was beyond Pug.
As if someone had read his thoughts, a
voice from behind said, “It is a tepidarium.”
Pug turned and saw a man standing behind
him. He was of average height, with a high forehead and deep-set black eyes.
There were streaks of grey at the temples of his dark hair, but his beard was
black as night. He wore a brown robe of simple material, a whipcord belt around
the waist. In his left hand he held a sturdy oak staff. Pug came on guard, holding
the long hunting knife before him.
“Nay, lad. Put up your scramasax, I mean
you no harm.” He smiled in a way that made Pug relax.
Pug lowered his knife and said, “What did
you call this room?”
“A tepidarium,” he said, entering the room.
“Here warm water was piped into the pool, and bathers would remove their
clothing and place them on those shelves.” He pointed to some shelves against
the rear wall.
“Servants would clean and dry the
clothing of dinner guests while they bathed here.”
Pug thought the idea of dinner guests
bathing at someone's home in a group a novel one, but he said nothing. The man
continued, “Through that door,” he pointed to a door next to the pool -- “was
another pool with very hot water, in a room called a calidarium. Beyond was
another pool with cold-water in a room called a frigidarium. There was a fourth
room called the unctorium, where servants would rub down the bathers with
scented oils. And they scraped their skins with wooden sticks. They didn't use
soap then.”
Pug was confused by all the different
bathing rooms. “That sounds like a lot of time spent getting clean. This is all
very odd.”
The man leaned on his staff. “So it must
seem to you, Pug. Still, I expect those that built this house would consider
your keep halls strange as well.”
Pug started. “How did you know my name?”
The man smiled again. “I heard the tall
soldier call you by name as you approached the building. I was watching you,
keeping out of sight until I was sure you were not pirates come to seek ancient
toot. Few pirates come so young, so I thought it would be safe to talk to you.”
Pug studied the man. There was something
about him that suggested hidden meanings in his words. “Why would you speak
with me?”
The man sat on the edge of the empty
pool. The hem of his robe was pulled back, revealing crossgartered sandals of
sturdy construction. “I am alone mostly, and the chance to speak with strangers
is a rare thing. So I thought to see if you would visit with me awhile, for a
few moments at least, until you return to your ship.”
Pug sat down also, but kept a comfortable
distance between himself and the stranger. “Do you live here?”
The man looked around the room. “No,
though I once did, long ago.” There was a contemplative note in his voice, as
if the admission were calling up long-buried memories.
“Who are you?”
The man smiled again, and Pug felt his
nervousness vanish. There was something reassuring about his manner, and Pug could
see that he intended no harm.
“Mostly I am called the traveler, for
many lands have I seen. Here I am sometimes known as the hermit, for so I live.
You may call me what you like. It is all the same.”
Pug looked at him closely. “Have you no
proper name?”
“Many, so many that I have forgotten a
few. At the time of my birth I was given a name, as you were, but among those
of my tribe it is a name known only to the father and the mage-priest.”
Pug considered this. “It is all very strange,
much like this house. Who are your people?”
The man called the traveler laughed, a
good-natured chuckle. “You have a curious mind, Pug, full of questions. That is
good.” He paused for a moment, then said, “Where are you and your companions
from? The ship in the bay flies the Natalese banner of Bordon, but your accent
and dress are of the Kingdom.”
Pug said, “We are of Crydee,” and gave
the man a brief description of the journey. The man asked a few simple
questions, and without being aware of it, Pug found that soon he had given a
full accounting of the events that had brought them to the island, and the
Plans for the rest of the journey.
When he had finished, the traveler said,
“That is a wondrous story indeed. I should think there will be many more
wonders before this strange meeting of worlds is finished.”
Pug questioned him with a look. “I don't
understand.”
The traveler shook his head. “I don't
expect you to, Pug. Let us say that things are occurring that can be understood
only by examination after the fact, with a distance of time separating the
participants from the participating.”
Pug scratched his knee. “You sound like
Kulgan, trying to explain how magic works.”
The traveler nodded. “An apt comparison.
Though sometimes the only way to understand the workings of magic is to work
magic.”
Pug
brightened. “Are you also a magician?”
The traveler stroked his long black
beard. “Some have thought me one, but I doubt that Kulgan and I share the same
understanding of such things.”
Pug's expression showed he considered
this an unsatisfactory explanation even if he didn't say so. The traveler
leaned forward. “I can effect a spell or two, if that answers your question,
young Pug.”
Pug heard his name shouted from the
courtyard. “Come,” said the traveler. “Your friends call. We had best go and
reassure them that you are all right.”
They left the bathing room and crossed
the open court of the inner garden. A large anteroom separated the garden from
the front of the house, and they passed through to the outside. When the others
saw Pug in the company of the traveler, they looked around quickly, their
weapons drawn. Kulgan and the Prince crossed the court to stand before them.
The traveler put up his hands in the universal sign that he was unarmed.
The Prince was the first to speak. “Who
is your companion, Pug?”
Pug introduced the traveler. “He means no
harm. He hid until he could see that we were not pirates.” He handed the knife
to Meecham.
If the explanation was unsatisfactory,
Arutha gave no sign. “What is your business here?”
The traveler spread his hands, with the
staff in the crook of his left arm. “I abide here, Prince of Crydee. I should
think that the question better serves me.”
The Prince stiffened at being addressed
so, but after a tense moment relaxed. “If that is so, then you are correct, for
we are the intruders. We came seeking relief from the solitary confines of the
ship. Nothing more.”
The traveler nodded. “Then you are
welcome at Villa Beata.”
Kulgan said, “What is Villa Beata?”
The traveler made a sweeping motion with
his right hand. “This home is Villa Beata. In the language of the builders, it
means 'blessed home,' and so it was for many years. As you can see, it has
known better days.”
Everyone was relaxing with the traveler,
for they also felt a reassurance in his easy manner and friendly smile. Kulgan
said, “What of those who built this strange place?”
“Dead . . . or gone. They thought this
the Insula Beata, or Blessed Isle, when they first came here. They fled a
terrible war, which changed the history of their world.” His dark eyes misted
over, as if the pain of remembering was great. “A great king died . . . or is
thought to have died, for some say he may return. It was a terrible and sad
time. Here they sought to live in peace.”
“What happened to them?” asked Pug.
The traveler shrugged. “Pirates, or
goblins? Sickness, or madness? Who can tell? I saw this home as you see it now,
and those who lived here were gone.”
Arutha said, “You speak of strange
things, friend traveler. I know little of such, but it seems that this place
has been deserted for ages. How is it you knew those who lived here?”
The traveler smiled. “It is not so long
ago as you would imagine, Prince of Crydee. And I am older than I look. It
comes from eating well and bathing regularly.”
Meecham had been studying the stranger
the entire time, for of all those who had come ashore, his was the most
suspicious nature. “And what of the Black One? Does he not trouble you?”
The traveler looked over his shoulder at
the top of the castle. “Macros the Black? The magician and I have little cause
to be at odds. He suffers me the run of the island, as long as I don't
interfere with his work.”
A suspicion crossed Pug's mind, but he
said nothing, as the traveler continued. “Such a powerful and terrible sorcerer
has little to fear from a simple hermit, I'm sure you'll agree.” He leaned
forward and added in conspiratorial tones, “Besides, I think much of his
reputation is inflated and overboasted, to keep intruders away. I doubt he is
capable of the feats attributed to him.”
Arutha said, “Then perhaps we should
visit this sorcerer.”
The hermit looked at the Prince. “I don't
think you would find a welcome at the castle. The sorcerer is oftentimes
preoccupied with his work and suffers interruption with poor grace. He may not
be the mythical author of all the world's ills that some imagine him to be, but
he could still cause more trouble than it is worth to visit him. On the whole
he is often poor company.” There was a faint, wry hint of humor in his words.
Arutha looked around and said, “I think
we have seen all of interest we are likely to. Perhaps we should return to the
ship.”
When none disagreed, the Prince said,
“What of you, friend traveler?”
The stranger spread his hands in a
general gesture. “I continue my habit of solitude, Your Highness. I have
enjoyed this small visit, and the boy's news of the currences of the world
outside, but I doubt that you would find me tomorrow if you were to seek me.”
It was evident he was unlikely to provide
any more information, and Arutha found himself growing irritated with the man's
obscure answers. “Then we bid you farewell, traveler. May the gods watch over
you.”
“And you as well, Prince of Crydee.”
As they turned to leave, Pug felt
something trip his ankle, and he fell hard against Kulgan. Both went down in a
tangle of bodies, and the traveler helped the boy up. Meecham and Gardan
assisted the stout mage to his feet. Kulgan put weight upon his foot and
started to fall. Arutha and Meecham grabbed him. The traveler said, “It appears
your ankle is turned, friend magician. Here.” He held out his staff. “My staff
is stout oak and will bear your weight as you return to the ship.”
Kulgan took the offered staff and put his
weight on it. He took an experimental step and found that he could negotiate
the path with the aid of the staff. “'Thank you, but what of yourself?”
The stranger shrugged. “A simple staff,
easily replaced, friend magician. Perhaps I shall have the opportunity of
reclaiming it someday.”
“I will keep it against that day.”
The traveler turned away, saying, “Good.
Then until that day, again farewell.”
They watched as he walked back into the
building, and then turned to face each other, expressions of wonder upon their
faces. Arutha was the first to speak.
'A strange man, this traveler.
Kulgan nodded. “More strange than you
know, Prince. At his leaving I feel the lifting of some enchantmerit, as if he
carries a spell about him, one that makes all near him trusting.”
Pug turned to Kulgan. “I wanted to ask him
so many questions, but I didn't seem to be able to make myself.”
Meecham said, “Aye, I felt that also.”
Gardan said, “There is a thought in my
mind. I think we have been speaking to the sorcerer himself.”
Pug said, “That is my thought.”
Kulgan leaned on the staff and said,
“Perhaps. If it is so, then he has his own reasons for masking his identity.”
They talked about this as they walked slowly up the path from the villa.
As they reached the cove where the boat
was beached, Pug felt something brush against his chest. He reached inside his
tunic and found a small folded piece of parchment. He withdrew it, startled by
his find. He had not picked it up, as well as he could remember. The traveler
must have slipped it inside his shirt when he had helped Pug to his feet.
Kulgan looked back as he started for the
boat and, seeing Pug's expression, said, “What have you there?”
Pug handed the parchment over, while the
others gathered around the magician. Kulgan unfolded the parchment. He read it,
and a surprised expression crossed his face. He read it again, aloud. “I
welcome those who come with no malice in their hearts. You will know in days to
come that our meeting was not by chance. Until we meet again, keep the hermit's
staff as a sign of friendship and goodwill. Seek me not until the appointed
time, for that too is foreordained. Macros.”
Kulgan handed the message back to Pug,
who read it. “Then the hermit was Macros”'
Meecham rubbed his beard. “This is something
beyond my understanding.”
Kulgan looked up to the castle, where the
lights still flashed in the single window. “As it is beyond mine, old friend.
But whatever it means, I think the sorcerer wishes us well, and I find that a
good thing.”
They returned to the ship and retired to
their cabins. After a night of rest, they found the ship ready to leave on the
midday tide. As they raised sail, they were greeted with unseasonably light
breezes, blowing them directly for Krondor.
Pug was restless.
He sat looking out a window of the
Prince's palace in Krondor. Outside, the snow was falling, as it had been for
the last three days. The Duke and Arutha had been meeting with the Prince of
Krondor daily. On the first day Pug had told his story about finding the
Tsurani ship, then had been dismissed. He remembered that awkward interview.
He had been surprised to find the Prince
to be young, in his thirties, if not a vigorous and well man. Pug had been
startled during their interview when the Prince's remarks were interrupted by a
violent attack of coughing. His pale face, drenched with sweat, showed him to
be in worse health than his manner indicated.
He had waved off Pug's suggestion that he
should leave and come back when more convenient for him. Erland of Krondor was
a reflective person, who listened patiently to Pug's narration, lessening the
boy's discomfort at being before the heir apparent to the throne of the
Kingdom. His eyes regarded Pug with reassurance and understanding, as if it
were a common thing to have awkward boys standing before him. After listening
to Pug's narration, he had spent a short time talking with Pug about small
things, such as his studies and his fortuitous rise to the nobility, as if these
were important matters to his realm.
Pug decided he liked Prince Erland. The
second most powerful man in the Kingdom, and the single most powerful man in
the West, was warm and friendly and cared for the comfort of his
least-important guest.
Pug looked around the room, still not
used to the splendor of the palace. Even this small room was richly appointed,
with a canopied bed instead of a sleeping pallet. It was the first time Pug had
ever slept in one, and he found it difficult to get comfortable on the. deep,
soft, feather-stuffed mattress. In the corner of the room stood a closet with
more clothing in it than he thought he could wear in his lifetime, all of
costly weave and fine cut, and all seemingly in his size. Kulgan had said it
was a gift from the Prince.
The quiet of his room reminded Pug how
little he had seen of Kulgan, and the others. Gardan and his soldiers had left
that morning with a bundle of dispatches for Prince Lyam from his father, and
Meecham was housed with the palace guard. Kulgan was involved in the meetings
as often as not, so Pug had a lot of time .to himself. He wished he had his
books with him, for then at least the time could be put to some good use. Since
his arrival in Krondor there had been little for him to do.
More than once Pug had thought of how
much Tomas would have loved the newness of this place -- seemingly fashioned
from glass and magic more than stone -- and the people in it. He thought about
his lost hoping Dolgan had somehow found him, but not believing he had. The
pain of loss was now a dull ache, but still tender. Even after the last month,
he would find himself turning, expecting to see Tomas close by.
Not wishing to sit idle any longer, Pug
opened the door and looked down the hallway that ran the length of the east
wing of the Prince's palace. He hurried down the hall, looking for any familiar
face to break the monotony.
A guard passed him by, going the other
way, and saluted. Pug still couldn't get used to the idea of being saluted
every time a guard passed, but as a member of the Duke's party he was given
full honors due his Squire's rank by the household staff.
Reaching a smaller hallway, he decided to
explore. One way was the same as another, he thought. The Prince had personally
told him he had the run of the palace, but Pug had been shy about overstepping
himself. Now boredom drove him to adventuring, or at least as much adventuring
as possible under the circumstances.
Pug found a small alcove with a window,
providing a different view of the palace grounds. Pug sat upon the window seat.
Beyond the palace walls he could see the port of Krondor lying below like a
white-shrouded toy village. Smoke was coming from many of the buildings, the
only sign of life in the city. The ships in the harbor looked like miniatures,
lying at anchor, waiting for more propitious conditions under which to sail.
A small voice behind him brought Pug out
of his, reverie. “Are you Prince Arutha?”
A girl was standing behind him, about six
or seven years old, with big green eyes and dark reddish brown hair done up in
silver netting. Her dress was simple but fine looking, of red cloth with white
lace at the sleeves. Her face was pretty, but was set in an expression of deep
concentration that gave it a comic gravity.
Pug hesitated for a moment, then said,
“No, I'm Pug. I came with the Prince.”
The girl made no attempt to hide her
disappointment. With a shrug she came over and sat next to Pug. She looked up
at him with the same grave expression and said, “I was so hoping that you might
be the Prince, for I wanted to catch a glimpse of him before you leave for
Salador.”
“Salador,” Pug said flatly. He had hoped
the journey would end with the visit to the Prince. Lately he had been thinking
of Carline.
“Yes. Father says you are all to leave at
once for Salador, then take a ship for Rillanon to see the King.”
“Who's your father?”
“The Prince, silly. Don't you know
anything?”
“I guess not.” Pug looked at the girl,
seeing another Carline in the making. “You must be Princess Anita.”
“Of course. And I'm a real princess too.
Not the daughter of a duke, but the daughter of a prince. My father would have
been King if he had wanted, but he didn't want to. If he had, I would be Queen
someday. But I won't be. What do you do?”
The question, coming so suddenly without
preamble, caught Pug off guard. The child's prattling wasn't very irksome, and
he wasn't following closely, being more intent on the scene through the window.
He hesitated then said, “I'm apprenticed
to the Duke's magician.”
The Princess's eyes grew round, and she
said, “A real magician?”
“Real enough.”
Her little face lit up with delight. “Can
he turn people into toads? Mummy said magicians turn people into toads if they
are bad.”
“I don't know. I'll ask him when I see
him -- if I see him again,” he added under his breath.
“Oh, would you? I would so very much like
to know.” She seemed utterly fascinated by the prospect of finding out if the
tale was true. “And could you please tell me where I might see Prince Arutha?”
“I don't know. I haven't seen him myself
in two days. What do you want to see him for?”
“Mummy says I may marry him someday. I want
to see if he is a nice man.”
The prospect of this tiny child's being
married to the Duke's younger son confounded Pug for a moment. It was not an
uncommon practice for nobles to pledge their children in marriage years before
their coming of age. In ten years she would be a woman, and the Prince would
still be a young man, the Earl of some minor keep in the Kingdom. Still, Pug
found the prospect fascinating.
“Do you think you would like living with
an earl?” Pug asked, realizing at once it was a stupid question. The Princess
confirmed the opinion with a glance that would have done Father Tully credit.
She said, “Silly! How could I possibly
know that when I don't even know who Mummy and Father will have me marry ?”
The child jumped up. “Well, I must go
back. I'm not supposed to be here. If they find me out of my rooms, I'll be
punished. I hope you have a nice journey to Salador and Rillanon.”
“Thank you.”
With a sudden expression of worry, she
said, “You won't tell anyone that I was here, will you?”
Pug gave her a conspiratorial smile. “No.
Your secret's safe.” With a look of relief, she smiled and peeked both ways
down the hallway. As she started to leave, Pug said, “He's a nice man.”
The Princess stopped. “Who?”
“The Prince. He's a nice man. Given to
brooding and moods, but on the whole a nice person.”
The Princess frowned for a moment as she
digested the information. Then, with a bright smile, she said, “That's good.
I'd not want to marry a man who's not nice.” With a giggle she turned the comer
and was gone.
Pug sat awhile longer, watching the snow
fall, musing over the fact of children being concerned about matters of state,
and over a child with big, serious green eyes.
THAT NIGHT THE entire party was feted by
the Prince. The whole population of nobles at court and most of the rich
commoners of Krondor were attending the gala. Over four hundred people sat to
dine, and Pug found himself at a table with strangers who, out of aspect for the
quality of his clothing and the simple fact of his being there in the first
place, politely ignored him. The Duke and Prince Arutha were seated at the head
table with Prince Erland and his wife, Princess Alicia, along with Duke
Dulanic, Chancellor of the Principality and Knight-Marshal of Krondor. Owing to
Erland's ill health, the business of running Krondor's military fell to Dulanic
and the man he was deep in conversation with, Lord Barry, Erland's Lord-Admiral
of the Krondorian fleet. Other royal ministers were seated nearby, while the
rest of the guests were at smaller tables. Pug was seated at the one farthest
removed from the royal table.
Servants were bustling in and out of the
hall, carrying large platters of food and decanters of wine. Jongleurs strolled
the hall, singing the newest ballads and ditties. Jugglers and acrobats
performed between the tables, mostly ignored by the dinner guests, but giving
their best, for the Master of Ceremony would not call them back again should he
judge their efforts lacking.
The walls were covered with giant banners
and rich tapestries. The banners were of every major household in the Kingdom,
from the gold and brown of Crydee in the far west, to the white and green of
far Ran, in the east. Behind the royal table hung the banner of the Kingdom, a
golden lion rampant holding a sword, with a crown above his head, upon a field
of purple, the ancient crest of the conDoin kings. Next to it hung Krondor's
banner, an eagle flying above a mountain peak, silver upon the royal purple.
Only the Prince, and the King in Rillanon, could wear the royal color. Borric
and Arutha wore red mantles over their tunics, signifying they were princes of
the realm, related to the royal family. It was the first time Pug had ever seen
the two wearing the formal marks of their station.
Everywhere were sights and sounds of
gaiety, but even from across the room Pug could tell that the talk at the
Prince's table was subdued. Borric and Erland spent most of the dinner with
their heads close together speaking privately.
Pug was startled by a touch on his
shoulder and turned to see a doll-like face peering through the large curtains
not two feet behind him. Princess Anita put her finger to her lips and beckoned
for him to step through. Pug saw the others at the table were looking at the
great and near-great in the room and would scarcely notice the departure of a
nameless boy. He rose and moved through the curtain, finding himself in a small
servants' alcove. Before him was another curtain, leading to the kitchen, Pug
supposed, through which peeked the tiny fugitive from bed. Pug moved to where
Anita waited, discovering it was, indeed, a long connecting corridor between
the kitchen and the great hall. A lengthy table covered with dishware and
goblets ran along the wall.
Pug said, “What are you doing here?”
“Shush!” she said in a loud whisper. “I'm
not supposed to be here.”
Pug smiled at the child. “I don't think
you have to worry about being heard, there's too much noise for that.”
“I came to see the Prince. Which one is
he?”
Pug motioned for her to step into the
small alcove, then drew aside the curtain a little. Pointing at the head table,
he said, “He's two removed from your father, in the black-and-silver tunic and
red mantle.”
The child stretched up on tiptoe and
said, “I can't see.
Pug held the girl up for a moment. She
smiled at him. “I am in your debt.”
“Not at all,” Pug intoned with mock
gravity.
They both giggled.
The Princess started as a voice spoke
close to the curtain. “I must fly!” She darted through the alcove, passed
through the second curtain, and disappeared from sight heading toward the
kitchen and her getaway.
The curtain into the banquet hall parted,
and a startled servant stared at Pug. Uncertain what to say, the servingman
nodded. The boy by rights shouldn't be there, but by his dress he was certainly
someone.
Pug looked about and, without much
conviction, finally said, “I was looking for the way to my room. I must be
going the wrong way.”
“The guest wing is through the first door
on the left in the dining hall, young sir. Ah . . . this way lies the kitchen.
Would you care to have me show you the way?” The servant obviously didn't care to
do so, and Pug was equally lacking any desire for a guide. “No, thank you, I
can find it,” he said.
Pug rejoined his table, unnoticed by the
other guests. The balance of the meal passed without incident, except for an
occasional strange glance by a servingman.
PUG PASSED THE time after dinner talking
with the son of a merchant. The two young men found each other in the crowded
room where the Prince's after dinner reception was being held. They spent a
fitful hour being polite to one another, before the boy 's father came and took
him in tow. Pug stood around being ignored by the Prince's other dinner guests
for a while, then decided he could slip back to his own quarters without
affronting anyone-he wouldn't be missed. Besides he hadn't seen the Prince,
Lord Borric, or Kulgan since they left the dinner table. Most of the reception
seemed under the supervision of a score of household officials and Princess
Alicia, a charming woman who had spoken politely with Pug for a moment as he
passed through the reception line.
Pug found Kulgan waiting for him in his
room when he returned. Kulgan said, without preamble, “We leave at first light,
Pug. Prince Erland is sending us on to Rillanon to see the King.”
Pug said, `Why is the Prince sending us?”
His tone was cross, for he was deeply homesick.
Before Kulgan could answer, the door flew
open and Prince Arutha came storming in. Pug was surprised by Arutha's
expression of unconfined anger.
“Kulgan! There you are,” Arutha said,
slamming the door. “Do you know what our royal cousin is doing about the
Tsurani invasion?”
Before Kulgan could speak, the Prince
supplied the answer. “Nothing. He won 't lift a finger to send aid to Crydee
until Father has seen the King. That will take another two months at least.”
Kulgan raised his hand. Instead of an
adviser to the Duke, Arutha saw one of his boyhood instructors. Kulgan, like
Tully, could still command both sons of the Duke when the need arose. “Quietly,
Arutha.”
Arutha shook his head as he pulled over a
chair. “I am sorry, Kulgan. I should have mastered my temper.” He noticed Pug's
confusion. “I apologize to you also, Pug. There is much involved here that you
don't know of. Perhaps . . .” He looked questioningly at Kulgan.
Kulgan took out his pipe. “You might as well tell him, he's
going along for the journey. He'll find out soon enough.”
Arutha drummed his fingers on the arm of
the chair for a moment, then sitting forward, said, “My father and Erland have
been conferring for days on the best way to meet these outworlders should they
come. The Prince even agrees it is likely they will come.” He paused. “But he
will do nothing to call the Armies of the West together until he has been given
permission by the King.”
“I
don't understand,” said Pug. “Aren't the Armies of the West the Prince's to
command as he sees fit?”
“No longer,” said Arutha with a
near-grimace. “The King sent word, less than a year ago, that the armies may
not be mustered without his permission.” Arutha sat back in his chair as Kulgan
blew a cloud of smoke. “It is in violation of tradition. Never have the Armies
of the West had another commander than the Prince of Krondor, as the Armies of
the East are the King's.”
Pug was still unclear about the
significance of all this. Kulgan said, “The Prince is the King's Lord-Marshall
in the West, the only man besides the King who may command Duke Borric and the
other Knight-Generals. Should he call, every Duke from Malac's Cross to Crydee
would respond, with their garrisons and levies. King Rodric, for his own
reasons, has decided that none may gather the armies without his authority.”
Arutha said, “Father would come to the
Prince's call, regardless, as would the other Dukes.”
Kulgan nodded. “That may be what the King
fears, for the Armies of the West have long been more the Prince's armies than
the King's. If your father called, most would gather, for they revere him
nearly as much as they revere Erland. And if the King should say not . . .” He
let the sentence slip away.
Arutha nodded. “Strife within the
Kingdom.”
Kulgan looked at his pipe. “Even to civil
war, perhaps.”
Pug was troubled by the discussion. He
was a keep boy, in spite of his newly acquired tide. “Even if it is in defense
of the Kingdom?”
Kulgan shook his head slowly. “Even then.
For some men, kings also, there is as much importance in the manner in which
things are done as the doing.” Kulgan paused. “Duke Borric will not speak of
it, but there has long been trouble between himself and certain eastern dukes,
especially his cousin, Guy du Bas-Tyra. This trouble between the Prince and the
King will only add to the strain between West and East.”
Pug sat back. He knew that this was
somehow more important than what he was understanding, but there were blank
places in his picturings of the way things were. How could the King resent the
Prince's summoning the armies in defense of the Kingdom? It didn't make sense
to him, in spite of Kulgan's explanation. And what sort of trouble in the East
was Duke Borric unwilling to speak of?
The magician stood. “We have an early day
tomorrow, so we had best get some sleep. It will be a long ride, to Salador,
then another long passage by ship to Rillanon. By the time we reach the King,
the first thaw will have come to Crydee.”
PRINCE ERLAND BADE the party a good
journey as they sat upon their horses in the courtyard of the palace. He looked
pale and deeply troubled as he wished them well.
The little Princess stood at an upstairs
window and waved at Pug with a tiny handkerchief. Pug was reminded of another
Princess and wondered if Anita would grow to be like Carline or be more
even-tempered.
They rode out of the courtyard, where an
escort of Royal Krondorian Lancers stood ready to accompany them to Salador. It
would be a three weeks' ride over the mountains and past the marshes of
Darkmoor, past Malac's Cross -- the dividing point between the western and
eastern realms -- and on to Salador. There they would take ship, and after
another two weeks they would reach Rillanon.
The lancers were shrouded in heavy cloaks
of grey, but the purple-and-silver tabards of Krondor's Prince could be seen
underneath, and their shields bore the device of the royal Krondorian
household. The Duke was being honored by an escort of the Prince's own
household guard, rather than a detachment from the city garrison.
As they left the city, the snow began to
fall once more, and Pug wondered if he would ever see spring in Crydee again.
He sat quietly on his horse as it plodded along the road east, trying to sort
out the impressions of the last few weeks, then gave up, resigning himself to
whatever was to happen.
THE RIDE TO Salador took four weeks
instead of three, for there had been a storm of unusual intensity in the
mountains west of Darkmoor. They had been forced to take lodging at an inn
outside the village that took its name from the marshes. It had been a small
inn, and they had all been forced to crowd together regardless of rank for
several days. The food had been simple and the ale indifferent, and by the time
the storm passed, they were all glad to leave Darkmoor behind.
Another day had been lost when they
chanced upon a village being troubled by bandits. The sight of approaching
cavalry had driven the brigands away, but the Duke had ordered a sweep of the
area to insure that they didn't return as soon as the soldiers rode off. The
villagers had opened their doors to the Duke's party, welcoming them and
offering their best food and warmest beds. Poor offerings by the Duke's
standards, yet he received their hospitality with graciousness, for he knew it
was all they had. Pug enjoyed the simple food and company, the closest yet to
home since he had left Crydee.
When they were a half day's ride short of
Salador, they encountered a patrol of city guards. The guard captain rode
forward. Pulling up his horse, he shouted, “What business brings the Prince's
guard to the lands of Salador?” There was little love lost between the two
cities, and the Krondorians rode without a heraldic banner. His tone left no
doubt that he regarded their presence as an infringement upon his territory.
Duke Borric threw back his cloak,
revealing his tabard. “Carry word to your master that Borric, Duke of Crydee,
approaches the city and would avail himself of Lord Kerus's hospitality.”
The guard captain was taken aback. He
stammered, “My apologies, Your Grace. I had no idea . . . there was no banner .
. .”
Arutha said dryly, “We mislaid it in a
forest sometime back.”
The captain looked confused. “My lord?”
Borric said, “Never mind, Captain. Just
send word to your master.”
The captain saluted. “At once, Your
Grace.” He wheeled his horse and signaled for a rider to come forward. He gave
him instructions, and the soldier spurred his horse toward the city and soon
galloped out of sight.
The captain returned to the Duke. “If
Your Grace will permit, my men are at your disposal.”
The Duke looked at the travel-weary
Krondorians, all of whom seemed to be enjoying the captain's discomfort. “I
think thirty men-at-arms are sufficient, Captain. The Salador city guard is
renowned for keeping the environs near the city free of brigands.”
The captain, not realizing he was being
made sport of, seemed to puff up at this. “Thank you, Your Grace.”
The Duke said, “You and your men may
continue your patrol.”
The captain saluted again and returned to
his men. He shouted the order to move out, and the guard column moved past the
Duke's party. As they passed, the captain ordered a salute, and lances were
dipped toward the Duke. Borric returned the salute with a lazy wave of his
hand, then when the guards had passed, said, “Enough of this foolishness, let
us to Salador.”
Arutha laughed and said, “Father, we have
need of men like that in the West.”
Borric turned and said, “Oh? How so?”
As the horses moved forward Arutha said
“To polish shields and boots.”
The Duke smiled and the Krondorians
laughed. The western soldiers held those of the East in low regard. The East
had been pacified long before the West had been opened to Kingdom expansion,
and there was little trouble in the Eastern Realm requiring real skill in warcraft.
The Prince of Krondor's guards were battleproved veterans, while those of
Salador were considered by the guardsmen from the West to do their best
soldiering on the parade ground.
Soon they saw signs that they were
nearing the city -- cultivated farmland, villages, roadside taverns, and wagons
laden with trade goods. By sundown they could see the walls of distant Salador.
As they entered the city, a full company
of Duke Kerus's own household guards lined the streets to the palace. As in
Krondor, there was no castle, for the need for a small, easily defensible keep
had passed as the lands around became civilized.
Riding through the city, Pug realized how
much of a frontier town Crydee was. In spite of Lord Borric's political power,
he was still Lord of a frontier province.
Along the streets, citizens stood gawking
at the western Duke from the wild frontier of the Far Coast. Some cheered, for
it seemed like a parade, but most stood quietly, disappointed that the Duke and
his party looked like other men, rather than blood-drenched barbarians.
When they reached the courtyard of the
palace, household servants ran to take their horses. A household guard showed
the soldiers from Krondor to the soldiers' commons, where they would rest
before returning to the Prince's city. Another, with a captain's badge of rank
on his tunic, led Borric's party up the steps of the building.
Pug looked with wonder, for this palace
was even larger than the Prince's in Krondor. They walked through several outer
rooms, then reached an inner courtyard. Here fountains and trees decorated a
garden, beyond which stood the central palace. Pug realized that the building
they had passed through was simply one of the buildings surrounding the Duke's
living quarters. He wondered what use Lord Kerus could possibly have for so
many buildings and such a large staff.
They crossed the garden courtyard and
mounted another series of steps toward a reception committee that stood in the
door of the central palace. Once this building might have been a citadel,
protecting the surrounding town, but Pug couldn't bring himself to imagine it
as it might have been ages ago, for numerous renovations over the years had
transformed an ancient keep into a glittering thing of glass and marble.
Duke Kerus's chamberlain, an old dried-up
stick of a man with a quick eye, knew every noble worth noting -- from the
borders of Kesh in the south to Tyr-Sog in the north -- by sight. His memory
for faces and facts had often saved Duke Kerus from embarrassment. By the time
Borric had made his way up the broad stairway from the courtyard, the
chamberlain had provided Kerus with a few personal facts and a quick evaluation
of the right amount of flattery required.
Duke Kerus took Borric's hand. “Ah, Lord
Borric, you do me great honor by this unexpected visit. If you had only sent
word of your arrival, I would have prepared a more fitting welcome.”
They entered the antechamber of the
palace, the Dukes in front. Borric said, “I am sorry to put you to any trouble,
Lord Kerus, but I am afraid our mission is dependent on speed, and that the
formal courtesies will have to be put aside. I bear messages for the King and
must put to sea for Rillanon as soon as is possible.”
“Of course, Lord Borric, but you will
surely be able to stay for a short while, say a week or two?”
“I regret not. I would put to sea tonight
if I could.”
“That is indeed sorry news. I so hoped
that you could guest with us for a time.”
The party reached the Duke's audience
hall, where the chamberlain gave instructions to a company of household
servants, who jumped to the task of readying rooms for the guests. Entering the
vast hall, with its high vaulted ceiling, gigantic chandeliers, and great arched
glass windows, Pug felt dwarfed. The room was the largest he had ever seen,
greater than the hall of the Prince of Krondor.
A huge table was set with fruits and
wine, and the travelers fell to with vigor. Pug sat down with little grace, his
whole body one mass of aches. He was turning into a skilled horseman simply
from long hours in the saddle, but that fact didn't ease his tired muscles.
Lord Kerus pressed the Duke for the cause
of his hurried journey, and between mouthfuls of fruit and drinks of wine,
Borric filled him in on the events of the last three months. After he was done,
Kerus looked distressed. “This is grave news indeed, Lord Borric. Things are
unsettled in the Kingdom. I am sure the Prince has told you of some of the
trouble that has occurred since last you came to the East.”
“Yes, he did. But reluctantly and in only
the most cursory manner. Remember, it has been thirteen years since I journeyed
to the capital, at Rodric's coronation when I came to renew my vassalage. He
seemed a bright enough young man then, able enough to learn to govern. But from
what I've heard in Krondor, there seems to have been a change.”
Kerus glanced around the room, then waved
away his servants. Looking pointedly at Borric's companions, he raised one
eyebrow questioningly.
Lord Borric said, “These have my trust
and will not betray a confidence.”
Kerus nodded. Loudly he said, “If you
would like to stretch your legs before retiring, perhaps you'd care to see my
garden?”
Borric frowned and was about to speak
when Arutha put his hand upon his father's arm, nodding agreement.
Borric said, “That sounds interesting.
Despite the cold I could use a short walk.”
The Duke motioned for Kulgan, Meecham,
and Gardan to remain, but Lord Kerus indicated Pug should join them. Borric
looked surprised, but nodded agreement. They left through a small set of doors
to the garden, and once outside, Kerus whispered, “It will look less suspicious
if the boy comes with us. I can't even trust my own servants anymore. The King
has agents everywhere.”
Borric seemed infuriated. “The King has
placed agents in your household?”
“Yes, Lord Borric, there has been a great
change in our King. I know Erland has not told you the entire story, but it is
one you must know.”
The Duke and his companions watched Duke
Kerus, who looked uncomfortable. He cleared his throat as he glanced around the
snow-covered garden. Between the light from the palace windows and the large
moon above, the garden was a winterscape of white and blue crystals,
undisturbed by footprints.
Kerus pointed to a set of tracks in the
snow and said, “I made those this afternoon when I came here to think about
what I could safely tell you.” He glanced around one more time, seeing if
anyone could overhear the conversation, then continued. “When Rodric the Third
died, everyone expected Erland would take the crown. After the official
mourning, the Priests of Ishap called all the possible heirs forward to present
their claims. You were expected to be one of them.”
Borric nodded. “I know the custom. I was
late getting to the city. I would have renounced the claim in any event, so
there was no importance in my absence.”
Kerus nodded. “History might have been
different had you been here, Borric.” He lowered his voice. “I risk my neck by
saying this, but many, even those of us here in the East, would have urged you
to take the crown.
Borric's expression showed he did not
like hearing this, but Kerus pressed on. “By the time you got here, all the
back-hallway politics had been done -- with most lords content to give the
crown to Erland -- but it was a tense day and a half while the issue was in
doubt. Why the elder Rodric didn't name an heir I don't know. But when the
priests had chased away all the distant kin with no real claim, three men stood
before them, Erland, young Rodric, and Guy du Bas-Tyra. The priests asked for
their declarations, and each gave them in turn. Rodric and Erland both had
solid claims, while Guy was there as a matter of form, as you would have been
had you arrived in time.”
Arutha interjected dryly, “The time of
mourning ensures no western Lord will be King.”
Borric threw a disapproving glance at his
son, but Kerus said, “Not entirely. If there had been any doubt to the rights
of succession, the priest would have held off the ceremony until your father
arrived, Arutha. It has been done before.”
He looked at Borric and lowered his
voice. “As I said, it was expected Erland would take the crown. But when the
crown was presented to him, he refused, conceding the claim to Rodric. No one
at that time knew of Erland's ill health, so most lords judged the decision a
generous affirmation of Rodric's claim, as the only son of the King. With Guy
du Bas-Tyra's backing the boy, the assembled Congress of Lords ratified his
succession. Then the real infighting began, until at last your late wife's
uncle was named as King's Regent.”
Borric nodded. He remembered the battle
over who would be named the then boy King's Regent. His despised cousin Guy had
nearly won the position, but Borric's timely arrival and his support of Caldric
of Rillanon, along with the support of Duke Brucal of Yabon and Prince Erland,
had swung the majority of votes in the congress away from Guy.
“For the next five years there was only
an occasional border clash with Kesh. Things were quiet. Eight years ago” --
Kerus paused to glance around again, “Rodric embarked upon a program of public
improvements, as he calls them, upgrading roads and bridges, building dams, and
the like. At first they were of little burden, but the taxes have been
increased yearly until now the peasants and freemen, even the minor nobles, are
being bled white. The King has expanded his programs until now he is rebuilding
the entire capital, to make it the greatest city known in the history of man,
he says. Two years ago a small delegation of nobles came to the Kin and asked
him to abjure this excessive spending and ease the burden upon the people. The
King flew into a rage, accused the nobles of being traitors and had them
summarily executed.”
Borric's eyes widened. The snow under his
boot crunched dryly as he turned suddenly. “We've heard nothing of this in the
West!”
“When Erland heard the news, he went
immediately to the King and demanded reparation for the fame nobles who were
executed, and a lessening of the taxes. The King -- or so it is rumored -- was
ready to seize his uncle, but was restrained by the few counselors he still
trusted. They advised His Majesty that such an act, unheard of in the history
of the Kingdom, would surely cause the western lords to rise up against the
King.”
Borric's expression darkened. “They were
right. Had that boy hanged Erland, the Kingdom would have been irretrievably
split.”
“Since that time the Prince has not set
foot in Rillanon, and the business of the Kingdom is handled by aides, for the
two men will not speak to one another.”
The Duke looked skyward, and his voice
became troubled. “This is much worse than I had heard. Erland told me of the
taxes and his refusal to impose them in the West. He said that the King was
agreed, for he understood the need of maintaining the garrisons of the North
and West.”
Kerus slowly shook his head no. “The King
agreed only when his aides painted pictures of goblin armies pouring down from
the Northlands and plundering the cities of his Kingdom.”
“Erland spoke of the strain between
himself and his nephew, but even in light of the news I carry, said nothing
about His Majesty's actions.”
Kerus drew a deep breath and started
walking once more. “Borric, I spend so much time with the sycophants of the
King's court, I forget that you of the West are given to plain speech.” Kerus was
silent a moment, then said, “Our King is not the man he once was. Sometimes he
seems his old self, laughing and open, filled with grand plans for the Kingdom;
other times he is . . . someone else, as if a dark spirit has taken possession
of his heart.”
“Take care, Borric, for only Erland
stands closer to the throne than yourself. Our King is well aware of that fact
-- even if you never think of it -- and sees daggers and poison where none
exists.”
Silence descended over the group, and Pug
saw Borric look openly troubled. Kerus continued. “Rodric fears others covet
his crown. That may be, but not those the King suspects. There are only four
conDoin males besides the King, all of whom are men of honor.” Borric inclined
his head at the compliment. “But there are perhaps a dozen more who can claim
ties to the throne, through the King's mother and her people. All are eastern
lords, and many would not flinch from the opportunity to press their claim to
the throne before the Congress of Lords.”
Borric looked incensed. “You speak of
treason.”
“Treason in men's hearts, if not in deeds
. . . yet.”
“'Have things come to such a pass in the
East, without us of the West knowing?”
Kerus nodded as they reached the far end
of the garden. “Erland is an honorable man, and as such would keep unfounded
rumors from his subjects, even yourself. As you have said, it is thirteen years
since you last were at Rillanon. All warrants and missives from the King still
pass through the Prince's court. How would you know?”
“I fear it is only a matter of time
before one or other of the King's advisers positions himself over the fallen
heads of those of us who hold to our beliefs that the nobility are wardens of
the nation's welfare.”
Borric said, “Then you risk much with
your frank speech.”
Duke Kerus shrugged, indicating they
should begin their return to the palace. “I have not always been a man to speak
my mind, Lord Borric, but these are difficult times. Should anyone else have
passed through, there would have been only polite conversation. You are unique,
for with the Prince estranged from his nephew, you are the only man in the
Kingdom with the strength and rank to possibly influence the King. I do not
envy your weighty position, my friend.”
“When Rodric the Third was king, I was
among the most powerful nobles in the East, but I might as well be a landless
freebooter for all the influence I now hold in Rodric the Fourth's court.”
Kerus paused. “Your black-hearted cousin Guy is now closest to the King, and
the Duke of Bas-Tyra and I have little love between us. Our reasons for
disliking one another are not as personal as yours. But as his star rises, mine
falls even more.
Kerus slapped his hands as the cold was
beginning to bite. “But one bit of good news. Guy is wintering at his estate
near Pointer's Head, so the King is free of his plotting for the present.”
Kerus gripped Borric's arm. “Use whatever influence you can muster to stem the
King's impulsive nature, Lord Borric, for with this invasion you bring word of,
we need to stand united. A lengthy war would drain us of what little reserves
we possess, and should the Kingdom be put to the test, I do not know whether it
would endure.”
Borric said nothing, for even his worst
fears since leaving the Prince were surpassed by Kerus's remarks. The Duke of
Salador said, “One last thing, Borric. With Erland having refused the crown
thirteen years ago, and the rumors of his health failing, many of the Congress
of Lords will be looking to you for guidance. Where you lead, many will follow,
even some of us in the East.”
Borric said coldly, “Are you speaking of
civil war?”
Kerus waved a hand, a pained expression
crossing 'his face. His eyes seemed moist, as if near tears. “I am ever loyal
to the crown, Borric, but if it comes to the right of things, the Kingdom must
prevail. No one man is more important than the Kingdom.”
Borric said through clenched jaws, “The
King is the Kingdom.”
Kerus said, “You would not be the man you
are and say otherwise. I hope you are able to direct the King's energies toward
this trouble in the West, for should the Kingdom be imperiled, others will not
hold to such lofty beliefs.”
Borric's tone softened a little as they
walked up the steps leading from the garden. “I know you mean well, Lord Kerus,
and there is only love of the realm in your heart. Have faith and pray, for I
will do whatever I can to ensure the survival of the Kingdom.”
Kerus stood before the door back into the
palace. “I fear we will all be in deep water soon, my lord Borric. I pray that
this invasion you speak of will not be the wave that drowns us. In whatever way
I can aid you, I will.” He turned toward the door, which was opened by a
servant. Loudly he said, “I will bid you a good night, for I can see you're all
tired.”
The tension in the room was heavy as
Borric, Arutha, and Pug reentered, and the Duke's mood one of dark reflection.
Servants came to show the guests to their rooms, and Pug followed a boy near
his own age, dressed in the Duke's livery. Pug looked over his shoulder as they
left the hall to see the Duke and his son standing together, speaking quietly
to Kulgan.
Pug was shown to a small but elegant room
and, ignoring the richness of the bed covers, fell across them still fully
clothed. The servant boy said, “Do you need aid in undressing, Squire?”
Pug sat up and looked at the boy with
such a frank expression of wonder that the servant backed away a step. “If that
will be all, Squire?” he asked, obviously uncomfortable.
Pug just laughed. The boy stood
uncertainly for an instant, then bowed and hurriedly left the room. Pug pulled
off his clothing, wondering at the eastern nobles and servants who had to help
them undress. He was too tired to fold his garments, simply letting them fall
to the floor in a heap.
After blowing out the bedside candle, Pug
lay for a time in the darkness, troubled by the evening's discussion. He knew
little of court intrigue, but knew that Kerus must have been deeply worried to
speak as he did before strangers, in spite of Borric's reputation as a man of
high honor.
Pug thought of all the things that had
taken place in the last months and knew that his dreams of the King answering
the call of Crydee with banners flying were another boyish fancy shattered upon
the hard rock of reality.
The ship sailed
into the harbor.
The climate of the Kingdom Sea was more
clement than that of the Bitter Sea, and the journey from Salador had proven
uneventful. They'd had to beat a tack much of the way against a steady
northeast wind, so three weeks had passed instead of two.
Pug stood on the foredeck of the ship,
his cloak pulled tightly around him. The winter wind's bitterness had given way
to a softer cool, as if spring were but a few days in coming.
Rillanon was called the jewel of the
Kingdom, and Pug judged the name richly deserved. Unlike the squat cities of
the West, Rillanon stood a mass of tall spires, gracefully arched bridges, and
gently twisting roadways, scattered atop rolling hills in delightful confusion.
Upon heroic towers, banners and pennons fluttered in the wind, as if the city
celebrated the simple fact of its own existence. To Pug, even the ferrymen who
worked the barges going to and from the ships at anchor in the harbor were more
colorful for being within the enchantment of Rillanon.
The Duke of Salador had ordered a ducal
banner sewn for Borric, and it now flew from the top of the ship's mainmast,
informing the officials of the royal city that the Duke of Crydee had arrived.
Borric's ship was given priority in docking by the city's harbor pilot, and
quickly the ship was being secured at the royal quay. The party disembarked and
were met by a company of the Royal Household Guard. At the head of the guards
was an old, greyhaired, but still erect man, who greeted Borric warmly.
The two men embraced, and the older man,
dressed in the royal purple and gold of the guard but with a ducal signet over
his heart, said, “Borric, it is good to see you once more. What has it been?
Ten . . . eleven years?”
“Caldric, old friend. It has been
thirteen.” Borric regarded him fondly. He had clear blue eyes and a short
salt-and-pepper beard.
The man shook his head and smiled. “It
has been much too long.” He looked at the others. Spying Pug, he said, “Is this
your younger boy?”
Borric laughed. “No, though he would be
no shame to me if he were.” He pointed, out the lanky figure of Arutha. “This is
my son. Arutha, come and greet your great-uncle.”
Arutha stepped forward, and the two
embraced. Duke Caldric, Lord of Rillanon, Knight-General of the King's Royal
Household Guard, and Royal Chancellor, pushed Arutha back and regarded him at
arm's length. “You were but a boy when I last saw you. I should have known you,
for though you have some of your father's looks, you also resemble my dear
brother -- your mother's father -- greatly. You do honor to my family.”
Borric
said, “Well, old war-horse, how is your city?” Caldric said, “There is much to
speak of, but not here. We shall bring you to the King's palace and quarter you
in comfort. We shall have much time to visit. What brings you here to
Rillanon?”
“I have pressing business with His Majesty,
but it is not something to be spoken of in the streets. Let us go to the
palace.”
The Duke and his party were given mounts,
and the escort cleared away the crowds as they rode through the city. If
Krondor and Salador had impressed Pug with their splendor, Rillanon left him
speechless.
The island city was built upon many
hills, with several small rivers running down to the sea. It seemed to be a
city of bridges and canals, as much as towers and spires. Many of the buildings
seemed new, and Pug thought that this must be part of the King's plan for
rebuilding the city. At several points along the way he saw workers removing
old stones from a building, or erecting new walls and roofs. The newer
buildings were faced with colorful stonework, many of marble and quartz, giving
them a soft white, blue, or pink color. The cobblestones in the streets were
clean, and gutters, ran free of the clogs and debris Pug had seen in the other
cities. Whatever else he might be doing, the boy thought, the King is
maintaining a marvelous city.
A river ran before the palace, so that
entrance was made over a high bridge that arched across the water into the main
courtyard. The palace was a collection of great buildings connected by long
halls that sprawled atop a hillside in the center of the city. It was faced
with many-colored stone, giving it a rainbow aspect.
As they entered the courtyard, trumpets
sounded from the walls, and guards stood to attention. Porters stepped forward
to take the mounts, while a collection of palace nobles and officials stood
near the palace entrance in welcome.
Approaching, Pug noticed that the
greeting given by these men was formal and lacked the personal warmth of Duke
Caldric's welcome. As he stood behind Kulgan and Meecham, he could hear
Caldric's voice. “My lord Borric, Duke of Crydee, may I present Baron Gray, His
Majesty's Steward of the Royal Household.” This was a short, plump man in a
tight-fitting tunic of red silk, and pale grey hose that bagged at the knees. “Earl
Selvec, First Lord of the Royal Navies.” A tall, gaunt man with a thin, waxed
mustache bowed stiffly. And so on through the entire company. Each made a short
statement of pleasure at Lord Borric's arrival, but Pug felt there was little
sincerity in their remarks.
They were taken to their quarters. Kulgan
had to raise a fuss to have Meecham near him, for Baron Gray had wanted to send
him to the distant servants' wing of the palace, but he relented when Caldric
asserted himself as Royal Chancellor.
The room that Pug was shown to far
surpassed in splendor anything he had yet seen. The floors were polished
marble, and the walls were made from the same material but flecked with what
looked to be gold. A great mirror hung in a small room to one side of the
sleeping quarters, where a large, gilded bathing tub sat. A steward put his few
belongings -- what they had picked up along the way since their own baggage had
been lost in the forest -- in a gigantic closet that could have held a dozen
times all that Pug owned. After the man had finished, he inquired, “Shall I
ready your bath, sit?”
Pug nodded, for three weeks aboard ship
had made his clothes feel as if they were sticking to him. When the bath was
ready, the steward said, “Lord Caldric will expect the Duke's party for dinner
in four hours' time, sit. Shall I return then?”
Pug said yes, impressed with the man's
diplomacy. He knew only that Pug had arrived with the Duke, and left it to Pug
to decide whether or not he was included in the dinner invitation.
As he slipped into the warm water, Pug
let out a long sigh of relief. He had never been one for baths when he had been
a keep boy, preferring to wash away dirt in the sea and the streams near the
castle. Now he could learn to enjoy them. He mused about what Tomas would have
thought of that. He drifted off in a warm haze of memories, one very pleasant,
of a darkhaired, lovely princess, and one sad, of a sandy-haired boy.
THE
DINNER OF the night before had been an informal occasion, with Duke Caldric
hosting Lord Borric's party. Now they stood in the royal throne room waiting to
be presented to the King. The hall was vast, a high vaulted affair, with the
entire southern wall fashioned of floor-to-ceiling windows overlooking the city.
Hundreds of nobles stood around as the Duke's party was led down a central
aisle between the onlookers.
Pug had not thought it possible to
consider Duke Borric poorly dressed, for he had always worn the finest clothing
in Crydee, as had his children. But among the finery in evidence around the
room, Borric looked like a raven amid a flock of peacocks. Here a pearl-studded
doublet, there a gold-thread-embroidered tunic-each noble seemed to be outdoing
the next. Every lady wore the costliest silks and brocades, but only slightly
outshone the men.
They halted before the throne, and
Caldric announced the Duke. The King smiled, and Pug was struck by a faint
resemblance to Arutha, though the King's manner was more relaxed. He leaned
forward on his throne and said, “Welcome to our city, cousin. It is good to see
Crydee in this hall after so many years.”
Borric stepped forward and knelt before
Rodric the Fourth, King of the Kingdom of the Isles. “I am gladdened to see
Your Majesty well.”
A brief shadow passed over the monarch's
face, then he smiled again. “Present to us your companions.”
The Duke presented his son, and the King
said, “Well, it is true that one of the conDoin line carries the blood of our
mother's kin besides ourself.” Arutha bowed and backed away. Kulgan was next as
one of the Duke's advisers. Meecham, who had no rank in the Duke's court, had
stayed in his room. The King said something polite, and Pug was introduced.
“Squire Pug of Crydee, Your Majesty, Master of Forest Deep, and member of my
court.”
The King clapped his hands together and
laughed. “The boy who kills trolls. How wonderful. Travelers have carried the
tale from the far shores of Crydee, and we would hear it spoken by the author
of the brave deed. We must meet later so that you may tell us of this marvel.”
Pug bowed awkwardly, feeling a thousand
eyes upon him. There had been times before when he had wished the troll story
had not been spread, but never so much as now.
He backed away, and the King said,
“Tonight we will hold a ball to honor the arrival of our cousin Borric.”
He stood, arranging his purple robes
around him, and pulled his golden chain of office over his head. A page placed
the chain on a purple velvet cushion. The King then lifted his golden crown
from his blacktressed head and handed it to another page.
The crowd bowed as he stepped down from
his throne. “Come, cousin,” he said to Borric, “let us retire to my private
balcony, where we can speak without all the rigors of office. I grow weary of
the pomp.”
Borric nodded and fell in next to the
King, motioning Pug and the others to wait. Duke Caldric announced that the
day's audience was at an end, and that those with petitions for the King should
return the next day.
Slowly the crowd moved out the two great
doors at the end of the hall, while Arutha, Kulgan, and Pug stood by. Caldric
approached and said, “I will show you to a room where you may wait. It would be
well for you to stay close, should His Majesty call for your attendance.”
A steward of the court took them through
a small door near the one the King had escorted Borric through. They entered a
large, comfortable room with a long table in the center laden with fruit,
cheese, bread, and wine. At the table were many chairs, and around the edge of
the room were several divans, with plump cushions piled upon them.
Arutha crossed over to large glass doors
and peered through them. “I can see Father and the King sitting on the royal
balcony.”
Kulgan and Pug joined him and looked to
where Arutha indicated. The two men were at a table, overlooking the city and
the sea beyond. The King was speaking with expansive gestures, and Borric
nodded as he listened.
Pug said, “I had not expected that His
Majesty would look like you, Your Highness.”
Arutha replied with a wry smile, “It is
not so surprising when you consider that, as my father was cousin to his
father, so my mother was cousin to his mother.”
Kulgan put his hand on Pug's shoulder.
“Many of the noble families have more than one tie between them, Pug. Cousins
who are four and five times removed will marry for reasons of politics and
bring the families closer again. I doubt there is one noble family in the East
that can't claim some relationship to the crown, though it may be distant and
follow along a twisted route.”
They returned to the table, and Pug
nibbled at a piece of cheese. “The King seems in good humor,” he said,
cautiously approaching the subject all had on their minds.
Kulgan looked pleased at the circumspect
manner of the boy's comment, for after leaving Salador, Borric had cautioned
them all regarding Duke Kerus's remarks. He had ended his admonition with the
old adage, “In the halls of power, there are no secrets, and even the deaf can
hear.”
Arutha said, “Our monarch is a man of
moods; let us hope he stays in a good one after he hears Father's tidings.”
The afternoon slowly passed as they
awaited word from the Duke. When the shadows outside had grown long, Borric
suddenly appeared at a door. He crossed over to stand before them, a troubled
expression on his face. “His Majesty spent most of the afternoon explaining his
plans for the rebirth of the Kingdom.”
Arutha said, “Did you tell him of the
Tsurani?”
The Duke nodded. “He listened and then
calmly informed me that he would consider the matter. We will speak again in a
day or so was all he said.”
Kulgan said, “At least he seemed in good
humor.”
Borric regarded his old adviser. “I fear
too good. I expected some sign of alarm. I do not ride across the Kingdom for
minor cause, but he seemed unmoved by what I had to tell him.
Kulgan looked worried. “We are overlong
on this journey as it is. Let us hope that His Majesty will not take long in
deciding upon a course of action.”
Borric sat heavily in a chair and reached
for a glass of wine. “Let us hope.”
PUG WALKED THROUGH the door to the King's
private quarters, his mouth dry with anticipation. He was to have his interview
with King Rodric in a few minutes, and he was unsettled to be alone with the
ruler of the Kingdom. Each time he had been close to other powerful nobles, he
had hidden in the shadow of the Duke or his son, coming forward to tell briefly
what he knew of the Tsurani, then able to disappear quickly back into the
background. Now he was to be the only guest of the most powerful man north of
the Empire of Great Kesh.
A house steward showed him through the
door to the King's private balcony. Several servants stood around the edge of
the large open veranda, and the King occupied the lone table, a carved marble
affair under a large canopy.
The day was clear. Spring was coming
early, as winter had before it, and there was a hint of warmth in the gusting
air. Below the balcony, past the hedges and stone walls that marked its edge,
Pug could see the city of Rillanon and the sea beyond. The colorful rooftops
shone brightly in the midday sun, as the last snows had melted completely over
the last four days. Ships sailed in and out of the harbor, and the streets
teemed with citizens. The faint cries of merchants and hawkers, shouting over
the noise of the streets, floated up to become a soft buzzing where the King
took his midday meal.
As Pug approached, the table, a servant
pulled out a chair. The King turned and said, “Ah! Squire Pug, please take a
seat.” Pug began a bow, and the King said, “Enough. I don't stand on formality
when I dine with a friend.”
Pug hesitated, then said, “Your Majesty
honors me,” as he sat.
Rodric waved the comment way. “I remember
what it is to be a boy in the company of men. When I was but a little older
than you, I took the crown. Until then I was only my father's son.” His eyes
got a distant look for a moment. “The Prince, it's true, but still only a boy.
My opinion counted for nothing, and I never seemed to satisfy my father's
expectations, in hunting, riding, sailing, or swordplay. I took many a hiding
from my tutors, Caldric among them. That all changed when I became King, but I
still remember what it was like.” He turned toward Pug, and the distant
expression vanished as he smiled. “And I do wish us to be friends.” He glanced
away and again his expression turned distant. “One can't have too many friends,
now, can one? And since I'm the King, there are so many who claim to be my
friend, but aren't.” He was silent a moment, then again came out of his revery.
“What do you think of my city?”
Pug said, “I have never seen anything
like it, Majesty. It is wonderful.”
Rodric looked out across the vista before
them. “Yes, it is, isn't it?” He waved a hand, and a servant poured wine into
crystal goblets. Pug sipped at his; he still hadn't developed a taste for wine,
but found this very good, light and fruity with a hint of spices. Rodric said,
“I have tried very hard to make Rillanon a wonderful place for those who live
here. I would have the day come when all the cities of the Kingdom are as fine
as this, where everywhere the eye travels, there is beauty. It would take a
hundred lifetimes 'to do that, so I can only set the pattern, building an
example for those who follow to imitate. But where I find brick, I leave
marble. And those who see it will know it for what it is -- my legacy''
The King seemed to ramble a bit, and Pug
wasn't sure of all that he was saying as he continued to talk about buildings
and gardens and removing ugliness from view. Abruptly the King changed topics.
“Tell me how you killed the trolls.”
Pug told him, and the King seemed to hang
on every word. When the boy had finished, the King said, “That is a wonderful
tale. It is better than the versions that have reached the court, for while it
is not half so heroic, it is twice as impressive for being true. You have a
stout heart, Squire Pug.”
Pug said, “Thank you, Majesty.”
Rodric said, “In your tale you mentioned
the Princess Carline.”
“Yes, Majesty?”
“I have not seen her since she was a baby
in her mother's arms. What sort of woman has she become?”
Pug found the shift in topic surprising, but said, “She has become
a beautiful woman, Majesty, much like her mother. She is bright and quick, if
given to a little temper.”
The King nodded. “Her mother was a
beautiful woman. If the daughter is half as lovely, she is lovely indeed. Can
she reason?”
Pug looked confused. “Majesty?”
“Has she a good head for reason, logic?
Can she argue?”
Pug nodded vigorously. “Yes, Your
Majesty. The Princess is very good at that.”
The King rubbed his hands together.
“Good. I must have Borric send her for a visit. Most of these eastern ladies
are vapid, without substance. I was hoping Borric gave the girl an education. I
would like to meet a young woman who knew logic and philosophy, and could argue
and declaim.”
Pug suddenly realized what the King had
meant by arguing wasn't what he had thought. He decided it best not to mention
the discrepancy.
The King continued. “My ministers dun me
to seek a wife and give the Kingdom an heir. I have been busy, and frankly,
have found little to interest me in the court ladies -- oh, they're fine for a
moonlight walk and . . . other things. But as the mother of my heirs?
I
hardly think so. But I should become serious in my search for a queen. Perhaps
the only conDoin daughter would be the logical place to start.”
Pug began to mention another conDoin
daughter, then stifled the impulse, remembering the tension between the King
and Anita's father. Besides, the girl was only seven.
The King shifted topics again. “For four
days cousin Borric has regaled me with tales of these aliens, these Tsurani.
What do you think of all this business?”
Pug looked startled. He had not thought
the King might ask him for an opinion on anything, let alone a matter as
important as the security of the Kingdom. He thought for a long moment, trying
to frame his answer as best he could, then said, “From everything I have seen
and heard, Your Majesty, I think these Tsurani people not only are planning to
invade, but are already here.”
The King raised an eyebrow. “Oh? I would
like to hear your reasoning.”
Pug considered his words carefully. “If
there have been as many sightings as we are aware of, Majesty, considering the
stealth these people are employing, wouldn't it be logical that there are many
more occurrences of their coming and going than we know of?”
The King nodded. “A good proposition.
Continue.”
“Then might it also not be true that once
the snows have fallen, we are less likely to find signs of them, as they are
holding to remote areas.”
Rodric nodded and Pug continued. “If they
are as warlike as the Duke and the others have said them to be, I think they
have mapped out the West to find a good place to bring their soldiers in during
the winter so they can launch their offensive this spring.”
The King slapped the table with his hand.
“A good exercise in logic, Pug.” Motioning for the servants to bring food, he
said, “Now, let us eat.”
Food of an amazing variety and amount for
just the two of them was produced, and Pug picked small amounts of many things,
so as not to appear indifferent to the King's generosity. Rodric asked him a
few questions as they dined, and Pug answered as well as he could.
As Pug was finishing his meal, the King
put his elbow on the table and stroked his beardless chin. He stared out into
space for a long time, and Pug began to feel self-conscious, not knowing the
proper courtesy toward a king who is lost in thought. He elected to sit quietly.
After a time Rodric came out of his
revery. There was a troubled note in his voice as he looked at Pug and said,
“Why do these people come to plague us now? There is so much to be done. I
can't have war disrupting my plans.” He stood and paced around the balcony for
a while, leaving Pug standing, for he had risen when the King had. Rodric
turned to Pug. “I must send for Duke Guy. He will advise me. He has a good head
for such things.”
The King paced, looking at the city for a
few minutes more, while Pug stood by his chair. He heard the monarch mutter to
himself about the great works that must not be interrupted, then felt a tug on
his sleeve. He turned and saw a palace steward standing quietly at his side.
With a smile and a gesture toward the door, the steward indicated the interview
was at an end. Pug followed the man to the door, wondering at the staff's
ability to recognize the moods of the King.
Pug was shown the way back to his room,
and he asked the servant to carry word to Lord Borric that Pug wished to see
him if he was not busy. He went into his room and sat down to think. A short
time later he was brought out of his musing by a knock at the door. He gave
permission for the caller to enter, and the same steward who had carried the message
to the Duke entered, with the message that Borric would see Pug at once.
Pug followed the man from his room and
sent him away, saying he could find the Duke's room without guidance. He walked
slowly, thinking of what he was going to tell the Duke. Two things were
abundantly clear to the boy: the King was not pleased to hear that the Tsurani
were a potential threat to his kingdom, and Lord Borric would be equally
displeased to hear that Guy du Bas-Tyra was being called to Rillanon.
AS WITH EVERY dinner over the last few
days, there was a hushed mood at the table. The five men of Crydee sat eating
in the Duke's quarters, with palace servants, all wearing the King's
purple-and-gold badge on their dark tunics, hovering nearby.
The Duke was chafing to leave Rillanon
for the West. Nearly four months had passed since they left Crydee: the entire
winter. Spring was upon them, and if the Tsurani were going to attack, as they
all believed, it was only a matter of days now. Arutha's restlessness matched
his father's. Even Kulgan showed signs that the waiting was telling upon him.
Only Meecham, who revealed nothing of his feelings, seemed content to wait.
Pug also longed for home. He had grown
bored in the palace. He wished to be back in his tower with his studies. He
also wished to see Carline again, though he didn't speak of this to anyone.
Lately he found himself remembering her in a softer light, forgiving those
qualities that had once irritated him. He also knew, with mixed feelings of anticipation,
that he might discover the fate of Tomas. Dolgan should soon send word to
Crydee, if the thaw came early to the mountains.
Borric had endured several more meetings
with the King over the last week, each ending unsatisfactorily as far as he was
concerned. The last had been hours ago, but he would say nothing about it until
the room was emptied of servants.
As the last dishes were being cleared
away, and the servants were pouring the King's finest Keshian brandy, a knock
came at the door and Duke Caldric entered, waving the servants outside. When
the room was cleared, he turned to the Duke.
“Borric, I am sorry to interrupt your
dining, but I have news. “
Borric stood, as did the others. “Please
join us. Here, take a glass.”
Caldric took the offered brandy and sat
in Pug's chair, while the boy pulled another over. The Duke of Rillanon sipped
his brandy and said, “Messengers arrived less than an hour ago from the Duke of
Bas-Tyra. Guy expresses alarm over the possibility that the King might be
'unduly' distressed by these 'rumors' of trouble in the West.”
Borric stood and threw his glass across
the room, shattering it. Amber fluid dripped down the wall as the Duke of
Crydee nearly roared with anger. “What game does Guy play at? What is this talk
of rumors and undue distress!”
Caldric raised a hand and Borric calmed a
little, sitting again. The old Duke said, “I myself penned the King's call to
Guy. Everything you had told, every piece of information and every surmise, was
included. I can only think Guy is ensuring that the King reaches no decision
until he arrives at the palace.”
Borric drummed his fingers on the table
and looked at Caldric with anger flashing in his eyes. “What is Bas-Tyra doing?
If war comes, it comes to Crydee and Yabon. My people will suffer. My lands
will be ravaged. “
Caldric shook his head slowly. “I will
speak plainly, old friend. Since the estrangement between the King and his
uncle, Erland, Guy plays to advance his own banner to primacy in the Kingdom. I
think that, should Erland's health fail, Guy sees himself wearing the purple of
Krondor.”
Through clenched teeth Borric said, “Then
hear me clearly, Caldric. I would not put that burden on myself or mine for any
but the highest purpose. But if Erland is as ill as I think, in spite of his
claims otherwise, it will be Anita who sits the throne in Krondor, not Black
Guy, If I have to march the Armies of the West into Krondor and assume the
regency myself, that is what shall be, even should Rodric wish it otherwise.
Only if the King has issue will another take the western throne.”
Caldric looked at Borric calmly. “And
will you be branded traitor to the crown?”
Borric slapped the table with his hand.
“Curse the day that villain was born. I regret that I must acknowledge him
kinsman.”
Caldric waited for a minute until Borric
calmed down, then said, “I know you better than you know yourself, Borric. You
would not raise the war banner of the West against the King, though you might
happily strangle your cousin Guy. It was always a sad thing for me that the
Kingdom's two finest generals could hate each other so.”
“Aye, and with cause. Every time there is
a call to aid the West, it is cousin Guy who opposes. Every time there is
intrigue and a title is lost, it is one of Guy's favorites who gains. How can
you not see? It was only because you, Brucal of Yabon, and I myself held firm
that the congress did not name Guy regent for Rodric's first three years. He stood
before every Duke in the Kingdom and called you a tired old man who was not fit
to rule in the King's name. How can you forget?”
Caldric did look tired and old as he sat
in the chair, one hand shading his eyes, as if the room light were too bright.
Softly he said, “I do see, and I haven't forgotten. But he also is my kinsman
by marriage, and if I were not here, how much more influence do you think he
would have with Rodric? As a boy the King idolized him, seeing in him a dashing
hero, a fighter of the first rank, a defender of the Kingdom.”
Borric leaned back in his chair. “I am
sorry, Caldric,” he said, his voice losing its harsh edge. “I know you act for
the good of us all. And Guy did play the hero, rolling the Keshian Army back at
Deep Taunton, all those years ago. I should not speak of things I have not seen
firsthand.”
Arutha sat passively through all this,
but his eyes showed he felt the same anger as his father. He moved forward in
his chair, and the dukes looked at him. Borric said, “You have something to
say, my son?”
Arutha spread his hands wide before him.
“In all this the thought has bothered me: should the Tsurani come, how would it
profit Guy to see the King hesitate?”
Borric drummed his fingers on the table.
“That is the puzzle, for in spite of his scheming, Guy would not peril the
Kingdom, not to spite me.”
“Would it not serve him,” said Arutha,
“to let the West suffer a little, until the issue was in doubt, then to come at
the head of the Armies of the East, the conquering hero, as he was at Deep
Taunton?”
Caldric considered this. “Even Guy could
not think so little of these aliens, I would hope.”
Arutha paced the room. “But consider what
he knows. The ramblings of a dying man. Surmise on the nature of a ship that
only Pug, here, has seen, and I caught but a glimpse of as it slid into the
sea. Conjecture by a priest and a magician, both callings Guy holds in little
regard. Some migrating Dark Brothers. He might discount such news.”
“But
it is all there for the seeing,” protested Borric.
Caldric watched the young Prince pace the
room. “Perhaps you are right. What may be lacking is the urgency of your words,
an urgency lacking in the dry message of ink and parchment. When he arrives, we
must convince him.”
Borric nearly spat his words. “It is for
the King to decide, not Guy!”
Caldric said, “But the King has given
much weight to Guy's counsel. If you are to gain command of the Armies of the
West, it is Guy who must be convinced.”
Borric looked shocked. “I? I do not want
the banner of the armies. I only wish for Erland to be free to aid me, should
there be need.”
Caldric placed both hands upon the table.
“Borric, for all your wisdom, you are much the rustic noble. Erland cannot lead
the armies. He is not well. Even if he could, the King would not allow it. Nor
would he give leave for Erland's Marshal, Dulanic. You have seen Rodric at his
best, of late. When the black moods are upon him, he fears for his life. None
dare say it, but the King suspects his uncle of plotting for the crown.”
“Ridiculous!” exclaimed Borric. “The
crown was Erland's for the asking thirteen years ago. There was no clear
succession. Rodric's father had not yet named him heir apparent, and Erland's
claim was as clear as the King's, perhaps more so. Only Guy and those who
sought to use the boy pressed Rodric's claim. Most of the congress would have
sustained Erland as King.”
“I know, but times are different, and the
boy is a boy no longer. He is now a frightened young man who is sick from fear.
Whether it is due to Guy's and the others' influence or from some illness of
the mind, I do not know. The King does not think as other men do. No king does,
and Rodric less than most. Ridiculous as it may seem, he will not give the
Armies of the West to his uncle. I am also afraid that once Guy has his ear, he
will not give them to you either.”
Borric opened his mouth to say something,
but Kulgan interrupted. “Excuse me, Your Graces, but may I suggest something?”
Caldric looked at Borric, who nodded.
Kulgan cleared his throat and said, “Would the King give the Armies of the West
to Duke Brucal of Yabon?”
Comprehension slowly dawned on Borric's
and Caldric's faces, until the Duke of Crydee threw back his head and laughed.
Slamming his fist on the table, he nearly shouted, “Kulgan! If you had not
served me well in all the years I have known you, tonight you have.” He turned
to Caldric. “What do you think?”
Caldric smiled for the first time since
entering the room. “Brucal? That old war dog? There is no more honest man in
the Kingdom. And he is not in the line of succession. He would be beyond even
Guy's attempts to discredit. Should he receive the command of the armies . . .”
Arutha: finished the thought. “He would
call Father to be his chief adviser. He knows Father is the finest commander in
the West.”
Caldric sat up straight in his chair,
excitement on his face. “You would even have command of the armies of Yabon.”
“Yes,” said Arutha, “and LaMut, Zun,
Ylith, and the rest.”
Caldric stood. “I think it will work. Say
nothing to the King tomorrow. I will find the proper time to make the
'suggestion.' Pray that His Majesty approves.”
Caldric took his leave, and Pug could see
that for the first time there was hope for a good ending to this journey. Even
Arutha, who had fumed like black thunder all week, looked nearly happy.
PUG WAS AWAKENED by a pounding on his
door. He sleepily called out for whoever was out there to enter, and the door
opened. A royal steward peeked in. “Sir, the King commands all in the Duke's
party to join him in the throne room. At once.” He held a lantern for Pug's
convenience.
Pug said he would come straight away and
hurriedly got dressed. Outside it was still dark, and he felt anxious about
what had caused this surprise summons. The hopeful feeling of the night before,
after Caldric had left, was replaced by a gnawing worry that the unpredictable
King had somehow learned of the plan to circumvent the arrival of the Duke of
Bas-Tyra.
He was still buckling his belt about his
tunic when he left his room. He hurried down the hall, with the steward beside
him holding a lantern against the dark, as the torches and candies usually lit
in the evening had all been extinguished.
When they reached the throne room, the
Duke, Arutha, and Kulgan were arriving, all looking apprehensively toward
Rodric, who paced by his throne, still in his night-robes. Duke Caldric stood
to one side, a grave expression on his face. The room was dark, save for the
lanterns carried by the stewards.
As soon as they were gathered before the
throne, Rodric flew into a rage. “Cousin! Do you know what I have here?” he
screamed, holding out a sheaf of parchment.
Borric said he didn't. Rodric's voice
lowered only a little. “It is a message from Yabon! That old fool Brucal has
let those Tsurani aliens attack and destroy one of his garrisons. Look at
these!” he nearly shrieked, throwing the parchments toward Borric. Kulgan
picked them up and handed them to the Duke. “Never mind,” said the King, his
voice returning to near-normalcy. “I'll tell you what they say.
“These invaders have attacked into the
Free Cities, near Walinor. They have attacked into the elven forests. They have
attacked Stone Mountain. They have attacked Crydee.”
Without thinking, Borric said, “What news
from Crydee?”
The King stopped his pacing. He looked at
Borric, and for a moment Pug saw madness in his eyes. He closed them briefly,
then opened them, and Pug could see the King was himself again. He shook his
head slightly and raised his hand to his temple. “I have only secondhand news,
from Brucal. When those messages left six weeks ago, there had only been one attack
at Crydee. Your son Lyam reports the victory was total, driving the aliens deep
into the forest.”
Caldric
stepped forward. “All reports say the same thing. Heavily armed companies of
foot soldiers attacked during the night, before the snows had melted, taking
the garrisons by surprise. Little is known save that a garrison of LaMutians
near Stone Mountain was overrun. All other attacks seem to have been driven
back.” He looked at Borric meaningfully. “There is no word of the Tsurani's
using cavalry.”
Borric said, “Then perhaps Tully was right, and they have no
horses.”
The King seemed to be dizzy, for he took
a staggering step backward and sat on his throne. Again he placed a hand to his
temple, then said, “What is this talk of horses? My Kingdom is invaded. These
creatures dare to attack my soldiers.”
Borric looked at the King. “What would
Your Majesty have me do?”
The King's voice rose. “Do? I was going
to wait for my loyal Duke of Bas-Tyra to arrive before I made any decision. But
now I must act.”
He paused, and his face took on a vulpine
look, as his dark eyes gleamed in the lantern light. “I was considering giving
the Armies of the West to Brucal, but the doddering old fool can't even protect
his own garrisons.”
Borric was about to protest on Brucal's
behalf, but Arutha, knowing his father, gripped his arm, and the Duke remained
silent.
The King said, “Borric, you must leave
Crydee to your son. He is capable enough, I should think. He's given us our
only victory so far.” His eyes wandered and he giggled. He shook his head for a
moment, and his voice lost its frantic edge. “Oh, gods, these pains. I think my
head will burst.” He closed his eyes briefly. “Borric, leave Crydee to Lyam and
Arutha, I'm giving you the banner of the Armies of the West; go to Yabon.
Brucal is sorely pressed, for most of the alien army strikes toward LaMut and
Zun. When you are there, request what you need. These invaders must be driven
from our lands.”
The King's face was pale, and perspiration
gleamed on his forehead. “This is a poor hour to start, but I have sent word to
the harbor to ready a ship. You must leave at once. Go now.”
The Duke bowed and turned. Caldric said,
“I will see His Majesty to his room. I will accompany you to the docks when you
are ready.”
The old Chancellor helped the King from
the throne, and the Duke's party left the hall. They rushed back to their rooms
to find stewards already packing their belongings. Pug stood around excitedly,
for at last he was returning to his home.
THEY STOOD AT dockside, bidding farewell
to Caldric. Pug and Meecham waited, and the tall franklin said, “Well, lad. It
will be some time before we see home again, now that war is joined.”
Pug looked up into the scarred face of
the man who had found him in the storm, so long ago. “Why? Aren't we going
home?”
Meecham shook his head. “The Prince will
ship from Krondor through the Straits of Darkness to join his brother, but the
Duke will ship for Ylith, then to Brucal's camp somewhere near LaMut. Where
Lord Borric goes, Kulgan goes. And where my master goes, I go. And you?”
Pug felt a sinking in his stomach. What
the franklin said was true. He belonged with Kulgan, not with the folk at
Crydee, though he knew if he asked, he would be allowed to go home with the
Prince. He resigned himself to another sign that his boyhood was ending. “Where
Kulgan goes, I go.”
Meecham clapped him on the shoulder and
said, “Well, at least I can teach you to use that bloody sword you swing like a
fishwife's broom.”
Feeling little cheer at the prospect, Pug
smiled weakly. They soon boarded the ship and were under way toward Salador,
and the first leg of the long journey west.
The spring rains
were heavy that year.
The business of war was hampered by the
ever-present mud. It would stay wet and cold for nearly another month before
the brief, hot summer came.
Duke Brucal of Yabon and Lord Borric
stood looking over a table laden with maps. The rain hammered on the roof of
the tent, the central part of the commander's pavilion. On either side of the
tent two others were attached, providing sleeping quarters for the two nobles.
The tent was filled with smoke, from lanterns and from Kulgan's pipe. The
magician had proven an able adviser to the dukes, and his magical aid helpful.
He could detect trends in the weather, and his wizard's sight could detect some
of the Tsurani's troop movements, though not often. And over the years his
reading of every book he encountered, including narratives of warfare, had made
him a fair student of tactics and strategy.
Brucal pointed to the newest map on the
table. “They have taken this point here, and another here. They hold this
point” -- he indicated another spot on the map -”in spite of our every effort
to dislodge them. They also seem to be moving along a line from here, to here.”
His finger swept down a line along the eastern face of the Grey Towers. “There
is a coordinated pattern here, but I'm damned if I can anticipate where it's
going next.” The old Duke looked weary. The fighting had been going on
sporadically for over two months now, and no distinct advantage could be seen
on either side.
Borric studied the map. Red spots marked
known Tsurani strongholds: hand-dug, earthen breastworks, with a minimum of two
hundred men defending. There were also suspected reinforcement companies, their
approximate location indicated with yellow spots. It was known that any
position attacked was quick to get reinforcements, sometimes in a matter of
minutes. Blue spots indicated the location of Kingdom pickets, though most of
Brucal's forces were billeted around the hill upon which the commander's tent
sat.
Until the heavy foot soldiers and
engineers from Ylith and Tyr-Sog arrived to man and create permanent
fortifications, the Kingdom was fighting a principally mobile war, for most of
the troops assembled were cavalry. The Duke of Crydee agreed with the other
man's assessment. “It seems their tactics remain the same: bring in a small
force, dig in, and hold. They prevent our troops from entering, but refuse to
follow when we withdraw. There is a pattern. But for the life of me, I can't
see it either.”
A guard entered. “My lords, an elf stands
without, seeking entrance.”
Brucal said, “Show him in.”
The guard held aside the tent flap, and
an elf entered. His red-brown hair was plastered to his head, and his cloak
dripped water on the floor of the tent. He made a slight bow to the dukes.
“What news from Elvandar?'' Borric asked.
“My Queen sends you greetings.” He
quickly turned to the map. He pointed at the pass between the Grey Towers on
the south and Stone Mountain on the north, the same pass Borric's forces now
bottled up at its east end. “The outworlders move many soldiers through this
pass. They have advanced to the edge of the elven forests, but seek not to
enter. They have made it difficult to get through.” He grinned. “I led several
a merry chase for half a day. They run nearly as well as the dwarves. But they
could not keep up in the forest.” He returned his attention to the map. “There
is word from Crydee that skirmishes have been fought by outriding patrols, but
nothing close to the castle itself. There is no word of activity from the Grey
Towers, Carse, or Tulan. They seem content to dig in along this pass. Your
forces to the west will not be able to join you, for they could not break
through now.”
“How strong do the aliens appear to be?”
asked Brucal.
“It is not known, but I saw several
thousand along this route.” His finger indicated a route along the northern
edge of the pass, from the elven forests to the Kingdom camp. “The dwarves of
Stone Mountain are left alone, so long as they do not venture south. The outworlders
deny them the pass also.”
Borric asked the elf, “Has there been any
report of the Tsurani's having cavalry?”
“None. Every report refers only to
infantry.”
Kulgan said, “Father Tully's speculation
on their being horseless seems to be borne out.”
Brucal took brush and ink in hand and
entered the information on the map. Kulgan stood looking over his shoulder.
Borric said to the elf, “After you've
rested, carry my greetings to your mistress, and my wish for her good health
and prosperity. If you should send runners to the west, please carry the same
message to my sons.”
The elf bowed. “As my lord wishes. I
shall return to Elvandar at once.” He turned and left the tent.
Kulgan said, “I think I see it.” He
pointed to the new red spots on the map. They formed a rough half circle,
through the pass. “The Tsurani are trying to hold this area here. That valley
is the center of the circle. I would guess they are attempting to keep anyone
from getting close.”
Both the dukes looked puzzled. Borric
said, “But to what purpose? There is nothing there of any value militarily. It
is as if they are inviting us to bottle them up in that valley.”
Suddenly Brucal gasped. “It's a
bridgehead. Think of it in terms of crossing a river. They have a foothold on
this side of the rift, as the magician calls it. They have only as many
supplies as their men can carry through. They don't have enough control of the
area for foraging, so they need to expand the area under their control and
build up supplies before they launch an offensive.”
Brucal turned to the magician. “Kulgan,
what do you think? This is more in your province.”
The magician looked at the map as if
trying to divine information hidden in it. “We know nothing of the magic
involved. We don't know how fast they can pass supplies and men through, for no
one has ever witnessed an appearance. They may require a large area, which this
valley provides them. Or they may have some limit on the amount of time
available to pass troops through.”
Duke Borric considered this. “Then there
is only one thing to do. We must send a party into the valley to see what they
are doing.”
Kulgan smiled. “I will go too, if
Your-Grace permits. Your soldiers might not have the faintest idea of what they
are seeing if it involves magic.”
Brucal started to object, his gaze taking
in the magician's ample size. Borric cut him off. “Don't let his look fool you.
He rides like a trooper.” He turned to Kulgan. “You had best take Pug, for if
one should fall, then the other can carry the news.”
Kulgan looked unhappy at that, but saw
the wisdom in it. The Duke of Yabon said, “If we strike at the North Pass, then
into this valley and draw their forces there, a small, fast company might break
through here.” He pointed at a small pass that entered the south end of the
valley from the east.
Borric said, “It is a bold enough plan.
We have danced with the Tsurani so long, holding a stable front. I doubt they
will expect it.” The magician suggested they retire for the rest of the
evening, for it would be a long day on the morrow. He closed his eyes briefly,
then informed the two leaders that the rain would stop and the next day would
be sunny.
PUG
LAY WRAPPED in a blanket, trying to nap, when Kulgan entered their tent.
Meecham sat before the cook fire, preparing the evening meal and attempting to
keep it from the greedy maw of Fantus. The firedrake had sought out his master
a week before, eliciting startled cries from the soldiers as he swooped over
the tents. Only Meecham's commanding shouts had kept a bowman from putting a
cloth-yard arrow into the playful drake. Kulgan had been pleased to see his
pet, but at a loss to explain how the creature had found them. The drake had
moved right into the magician's tent, content to sleep next to Pug and steal
food from under Meecham's watchful eye.
Pug sat up as the magician pulled off his
sopping cloak. “There is an expedition going deep within Tsurani held
territory, to break the circle they've thrown up around a small valley and find
out what they are up to. You and Meecham will be going with me on this trip. I
would have friends at my back and side.”
Pug felt excited by the news. Meecham had
spent long hours schooling him in use of sword and shield, and the old dream of
soldiering had returned. “I have kept my blade sharp, Kulgan.”
Meecham gave forth a snort that passed
for laughter, and the magician threw him a black look. “Good, Pug. But with any
luck we'll not be fighting. We are to go in a smaller force attached to a
larger one that will draw off the Tsurani. We will drive quickly into their
territory and discover what they are hiding. We will then ride as fast as
possible to bring back the news. I thank the gods they are without horses, or
we could never hope to accomplish so bold a stroke. We shall ride through them
before they know we have struck.”
“Perhaps we may take a prisoner,” the boy
said hopefully.
“It would be a change,” said Meecham. The
Tsurani had proved to be fierce fighters, preferring to die rather than be
captured.
“Maybe then we'd discover why they've
come to Midkemia,” ventured Pug.
Kulgan looked thoughtful. “There is
little we understand about these Tsurani. Where is this place they come from?
How do they cross between their world and ours? And as you've pointed out, the
most vexing question of all, why do they come? Why invade our lands?”
“Metal.”
Kulgan and Pug looked over at Meecham,
who was spooning up stew, keeping one eye on Fantus. “They don't have any metal
and they want ours.” When Kulgan and Pug regarded him with blank expressions,
he shook his head. “I'd thought you puzzled it out by now, so I didn't think to
bring it up.” He put aside the bowls of stew' reached behind himself, and drew
a bright red arrow out from under his bedding. “Souvenir,” he said, holding it
out for inspection. “Look at the head. It's the same stuff their swords are
made from, some kind of wood, hardened like steel. I picked over a lot of
things fetched in by the soldiers, and I haven't seen one thing these Tsurani
make with any metal in it.”
Kulgan looked flabbergasted. “Of course!
It's all so simple. They found a way to pass between their world and ours, sent
through scouts, and found a land rich in metals they lack. So they sent in an
invading army. It also explains why they marshal in a high valley of the
mountains, rather than in the lower forests. It gives them free access to . . .
the dwarven mines!” He jumped up. “I'd better inform the dukes at once. We must
send word to the dwarves to be alert for incursions into the mines.”
Pug sat thoughtfully as Kulgan vanished
through the tent entrance. After a moment he said, “Meecham, why didn't they
try trading?”
Meecham shook his head. “The Tsurani?
From what I've seen, boy, it's a good bet trading never entered their minds.
They are one very warlike bunch. Those bastards fight like six hundred kinds of
demons. If they had cavalry, they would have chased this whole lot back to
LaMut, then probably burned the city down around them. But if we can wear them
down, like a bulldog does, just keep hanging on until they tire, we might
settle this after a time. Look what happened to Kesh. Lost half of Bosania to
the Kingdom in the north 'cause the Confederacy just plain wore the Empire out
with one rebellion after another in the south.”
After a time, Pug gave up on Kulgan's
returning soon, ate supper alone, and made ready for bed. Meecham quit trying
to keep the magician's meal away from the drake, and also turned in.
In the dark, Pug lay staring up at the
tent roof, listening to the sound of the rain and the drake's joyous chewing.
Soon he drifted off into sleep, where he dreamed of a dark tunnel and a
flickering light vanishing down it.
THE TREES WERE thick and the air hung
heavy with mist as the column moved slowly through the forest. Outriders came
and went every few minutes, checking for signs that the Tsurani were preparing
an ambush. The sun was lost high in the trees overhead, and the entire scene
had a greyish-green quality to it, making it difficult to see more than a few
yards ahead.
At the head of the column rode a young
captain of the LaMutian army, Vandros, son of the old Earl of LaMut. He was
also one of the more level-headed and capable young officers in Brucal's army.
They rode in pairs, with Pug sitting next
to a soldier, behind Kulgan and Meecham. The order to halt came down the line,
and Pug reined in his horse and dismounted. Over a light gambeson, he wore a
well-oiled suit of chain mail. Over that was a tabard of the LaMutian forces,
with the grey Wolf's head on a circle of blue in the center. Heavy woolen
trousers were tucked into his high boots. He had a shield on his left arm, and
his sword hung from his belt; he felt truly a soldier. The only discordant note
was his helm, which was a little too large and gave him a slightly comic
appearance.
Captain Vandros came back to where Kulgan
stood waiting, and dismounted. “The scouts have spotted a camp about half a
mile ahead. They think they were not seen by the guards.”
The captain pulled out a map. “We are
about here. I will lead my men and attack the enemy position. Cavalry from Zun
will support us on either side. Lieutenant Garth will command the column you
will ride with. You will pass the enemy camp and continue on toward the
mountains. We will try to follow if we can, but if we haven't rejoined you by
sundown, you must continue alone.”
“Keep moving, if only at a slow walk.
Push the horses, but try to keep them alive. On horseback you can always outrun
these aliens, but on foot I wouldn't give you much chance of getting back. They
run like fiends.”
“Once in the mountains, move through the
pass. Ride into the valley one hour after sunrise. The North Pass will be
attacked at dawn, so if you get safely into the valley you should, I hope, find
little between you and the North Pass. Once in the valley, don't stop for
anything. If a man falls, he is to be left. The mission is to get information
back to the commanders. Now try to rest. It may be your last chance for some
time. We attack in an hour.”
He walked his horse back to the head of
the line. Kulgan, Meecham, and Pug sat without speaking. The magician wore no
armor because he claimed it would interfere with his magic. Pug was more
inclined to believe it would interfere with his considerable girth. Meecham had
a sword at his side, like the others, but held a horse bow. He preferred
archery to close fighting, though Pug knew, from long hours of instruction at
his hands, that he was no stranger to the blade.
The hour passed, slowly, and Pug felt
mounting excitement, for he was still possessed by boyish notions of glory. He
had forgotten the terror of the fighting with the Dark Brothers before they
reached the Grey Towers.
Word was passed and they remounted. They
rode slowly at first, until the Tsurani were in sight. As the trees thinned,
they picked up speed, and when they reached the clearing, they galloped the
horses. Huge breastworks of earth had been thrown up as a defense against the
charge of horsemen. Pug could see the brightly colored helmets of the Tsurani
rushing to defend their camp. As the riders charged, the sounds of fighting
could be heard echoing through the trees as the Zunese troops engaged other
Tsurani camps.
The ground shook under the horses as they
rode straight at the camp, sounding like a rolling wave of thunder. The Tsurani
soldiers stayed behind the earthworks, shooting arrows, most of which fell
short. As the first element of the column hit the earthworks, the second
element turned to the left, riding off at an angle past the camp. A few Tsurani
soldiers were outside the breastworks here, and were ridden down like wheat
before a scythe. Two came close to hitting the riders with the great two-handed
swords they wielded, but their blows went wide. Meecham, guiding his horse with
his legs, dropped both with two quick arrows.
Pug heard a horse scream among the sounds
of the fighting behind, then suddenly found himself crashing through the brush
as they entered the forest. They rode as hard as possible, cutting through the
trees, ducking under low branches, the scene a passing kaleidoscope of greens
and browns.
The column rode for nearly a half hour,
then slackened pace as the horses began to tire. Kulgan called to Lieutenant
Garth, and they halted to check their position against the map. If they moved
slowly for the balance of the day and night, they would reach the mouth of the
pass near daybreak.
Meecham peered over the heads of the
lieutenant and Kulgan as they knelt on the ground. “I know this place. I hunted
it as a boy, when I lived near Hash.”
Pug was startled. This was the first time
Meecham had ever mentioned anything about his past. Pug had supposed that
Meecham was from Crydee, and was surprised to find he had been a youth in the
Free Cities. But then he found it difficult to imagine Meecham as a boy.
The franklin continued. “There is a way
over the crest of the mountains, a path that leads between two smaller peaks.
It is little more than a goat trail, but if we led the horses all night, we
could be in the valley by sunrise. This way is difficult to find on this side
if you don't know where to seek it. From the valley side, it is nearly
impossible. I would bet the Tsurani know nothing about it.”
The lieutenant regarded Kulgan with a
question in his eyes. The magician looked at Meecham, then said, “It might be
worth a try. We can mark our trail for Vandros. If we move slowly, he might
catch up before we reach the valley.”
“All right,” said the lieutenant, “our
biggest advantage is mobility, so let's keep moving. Meecham, where will we
come out?”
The large man leaned over the lieutenant's
shoulder to point at a spot on the map near the south end of the valley. “Here.
If we come out straight west for a half mile or so, then swing north, we can
cut down the heart of the valley.” He motioned with his finger as he spoke.
“This valley's mostly woods at the north and south end, with a big meadow in
the middle. That's where they'd be if they have a big camp. It's mostly open
there, so if the aliens haven't come up with anything surprising, we should be
able to ride right by them afore they can organize to stop us. The dicey part
will be getting through the northern woods if they've garrisoned soldiers
there. But if we get through them, we'll be free to the North Pass.”
“All agreed?” asked the lieutenant. When
no one said anything, he gave orders for the men to walk their horses, and
Meecham took the lead as guide.
They reached the entrance to the pass, or
what Pug thought Meecham had correctly called a goat trail, an hour before
sundown. The lieutenant posted guards and ordered the horses unsaddled. Pug
rubbed down his horse with handfuls of long grass, then staked it out. The
thirty soldiers were busy tending to their horses and armor. Pug could feel the
tension in the air. The run around the Tsurani camp had set the soldiers on edge,
and they were anxious for a fight.
Meecham showed Pug how to muffle his
sword and shield with rags torn from the soldiers' blankets. “We're not going
to be using these bed rolls this night, and nothing will ring through the hills
like the sound of metal striking metal, boy. Except maybe the clopping of
hooves on the rock.” Pug watched as he muffled the horses' hooves with leather
stockings designed for just this purpose and carried in the saddlebags. Pug
rested as the sun began to set. Through the short spring twilight, he waited
until he heard the order to resaddle. The soldiers were beginning. to pull
their horses into a line when he finished.
Meecham and the lieutenant were walking
down the line repeating instructions to the men. They would move in single
file, Meecham taking the lead, the lieutenant second, down the line to the last
soldier. They tied a series of ropes through the left stirrup of each horse,
and each man gripped it tightly as he led his own horse. After everyone was in
position, Meecham started. off.
The path rose steeply, and the horses had
to scramble in places. In the darkness they moved slowly, taking great care not
to stray from the path. Occasionally Meecham stopped the line, to check ahead.
After several such stops, the trail crested through a deep, narrow pass and
started downward. An hour later it widened, and they stopped to rest. Two
soldiers were sent ahead with Meecham to scout the way, while the rest of the
tired line dropped to the ground to ease cramped legs. Pug realized the fatigue
was as much the result of the tension created by the silent passage as of the
climbing, but it didn't make his legs feel any better.
After what seemed to be much too short a
rest they were moving again. Pug stumbled along, fatigue numbing his mind to
the point where the world became an endless series of picking up one foot and
placing it before the other. Several times the horse before him was literally
towing him as he grasped the rope tied to its stirrup.
Suddenly Pug was aware that the line had
stopped and that they were standing in a gap between two small hills, looking
down at the valley floor. From here it would take only a few minutes to ride
down the slope.
Kulgan walked back to where the boy stood
next to his animal. The stout wizard seemed little troubled by the climb, and
Pug wondered at the muscle that must lie hidden beneath the layers of fat. “How
are you feeling, Pug?”
“I'll live, I expect, but I think next
time I'll ride, if it's all the same to you.” They were keeping their voices
low, but the magician gave out with a soft chuckle anyway
“I understand completely. We'll be
staying here until first light. That will be slightly less than two hours. I
suggest you get some sleep, for we have a great deal of hard riding ahead.”
Pug nodded and lay down without a word.
He used his shield for a pillow and, before the magician had taken a step away,
was fast asleep. He never stirred as Meecham came and removed the leather
muffles from his horse.
A GENTLE SHAKING brought Pug awake. He
felt as if he had just closed his eyes a moment before. Meecham was squatting
before him, holding something out. “Here, boy. Eat this.”
Pug took the offered food. It was soft
bread, with a nutty flavor. After two bites he began to feel better.
Meecham said, “Eat quickly, we're off in
a few minutes.” He moved forward to where the lieutenant and the magician stood
by their horses. Pug finished the bread and remounted. The soreness had left
his legs, and by the time he was astride his mount, he felt anxious to be off.
The lieutenant turned his horse and faced
the men. “We will ride west -- then, on command, north. Fight only if attacked.
Our mission is to return with information about the Tsurani. If any man falls,
we cannot stop. If you are separated from the others, get back as best you can.
Remember as much of what you see as possible, for you may be the only one to
carry the news to the dukes. May the gods protect us all.”
Several of the soldiers uttered quick
prayers to various deities, chiefly Tith, the war god, then they were off. The
column came down the hillside and reached the flat of the valley. The sun was
cresting the hills behind, and a rosy glow bathed the landscape. At the foot of
the hills they crossed a small creek and entered a plain of tall grass. Far
ahead was a stand of trees, and another could be seen off to the north. At the
north end of the valley the haze of campfire smoke hung in the air. The enemy
was there all right, thought Pug, and from the volume of smoke there must be a
large concentration of them. He hoped Meecham was right and they were all
garrisoned out in the open, where the Kingdom soldiers stood a fair chance of
outrunning them.
After a while the lieutenant passed the
word, and the column turned north. They trotted along, saving the horses for
when they would be sure to need the speed.
Pug thought he saw glimpses of color in
the trees ahead, as they descended into the southern woods of the valley, but
couldn't be sure. As they reached the woods, a shout went up from within the
trees. The lieutenant cried, “All right, they've seen us. Ride hard and stay
close.” He spurred his horse forward, and soon the entire company was
thundering through the woods. Pug saw the horses in front bear to the left and
turned his to follow, seeing a clearing in the trees. The sound of voices grew
louder as the first trees went flying past, and his eyes tried to adjust to the
darkness of the woods. He hoped his horse could see more clearly than he could,
or he might find himself inside a tree.
The horse, battle trained and quick,
darted between the trunks, and Pug could begin to see flashes of color among
the branches. Tsurani soldiers were rushing to intercept the horsemen, but were
forced to weave through the trees, making it impossible. They were speeding
through the woods faster than the Tsurani could pass the word and react. Pug
knew that this advantage of surprise couldn't last much longer; they were making
too great a commotion for the enemy not to realize what was happening.
After a mad dash through the trees, they
broke into another clear area where a few Tsurani soldiers stood waiting for
them. The horsemen charged, and most of the defenders scattered to avoid being
run down. One, however, stood his ground, in spite of the terror written on his
face, and swung the blue twohanded sword he carried. A horse screamed, and the
rider was thrown as the blade cut the horse's right leg from under him. Pug
lost sight of the fight as he sped quickly past.
An arrow shot over Pug's shoulder,
buzzing like an angry bee. He hunched over the withers of his mount, trying to
give the archers behind him as small a target as possible. Ahead, a soldier
fell backward out of his saddle, a red arrow through his neck.
Soon they were out of bow range and
riding toward a breastwork thrown across an old road from the mines in the
south. Hundreds of brightly colored figures scurried behind it. The lieutenant
signaled for the riders to pass around it, to the west.
As soon as it was apparent they would
pass the earthwork and not charge it, several Tsurani bowmen came tumbling over
the top of the redoubt and ran to intercept the riders. As soon as they came
within bowshot, the air filled with red and blue shafts. Pug heard a horse
scream, but he couldn't see the stricken animal or its rider.
Riding quickly beyond the range of the
bowmen, they entered another thick stand of trees. The lieutenant pulled up his
mount for a moment and yelled, “From here on, make straight north. We're almost
to the meadow, so there'll be no cover, and speed is your only ally. Then once
you're in the woods to the north, keep moving. Our forces should have broken
through up there, and if we can get past those woods, we should be all right.”
Meecham had described the woods as being about two or three miles across. From
there it was three miles of open ground until the North Pass through the hills
began.
They slowed to a walk, trying to rest the
horses as much as possible. They could see the tiny figures of the Tsurani
coming from behind, but they would never catch up before the horses were
running again. Ahead Pug could see the trees of the forest, looming larger with
each passing minute. He could feel the eyes that must be there, watching them,
waiting.
“As soon as we are within bowshot, ride
as fast as you can,” shouted the lieutenant. Pug saw the soldiers pull their
swords and bows out, and drew his own sword. Feeling uncomfortable with the
weapon clutched in his right hand, he rode at a trot toward the trees.
Suddenly the air was filled with arrows.
Pug felt one glance off his helm, but it still snapped his head back and
brought tears to his eyes. He urged his horse ahead blindly, trying to blink
his eyes clear. He had the shield in his left hand and a sword in his right, so
that by the time he blinked enough to be able to see clearly, he found himself
in the woods. His war-horse responded to leg pressure as he moved into the
forest.
A yellow-garbed soldier burst from behind
a tree and aimed a swing at the boy. He caught the sword blow on his shield,
which sent a numbing shock up his left arm. He swung overhand and down at the
soldier, who leaped away, and the blow missed. Pug spurred his horse on, before
the soldier could get in position to swing again. All around, the forest rang
with the sounds of battle. He could barely make out the other horsemen among
the trees.
Several times he rode down Tsurani soldiers
as they tried to block his passage. Once one tried to grab at the reins of the
horse, but Pug sent him reeling with a blow on the potlike helmet. To Pug it
seemed as if they were all engaged in some mad game of hide-and-go-seek, with
foot soldiers jumping out from behind every other tree.
A sharp pain stung Pug on the right
cheek. Feeling with the back of his sword hand as he bounded through the wood,
he felt a wetness, and when he pulled his hand away, he could see blood on his
knuckles. He felt a detached curiosity. He hadn't even heard the arrow that had
stung him.
Twice more he rode down soldiers, the
war-horse knocking them aside. Suddenly he burst out of the forest and was
assaulted by a kaleidoscope of images. He pulled up for a moment and let the
scene register. Less than a hundred yards to the west of where he exited the
woodlands, a great device, some hundred feet in length, with twenty-foot high
poles at each end, stood. Around it were clustered several men, the first
Tsurani Pug had seen who weren't wearing armor. These men wore long black robes
and were completely unarmed. Between the poles a shimmering grey haze like the
one they had seen in Kulgan's room filled the air, blocking out the view of the
area directly behind. From out of the haze a wagon was being pulled by two
grey, squat, six-legged beasts, who were prodded by two soldiers in red armor.
Several more wagons were standing beyond the machines, and a few of the strange
beasts could be seen grazing beyond the wagons.
Beyond the strange device, a mighty camp sprawled across the
meadow, with more tents than Pug could count. Banners of strange design and
gaudy colors fluttered in the wind above them, and the rising smoke of the campfires
stung his nose with acrid pungency as it was carried off in the breeze.
More riders were coming through the
trees, and Pug spurred his horse forward, angling away from the strange device.
The six-legged beasts raised their heads and ambled away from the oncoming
horses, seeming to move with little more than the minimum effort required to
take them out of the path of the riders.
One of the black-robed men ran toward the
riders. He stopped and stood off to one side as they sped past. Pug got a
glimpse of his face, clean shaven, his lips moving and eyes fixed on something
behind the boy. Pug heard a yell and, looking back, saw a rider on the ground,
his horse rooted in place, like a statue. Several guards were rushing over to
subdue the man when the boy turned away.. Once beyond the strange device, he
could see a series of large, brightly colored tents off to the left. Ahead, the
way was clear.
Pug caught sight of Kulgan and reined his
horse to bring himself closer to the magician. Thirty yards to the right, Pug
could see other riders. As they dashed away, Kulgan shouted something at the
boy that he couldn't make out. The magician pointed at the side of his face,
then at Pug, who realized the mage was asking if he was all right. Pug waved
his sword and smiled, and the magician smiled back.
Suddenly, about a hundred yards in front,
a loud buzzing noise filled the air, and a black-robed man appeared, as if from
thin air. Kulgan's horse bore straight for him, but the man had a queer-looking
device in his hand that he pointed at the magician.
The air sizzled with energy. Kulgan's
horse screamed and fell as if poleaxed. The fat magician was tossed over the
horse's head and tucked his shoulder under as he hit the ground. With an
amazing display of agility he rolled up onto his feet and bowled over the
black-robed man.
Pug pulled up in spite of the order to
keep going. He reined his horse around and charged back to find the magician
sitting astride the chest of the smaller man, each grasping the left wrist of
the other with his right hand. Pug could see that they were locked eye to eye
in a contest of wills. Kulgan had explained this strange mental power to Pug
before. It was a way in which a magician could bend the will of another to his
own. It took great concentration and was very dangerous. Pug leaped from his
own mount and rushed over to where the two men were locked in struggle. With
the flat of his sword, he struck the black-robed figure on the temple. The man
slumped unconscious.
Kulgan staggered to his feet. “Thank you,
Pug. I don't think I could have bettered him. I've never encountered such
mental strength.” Kulgan looked to where his horse lay quivering on the ground.
“It's useless.” Turning to Pug, he said, “Listen well, for you'll have to carry
word to Lord Borric. From the speed that wagon was coming through the rift, I
estimate they can bring in several hundred men a day, perhaps a great deal
more. Tell the Duke it would be suicide to try to take the machine. Their
magicians are too powerful. I don't think we can destroy the machine they use
to hold the rift open. If I had time to study it . . . He must call for
reinforcements from Krondor, perhaps from the East.”
Pug grabbed Kulgan by the arm. I can't
remember all that. We'll ride double.”
Kulgan began to protest but was too weak to prevent the boy's
pulling him to where his horse stood. Ignoring Kulgan's objections, he bullied
his master up into the saddle. Pug hesitated a moment, noting the animal's
fatigue, then came to a decision. “With both of us to carry, he'll never make
it, Kulgan,” he shouted as he struck the animal on the flank. “I'll find
another.”
Pug scanned the area as the horse bearing
Kulgan sped away. A riderless mount was wandering about, less than twenty feet
away, but as he approached, the animal bolted. Cursing, Pug turned and was
confronted by the sight of the black-robed Tsurani regaining his feet. The man
appeared confused and weak, and Pug charged him. Only one thought was in Pug's
mind: to capture a prisoner, and, from his appearance, a Tsurani magician in
the bargain. Pug took the magician by surprise, knocking him down.
The man scrambled backward in alarm as
Pug raised his sword threateningly. The man put forth his hand in what Pug took
as a sign of submission, and the boy hesitated. Suddenly a wave of pain passed
through him, and he had to fight to keep his feet. He staggered about and
through the agony saw a familiar figure riding toward him, shouting his name.
Pug shook his head, and suddenly the pain
vanished. Meecham sped toward him, and Pug knew the franklin could carry the
Tsurani to the Duke's camp if Pug could keep him from fleeing. So he spun, all
pain forgotten, and closed upon the still-supine Tsurani. A took of shock
crossed the magician's face when he saw the boy again advancing on him. Pug,
heard Meecham's voice calling his name from behind but didn't take his eyes
from the Tsurani.
Several Tsurani soldiers ran across the
meadow, seeking to aid their fallen magician, but Pug stood only a few feet
away, and Meecham would reach them in a few more moments.
The magician jumped to his feet and
reached into his robe. He pulled out a small device and activated it. A loud
humming came from the object. Pug rushed the man, determined to knock the
device from his hand, whatever it might be. The device hummed louder, and Pug
could hear Meecham again shouting his name as he struck the magician, burying
his shoulder in the man's stomach.
Suddenly the world exploded with white
and blue lights, and Pug felt himself falling through a rainbow of colors into
a pit of darkness.
PUG OPENED HIS eyes. For a moment he
struggled to bring them into focus, for everything in his field of vision
seemed to be flickering. He then came fully awake and realized it was still
night and the flickering came from campfires a short distance from where he
lay. He tried to sit up and found his hands tied behind him. A groan sounded
next to him. In the dim light he could make out the features of a LaMutian horse
soldier lying a few feet away. He was also bound. His face was drawn, and there
was a nasty-looking cut running down from his hairline to his cheekbone, all
crusted over with dried blood.
Pug's attention was distracted by the
sound of voices speaking low, behind him. He rolled over and saw two Tsurani
guards in blue armor standing watch. Several more tied prisoners lay about
between the boy and the two aliens, who were speaking together in their
strange, musical-sounding language. One noticed Pug's movement and said
something to the other, who nodded and quickly hurried off.
In a moment he was back with another
soldier, this one in red-and-yellow armor, with a large crest on his helm, who
ordered the two guards to stand Pug up. He was pulled roughly to his feet, and
the newcomer stood before him and took stock. This man was darkhaired and had
the uptilted, wide-set eyes that Pug had seen before in the field among the
Tsurani dead. His cheekbones were flat, and he had a broad brow, topped by thick
dark hair. In the dim firelight, his skin looked nearly golden in color.
Except for their short stature, most of
the Tsurani soldiers could pass for citizens of many of the nations of
Midkemia, but these golden men, as Pug thought of them, resembled some Keshian
traders Pug had seen in Crydee years before, from the distant trading city of
Shing Lai.
The officer inspected the boy's clothing.
Next he knelt and inspected the boots on Pug's feet. He stood and barked an
order at the soldier who had fetched him, who saluted and turned to Pug. He
seized the bound boy and led him away, on a winding course through the Tsurani
camp.
At the center of the camp, large banners
hung from the cross pieces of standards, all set in a circle around a large
tent. All bore strange designs, creatures of outlandish configuration, depicted
in bold colors. Several had glyphs of an unknown language on them. It was to
this place Pug was half pulled, half dragged, through the hundreds of Tsurani
soldiers who sat quietly polishing their leather armor and making repairs on
weapons. Several watched as he passed, but the camp was free of the usual noise
and bustle Pug was used to in the camp of his own army. There was more than
just the strange and colorful banners to give this place an otherworld feeling.
Pug tried to note the details, so if he could escape and report, he could tell
Duke Borric something useful, but he found his senses betrayed by so many
unfamiliar images. He didn't know what was important in all he saw.
At the entrance of the large tent, the
guard who pulled Pug along was challenged by two others, wearing
black-and-orange armor. A quick exchange of words resulted in the tent flap
being held aside while Pug was thrust through. He fell forward onto a thick
pile of furs and woven mats. From where he lay, Pug could see more banners
hanging on the tent walls. The tent was richly fashioned, with silklike
hangings and thick rugs and pillows.
Hands roughly pulled him upright, and he
could see several men regarding him. All stood dressed in the gaudy armor and
crested helms of the Tsurani officers except for two. They sat upon a raised
dais covered with cushions. The first wore a simple black robe with cowl pulled
back, revealing a thin, pale face and bald pate: a Tsurani magician. The other
wore a rich-looking robe of orange with black trim, cut below knees and elbows,
so that it gave the look of something worn for comfort. From his wiry, muscled
appearance and several visible scars, Pug assumed that this man was a warrior
who had put aside his armor for the night.
The man in black said something in a
highpitched, singsong language to the others. None of the other men said
anything, but the one in the orange robe nodded. The great tent was lit by a
single brazier near where the two robed men sat. The lean, blackrobed one sat
forward, and the light from the brazier, cast upward on his face, giving him a
decidedly demonic look. His words came haltingly, and thick with accent.
“I know only . . . little . . . of your
speech. You understand?”
Pug nodded, his heart pounding while his
mind worked furiously. Kulgan's training was coming into play. First he calmed
himself, clearing the fog that had gripped his mind. Then he extended every
sense, automatically, taking in every scrap of information - available, seeking
any useful bit of knowledge that might improve his chances of survival. The
soldier nearest the door seemed to be relaxing, his left arm behind his head as
he lay back on a pile of cushions, his attention only half focused on the
captive. But Pug noticed that his other hand was never more than an inch from
the hilt of a wicked-looking dagger at his belt. A brief gleam of light on
lacquer revealed the presence of another dagger hilt, half protruding from a
pillow at the right elbow of the man in orange.
The man in black said slowly, “Listen,
for I tell you something. Then you asked questions. If you lie, you die.
Slowly. Understand?” Pug nodded. There was no doubt in his mind.
“This man,” said the black-robed one,
pointing to the man in the short orange robe, “is a . . . great man. He is . .
. high man. He is . . .” The man used a word Pug didn't understand. When Pug
shook his head, the magician said, “He family great . . . Minwanabi. He second
to . . .” He fumbled for a term, then moved his hand in a circle, as if
indicating all the men in the tent, officers from their proud plumes, “. . .
man who lead.”
Pug nodded and softly said, “Your lord?”'
The magician's eyes narrowed, as if he
were about to object to Pug's speaking out of turn, but instead he paused, then
said, “Yes. Lord of War. It is that one's will that we are here. This one is
second to Lord of War.” He pointed to the man in orange, who looked on impassively.
“You are nothing to this man.” It was obvious the man was feeling frustration
in his inability to convey what he wished. It was plain this lord was something
special by the lights of his own people, and the man translating was trying to
impress this upon Pug.
The lord cut the translator off and said
several things, then nodded toward Pug. The bald magician bobbed his head in
agreement, then turned his attention toward Pug. “You are lord?”
Pug looked startled, then stammered out a
negative. The magician nodded, translated, and was given instruction by the
lord. He turned back to Pug. “You weir cloth like lord, true?”
Pug nodded. His tunic was of a finer
fabric than the homespun of the common soldiers. He tried to explain his
position as a member in the Duke's court. After several attempts he resigned
himself to the presumption they made of his being some sort of highly placed
servant.
The magician picked up a small device and
held it out to Pug. Hesitating for a moment, the boy reached out and took it.
It was a cube of some crystallike material, with veins of pink running
throughout. After a moment in his hand, it took on a glow, softly pink. The man
in orange gave an order, and the magician translated. “This lord says, how many
men along pass to . . .” He faltered and pointed.
Pug had no idea of where he was, or what
direction was being pointed to. “I don't know where I am,” he said. “I was
unconscious when I was brought here.”
The magician sat in thought for a moment,
then stood. “That way,” he said, pointing at a right angle to the direction he
had just indicated, “'is tall mountain, larger than others. That way,” he moved
his hand a little, “in sky, is five fires, like so.” His hands traced a
pattern. After a moment Pug understood. The man had pointed to where Stone
Mountain ay and where the constellation called the Five Jewels hung in the sky.
He was in the valley they had raided. The pass indicated was the one used as an
escape route.
“I . . . really, I don't know how many.”
The magician looked closely at the cube
in Pug's hand. It continued to glow in soft pink tones. “Good, you tell truth.”
Pug then understood that he held some
sort of device that would inform his captives if he tried to deceive them. He
felt black despair wash over him. He knew that any survival hopes he
entertained were going to involve some manner of betraying his homeland.
The magician asked several questions
about the nature of the force outside the valley. When most went unanswered,
for Pug had not been privy to meetings on strategy matters, the question
changed to a more general nature, about common things in Midkemia, but which
seemed to hold a fascination for the Tsurani.
The interview continued for several hours.
Pug began to feel faint on several occasions as the pressure of the situation
combined with his general exhaustion. He was given a strong drink one of these
times, which restored his energy for a while but left him lightheaded.
He answered every question. Several times
he got around the truth device by telling only some of the information
requested, not volunteering anything. On several of these occasions, he could
tell both the lord and magician were nettled by their inability to deal with
answers that were incomplete or complex. Finally the lord indicated the
interview was over, and Pug was dragged outside. The magician followed.
Outside the tent the magician stood
before Pug. “My lord says, 'I think this servant' “-he pointed at Pug's chest”
'he is . . .' “ He groped for a word. “'He is clever.' My lord does not mind
clever servants, for they work well. But he thinks you are too clever. He says
to tell you to be careful, for you are now slave. Clever slave may live long
time. Too clever slave, dies quickly if . . .” Again the pause. Then a broad
smile crossed the magician's face. “If he is fortun . . . fortunate. Yes . . .
that is the word.” He rolled the word around his mouth one more time, as if
savoring the taste of it. “Fortunate.”
Pug
was led back to the holding area and left with his own thoughts. He looked
around and saw that a few other captives were awake. Most looked confused and
dispirited. One openly wept. Pug turned his eyes skyward and saw the pink edge
along the mountains in the east, heralding the coming dawn.
The rain was
unceasing.
Huddled near the mouth of the cave, a
group of dwarves sat around a small cook fire, the gloom of the day reflected
upon their faces. Dolgan puffed upon his pipe, and the others were working on
their armor, repairing cuts and breaks in leather, cleaning and oiling metal. A
pot of stew simmered on the fire.
Tomas sat at the back of the cave, his
sword set across his knees. He looked blankly past the others, his eyes focused
on some point far beyond them.
Seven times the dwarves of the Grey
Towers had ventured out against the invaders, and seven times they had
inflicted heavy losses. But each time it was clear that the Tsurani's numbers
were undiminished. Many dwarves were missing now, their lives bought at a dear
price to the enemy, but dearer to the families of the Grey Towers. The
long-lived dwarves had fewer children, years further apart, than did humans.
Each loss diminished dwarvenkind at a much more damaging cost than could have
been imagined by the humans.
Each time the dwarves had gathered and
attacked through the mines into the valley, Tomas had been in the van. His
golden helm would be a signal beacon for the dwarves. His golden broadsword
would arc above the fray, then swing down to take its toll from the enemy. In
battle the keep boy was transformed into a figure of power, a fighting hero
whose presence on the field struck awe and fear into the Tsurani. Had he
possessed any doubt about the magical nature of his arms and armor after
driving off the wraith, they were dispelled the first time he wore them into
battle.
They had gathered thirty fighting dwarves
from Caldara and ventured through the mines to an entrance in the south portion
of the captured valley. They surprised a Tsurani patrol not far from the mines
and slew them. But during the course of the fighting, Tomas had been cut off
from the dwarves by three Tsurani warriors. As they bore down on him, their
swords raised high overhead, he felt something take hold of him. Darting
between two of them, like some maddened acrobat, he had slain both with a
single stroke from one side to the other. The third had been taken quickly from
behind before he could recover from the sudden move.
After the fray, Tomas had been filled with an elation new to him,
and somehow frightening as well. All the way back from the battle, he had felt
suffused with an unknown energy.
Each subsequent battle had gained him the
same power and skill of arms. But the elation had become something more urgent,
and the last two times the visions had begun. Now for the first time the
visions were coming unbidden. They were transparent, like an image laid upon
another.
He could see the dwarves through it, as well
as the forest beyond. But upon them played a scene of people long dead and
places vanished from the memories of the living. Halls decked with golden
trappings were lit with torches that threw dancing light from crystal set upon
tables. Goblets that never knew human touch were raised to lips that curved in
unfamiliar smiles. Great lords of some long-dead race supped at banquet before
his eyes. Strange they were, yet also familiar. Humanlike, but with elven ears
and eyes. Tall like the elvenfolk, but broader of shoulder and thicker of arm.
The women were beautiful, but in alien ways.
The dream took shape and substance, more
vivid than any he had experienced so far. Tomas strained to hear the faint
laughter, the sound of alien music, and the spoken words of these people.
He was ripped from his reverie by
Dolgan's voice. “Will you take some food, laddie?” He could answer with only a
part of his awareness, as he rose and crossed the space between them to take
the offered bowl of meat stew. When his hand touched the bowl, the vision
vanished, and he shook his head to clear it.
“Are
you all right, Tomas?”
Slowly sitting, Tomas looked at his
friend for a moment. “I'm not sure,” he said hesitantly. “There is something. I
. . . I'm not really sure. Just tired, I guess.
Dolgan looked at the boy. The ravages of
battle were showing on his young face. Already he looked less the boy and more
the man. But beyond the normal hardening of character expected from battle,
something else was occurring in Tomas. Dolgan had not as yet decided if the
change was fully for good or ill -- or if it could even be considered in those
terms. Six months of watching Tomas was not long enough to come to any sort of
conclusion.
Since donning the dragon's gift armor,
Tomas had become a fighter of legendary capabilities. And the boy . . . no, the
young man, was taking on weight, even though food was often scarce. It was as
if something were acting to bring him to a growth sufficient to fit the cut of
the armor. And his features were gaining a strange cast. His nose had taken on
a slightly more angular shape, more finely chiseled than before. His brows had
become more arched, his eyes deeper set. He was still Tomas, but Tomas with a
slight change in appearance, as if wearing someone else's expression.
Dolgan pulled long on his pipe and looked
at the white tabard Tomas wore. Seven times in battle, and free from stain.
Dirt, blood, and all other manner of contamination were refused purchase in its
fabric. And the device of the golden dragon gleamed as brightly as when they
had first found it. So it was also with the shield he wore in battle. Many
times struck, still it was free of any scar. The dwarves were circumspect in
this matter, for their race had long ago used magic in the fashioning of
weapons of power. But this was something else. They would wait and see what it
brought before they would judge.
As they finished their meager meal, one
of the guards on the edge of camp came into the clearing before the cave.
“Someone comes.”
The dwarves quickly armed themselves and
stood ready. Instead of the strangely armored Tsurani soldiers, a single man
dressed in the dark grey cloak and tunic of a Natalese Ranger appeared. He
walked directly into the center of the clearing and announced in a voice hoarse
from days running through wet forests, “Hail, Dolgan of the Grey Towers.”
Dolgan stepped forward. “Hail, Grimsworth
of Natal.”
The rangers were serving as scouts and
runners since the invaders had taken the Free City of Walinor. The man walked
into the cave mouth and sat down. He was given a bowl of stew, and Dolgan
asked, “What news?”
“None good, I'm afraid,” he said, between
mouthfuls of stew. “The invaders hold a hard front from out of the valley,
northeast toward LaMut. Walinor has been reinforced with fresh troops from
their homeland and stands like a knife between the Free Cities and the Kingdom.
They had thrice raided the main camp of the Kingdom's host when I left two
weeks ago, probably again since. They harry patrols from Crydee. I am to tell
you that it is believed they will start a drive into your area soon.”
Dolgan looked perplexed. “Why do the
dukes think that? Our lookouts have seen no increase in the aliens' activity in
these parts. Every patrol they send out we attack. If anything, they seem to be
leaving us alone.”
“I am not sure. I heard that the magician
Kulgan thinks the Tsurani seek metals from your mines, though why I do not
know. In any event, this is what the dukes have said. They think there will be
an assault on the mine entrances in the valley. I am to tell you, that new
Tsurani troops may be coming into the southern end of the valley, for there has
been no new major assault in the north, only the small raids.”
“Now you must I do what you think is
best.” So saying, he turned his full attention to the stew.
Dolgan thought. “Tell me, Grimsworth,
what news of the elvenfolk?”
“Little. Since the aliens have invaded
the southern part of the elven forests, we are cut off. The last elven runner
came through over a week before I left. At last word, they had stopped the
barbarians at the fords of the river Crydee where it passes through the forest.
“There are also rumors of alien creatures
fighting with the invaders. But as far as I know, only a few burned-out village
folk have seen these creatures, so I wouldn't place too much stock in what they
say.”
“There is one interesting piece of news,
though. It seems a patrol from Yabon made an unusually broad sweep to the edge
of the Lake of the Sky. On the shore they found what was left of some Tsurani
and a band of goblins raiding south from the Northlands. At least we don't have
to worry about the northern borders. Perhaps we could arrange for them to
battle each other for a while and leave us alone.”
“Or take up common cause against us,”
said Dolgan. “Still, I think that unlikely, as the goblins tend to kill first
and negotiate later.”
Grimsworth chuckled deeply. “It is
somehow meet that these two bloody-handed folk should run across one another.”
Dolgan nodded. He hoped Grimsworth
correct, but was disquieted by the thought of the Nations of the North -- as
the dwarves thought of the Northlands -- joining the fray.
Grimsworth wiped his mouth with the back
of his hand. “I will stay this night only, for if I am to pass safely through
their lines, I must move quickly. They step up their patrols to the coast,
cutting off Crydee for days at a time. I will spend some time there, then start
the long run for the dukes' camp.”
“Will you return?” asked Dolgan.
The ranger smiled, his grin showing up
brightly against his dark skin. “Perhaps, if the gods are obliging. If not,
then one of my brothers. It might be that you'll see Long Leon, for he was sent
to Elvandar and, if he is a'right, may be bound here with missives from the
Lady Aglaranna. It would be good to know how the elvenfolk fare.” Tomas's head
came up from his musing at the mention of the Elf Queen's name.
Dolgan puffed on his pipe and nodded.
Grimsworth turned to Tomas and spoke directly to him for the first time. “I
bring you a message from Lord Borric, Tomas.” It had been Grimsworth who
carried the first messages from the dwarves along with the news that Tomas was
alive and well. Tomas had wanted to return to the Kingdom forces with
Grimsworth, but the Natalese Ranger had refused to have him along, citing his
need to travel fast and quietly. Grimsworth continued his message. “The Duke
rejoices at your good fortune and your good health. But he sends grave news as
well. Your friend Pug fell in the first raid into the Tsurani camp and was
taken by them. Lord Borric shares your loss.”
Tomas stood without a word and moved deep
into the cave. He sat in the rear, for a few moments as still as the rock
around him, then a faint trembling started in his shoulders. It grew in
severity until he shook violently, teeth chattering as if from bitter cold.
Then tears came unbidden to his cheeks, and he felt a hot pain rush up from his
bowels to his throat, constricting his chest. Without a sound he gasped for
breath, and great silent sobs shook him. As the pain grew near-unbearable, a
seed of cold fury formed in the center of his being, pushing upward, displacing
the hot pain of grief.
Dolgan, Grimsworth, and the rest looked
up when Tomas reentered the light of the fire. “Would you please tell the Duke
that I thank him for thinking of me?” he asked the ranger.
Grimsworth nodded. “Yes, I will, lad. I
think it would be a'right for you to make the run to Crydee, if you wish to
return home. I'm sure Prince Lyam could use your sword.”
Tomas thought. It would be good to see
home again, but at the keep he would be just another apprentice, even if he did
bear arms. They would let him fight if the keep was attacked, but they
certainly wouldn't let him participate in raids.
“Thank you, Grimsworth, but I will
remain. There is much yet to be done here, and I would be a part of it. I would
ask you to give word to my mother and father that I am well enough and think of
them.” Sitting down, he added, “If it is my destiny to return to Crydee, I
shall.”
Grimsworth looked hard at Tomas, seemed
about to speak, then noticed a slight shake of Dolgan's head. More than any
other humans in the West, the Rangers of Natal were sensitive to the ways of
the elves and dwarves. Something was occurring here that Dolgan thought best
left unexplored for the time being, and Grimsworth would bow before the dwarven
chief's wisdom.
As
soon as the meal was finished, guards were posted, and the rest made ready for
sleep. As the fire died down, Tomas could hear the faint sounds of inhuman
music and again saw the shadows dance. Before sleep claimed him, he plainly saw
one figure stand apart from the rest, a tall warrior, cruel of face and
powerful in countenance, dressed in a white tabard emblazoned with a golden
dragon.
TOMAS STOOD WITH his back pressed against
the wall of the passage. He smiled, a cruel and terrible smile. His eyes were
wide, whites vivid around pale blue irises. His body was nearly rigid as he
stood motionless. His fingers clenched and unclenched on the hilt of his sword
of white and gold.
Images shimmered before his eyes: tall,
graceful people who rode on the backs of dragons and lived in halls deep in the
earth. Music could be faintly heard in his mind's ear, and strange tongues. The
long-dead race called to him, a mighty race who had fashioned this armor, never
meant for human use.
More and more the visions came. He could
keep his mind free of them most times, but when he felt the battle lust rise,
as it did now, the images took on dimension, color, and sound. He would strain
to hear the words. They came faintly, and he could almost understand them.
He shook his head, bringing himself back
to the present. He looked around the dark passage, no longer surprised at his
ability to see in the dark. He signaled across the intersecting tunnel to
Dolgan, who stood quietly waiting in position with his men forty feet away and
acknowledged him with a wave. On each side of the large tunnel sixty dwarves
waited to spring the trap. They waited for the handful of dwarves who were
running before a Tsurani force, leading the enemy into the trap.
The sound of footfalls pounding down the
tunnel alerted them. In a moment it was joined by the sounds of clashing arms.
Tomas tensed. Several dwarves came into view, moving backward as they fought a
rearward action. Passing the side tunnels, the fighting dwarves gave no
indication they were aware of their brethren waiting on either side.
As soon as the first Tsurani warriors
were past, Tomas cried, “Now!” and leaped forward. Suddenly the tunnel was
filled with turning, slashing bodies. The Tsurani were mostly armed with
broadswords, ill fitted for close quarters, and the dwarves wielded hand axes
and hammers with expertise. Tomas laid about himself, and several bodies fell.
The flickering Tsurani torches threw mad, dancing shadows high on the passage
walls, creating confusion for the eye.
A shout from the rear of the Tsurani
force sounded, and the aliens began to back down the tunnel. Those with shields
came to the fore, forming a wall over which the swordsmen could strike. The
dwarves were unable to reach far enough to do any damage. Each time a dwarf
attacked, the shield wall would stand, and the attacker would be answered by
sword blows from behind the shield. In short spurts the enemy backed away.
Tomas moved to the fore, since his reach
was long enough to strike at the shield holders. He felled two, but as quickly
as each dropped, another took his place. Still the dwarves pressed them and
they retreated.
They reached a glory hole, entering it at
the lowest level, and the Tsurani rapidly took position in the center of the
great cavern, forming a rough circle of shields. The dwarves paused for a
moment, then charged the position.
A faint flicker of movement caught
Tomas's eye, and he looked up to one of the ledges above. In the darkness of
the mine it was impossible to see anything clearly, but a sudden feeling
alerted him. “Look to the rear!” he shouted.
Most of the dwarves had broken through
the shield wall and were too busy to heed him, but a few close by stopped their
attack and looked up. One standing next to Tomas cried, “From above!”
Black shapes came pouring from above,
seeming to crawl down the face of the rock. Other, human, shapes came running
down the paths from the higher levels. Lights appeared above as Tsurani warriors
on the upper levels opened shuttered lamps and lit torches.
Tomas stopped in shock. Directly behind
the few surviving Tsurani in the center of the cavern he could see creatures
entering from every opening above, like a herd of ants, which they closely
resembled. Unlike ants, though, they were upright from the center of their
bodies, with humanlike arms bearing weapons. Their faces, insectlike, had large
multifaceted eyes but very humanlike mouths. They moved with incredible speed,
dodging forward to strike at the dwarves, who, surprised though they were,
responded without hesitation, and the battle was joined.
The fray increased in intensity, and
several times Tomas faced two opponents, Tsurani, or monster, or both. The
creatures were obviously intelligent, for they fought in an organized manner,
and their inhuman voices could be heard crying out in the Tsurani tongue.
Tomas looked up after dispatching one of
the creatures and saw a new influx of warriors from above. “To me! To me”' he
shouted, and the dwarves started fighting toward him. When most were close by,
Dolgan could be heard shouting, “Back, fall back! They are too many.
The dwarves slowly began to move toward
the tunnel they had entered from, with its relative safety. There they could
face a smaller number of creatures and Tsurani and, they hoped, lose them in
the mines. Seeing the dwarves moving back, the Tsurani and their allies pressed
the attack. Tomas saw a large number of the creatures interpose themselves
between the dwarves and the escape route. He sprang forward and heard a strange
war cry escape from his lips, words he didn't understand. His golden sword
flashed, and with a shriek one of the strange creatures fell. Another wielded a
broadsword at him, and he caught it on his shield. A lesser being's arm would
have been broken, but the blow rang out on the white shield and the creature
backed away, then struck again.
Again he blocked it, and with a looping
overhand swing struck through its neck, severing head from body. It stiffened
for a moment, then collapsed at his feet. He leaped over its fallen body and
landed before three startled Tsurani warriors. One held two lanterns and the
others were armed. Before the man with the lanterns could drop them, Tomas jumped
forward and struck down the other two men. The third died trying to draw his
sword.
Letting his shield hang on his arm, Tomas
reached down and grabbed a lantern. He turned and saw the dwarves scrambling
over the bodies of the fallen creatures he had killed. Several carried wounded
comrades. A handful of dwarves, with Dolgan at their head, held their enemies
at bay while the others made good their escape. The dwarves who carried wounded
hurried past Tomas.
One, who had stayed behind in the tunnel
during the fighting, hastened forward when his comrades were obviously in
retreat. Instead of weapons he carried two bulging skins filled with liquid.
The rear guard was pressed back toward
the escape tunnel, and twice soldiers tried to circle to cut them off. Both
times Tomas struck out, and they fell. When Dolgan and his fighters stood atop
the bodies of the fallen monsters, Tomas yelled, “Be ready to jump.”
He took the two heavy skins from the
dwarf. “Now!” he shouted. Dolgan and the others leaped back, and the Tsurani
were left standing on the other side of the corpses. Without hesitation, the
dwarves sped up the tunnel while Tomas threw the skins at the bodies. They had
been carried carefully, for they were fashioned to rupture on impact. Both
contained naphtha, which the dwarves had gathered from deep black pools under
the mountain. It would burn without a wick, as oil would not.
Tomas raised the lantern and smashed it
in the midst of the pools of volatile liquid. The Tsurani, hesitating only
briefly, were moving forward as the lantern burst. White heat exploded in the
tunnel as the naphtha burst into flame. The dwarves, blinded, could hear the
screams of the Tsurani who had been caught. When their vision recovered, they
could see a single figure striding down the tunnel. Tomas appeared black,
outlined against the near-white flames.
When he reached them, Dolgan said,
“They'll be upon us when the flames die.”
They quickly made their way through a
series of tunnels and headed back toward the exit on the western side of the
mountains. After they had traveled a short distance, Dolgan halted the party.
He and several others stood still, listening to the silence in the tunnels. One
dropped to the floor and placed his ear on the ground, but immediately jumped
to his feet. “They come! By the sound, hundreds of them, and the creatures too.
They must be mounting a major offensive.”
Dolgan took stock. Of the hundred and
fifty dwarves who had begun the ambush, only seventy or so stood here, and of
these, twelve were injured. It could be hoped that others had escaped through
other passages, but for the moment they were all in danger.
Dolgan acted quickly. “We must make for
the forest.” He started to trot along with the others following behind.
Tomas ran easily, but his mind reeled
with images. In the heat of battle they assaulted him, more vivid and clear
than before. He could see the bodies of his fallen enemies, yet they looked
nothing like the Tsurani. He could taste the blood of the fallen, the magic
energies that came with him as he drank from their open wounds in the ceremony
of victory. He shook his head to clear the images. What ceremony? he wondered.
Dolgan spoke, and Tomas forced his
attention to the dwarfs words. “We must find another stronghold,” he said as
they ran. “Perhaps it would be best to try for Stone Mountain. Our villages
here are safe, but we have no base to fight from, for I think the Tsurani will
have control of these mines soon. Those creatures of theirs fight well in the
dark, and if they have many of them, they can ferret us out of the deeper
passages.”
Tomas nodded, unable to speak. He was
burning inside, a cold fire of hatred for these Tsurani. They had savaged his
homeland and taken his brother in all but name, and now many dwarven friends
lay dead under the mountain because of them. His face was grim as he made a
silent vow to destroy these invaders, whatever the cost.
THEY MOVED CAUTIOUSLY through the trees,
watching for signs of the Tsurani. Three times in six days they had skirmished,
and now the dwarves numbered fifty-two. The more seriously wounded had been
carried to the relative safety of the high villages, where the Tsurani were
unlikely to follow.
Now they approached the southern part of
the elven forests. At first they had tried to turn eastward toward the pass,
seeking a way toward Stone Mountain. The route was thick with Tsurani camps and
patrols, and they had been constantly turned northward. Finally it had been
decided to try for Elvandar, where they could find rest from the constant
flight.
A scout returned from his position twenty
yards ahead and said softly, “A camp, at the ford.”
Dolgan considered. The dwarves were not
swimmers, and they would need to cross at a ford. It was likely the Tsurani
would hold all the fords on this side. They would have to find a place free of
guards, if one existed.
Tomas looked around. It was nearly
nightfall, and if they were to sneak across the river this close to the Tsurani
lines, it would best be done in the dark. Tomas whispered this to Dolgan, who
nodded. He signaled the guard to head off to the west of the espied camp, to
find a likely looking place to hole up.
After a short wait the guide returned
with word of a thicket facing a hollowed rock, where they could wait for
nightfall. They hurried to the place and found a boulder of granite extruding
from the ground, twelve feet tall, and broadening to a base twenty-five or
thirty feet across. When they pulled back the brush, they found a hollow in
which they could tightly fit. It was only twenty feet across, but it reached
back under the rock shelf for over forty feet, angling down. When they were all
safely tucked in, Dolgan observed, “This must have been under the river at one
time -- see how it is worn smooth on the underside. It is cramped, but we
should be safe for a bit.”
Tomas barely heard, for he was once again
fighting his battle against the images, the waking dreams, as he thought of
them. He closed his eyes, and again the visions came, and the faint music.
THE
VICTORY HAD been swift, but Ashen-Shugar brooded. Something troubled the Ruler
of the Eagles' Reaches. The blood of Algon-Kokoon, Tyrant of Wind Valley, was
still salty upon his lips, and his consorts were now Ashen-Shugar's. Still
there was something lacking.
He studied the moredhel dancers, moving
in perfect time with the music for his amusement. That was as it should be. No,
the lack was felt deep within Ashen-Shugar.
Alengwan, one whom the elves called their
Princess, and his latest favorite, sat on the floor beside his throne, awaiting
his pleasure. He barely noticed her lovely face and her supple body, clothed in
silken garments that served to accent her beauty rather than conceal it.
“'Art thou troubled, master?” she asked
faintly, her terror of him as thinly veiled as her body.
He glanced away. She had glimpsed his
uncertainty; that earned her death, but he would kill her later. Appetites of
the flesh had fled lately, both the pleasure of the bed and that of killing.
Now he thought upon his nameless feeling, that phantom emotion so strange
within. Ashen-Shugar raised his hand, and the dancers were on the floor,
foreheads pressed to the stone. The musicians had ceased playing in midnote, it
seemed, and the cavern was silent. With a flickering of his hand he dismissed
them, and they fled out of the great hall, past the mighty golden dragon,
Shuruga, who patiently awaited his master. . . .
“TOMAS,” came the voice.
Tomas's eyes opened with a snap. Dolgan
had his hand upon the young man's arm. “It is time. Night has fallen. You've
been asleep, laddie.”
Tomas shook his head to clear it, and the
lingering images fled. He felt a churning in his stomach as the last flickering
vision of a warrior in white and gold standing over the bloody body of an elven
princess vanished.
With the others, he crawled out from
under the overhanging rock, and they set out once more toward the river. The forest
was silent, even the night birds seemingly cautious about revealing their
whereabouts.
They reached the river without incident,
save that they had to lie hidden while a patrol of Tsurani passed. They
followed the river, with a scout in front. After a few minutes, the scout
returned. “A sandbar crosses the river.”
Dolgan nodded; the dwarves moved quietly
forward and entered the water in single file. Tomas waited with Dolgan while
the others crossed. When the last dwarf entered the water, an inquiring shout
sounded from farther up the bank. The dwarves froze. Tomas moved quickly
forward and surprised a Tsurani guard who was trying to peer through the gloom.
The man cried out as he was felled, and shouting erupted a short way off.
Tomas saw lantern light rapidly
approaching him, turned, and ran. He found Dolgan waiting on the bank and
shouted, “Fly! They are upon us.”
Several dwarves stood indecisively as
Tomas and Dolgan splashed into the river. The water was cold, moving rapidly
over the sandbar. Tomas had to steady himself as he waded through. The water
was only waist deep for him, but the dwarves were covered nearly to their
chins. They would never be able to fight in the river.
As the first Tsurani guards leaped into
the water, Tomas turned to hold them off while the dwarves made good their
escape. Two Tsurani attacked, and he struck them both down. Several more jumped
into the river, and he had only a brief moment to see to the dwarves. They were
almost at the opposite bank, and he caught sight of Dolgan, helpless
frustration clearly marked on his face in the Tsurani lamplight.
Tomas struck out again at the Tsurani
soldiers. Four or five were trying to surround him, and the best he could
manage was to keep them at bay. Each time he tried for a kill, he would leave
himself open from a different quarter.
The sound of new voices told him it was
only a matter of moments before he would be overwhelmed. He vowed to make them
pay dearly and lashed out at one man, splitting his shield and breaking his
arm. The man went down with a cry.
Tomas barely caught an answering blow on
his shield when a whistling sound sped past his ear, and a Tsurani guard fell
screaming, a long arrow protruding from his chest. The air was at once full of
arrows. Several more Tsurani fell, and the rest pulled back. Every soldier in
the water died before he could reach the shore.
A voice called out, “Quickly, man. They
will answer in kind.” As if to demonstrate the truth of the warning, an arrow
sped past Tomas's face from the other direction. He hurried toward the safety
of the opposite bank. A Tsurani arrow struck him in the helm, and he stumbled.
As he righted himself, another took him in the leg. He pitched forward and felt
the sandy soil of the riverbank below him. Hands reached down and pulled him
unceremoniously along.
A dizzy, swimming sensation swept over
him, and he heard a voice say, “They poison their arrows. We must . . .” The
rest trailed away into blackness.
TOMAS OPENED His eyes. For a moment he
had no idea of where he was. He felt light-headed and his mouth was dry. A face
loomed over him, and a hand lifted his head as water was placed at his lips. He
drank deeply, feeling better afterward. He turned his head a little and saw two
men sitting close by. For a moment he feared he had been captured, but then he
saw that these men wore dark green leather tunics.
“You have been very ill,” said the one
who had given him water. Tomas then realized these men were elves.
“Dolgan?” he croaked.
“The dwarves have been taken to council
with our mistress. We could not chance moving you, for fear of the poison. The
outworlders have a venom unknown to us, which kills rapidly. We treat it as
best we can, but those wounded die as often as not.”
He felt his strength returning slowly.
“How long?”
“Three days. You have hovered near death
since we fished you from the river. We carried you as far as we dared.”
Tomas looked around and saw that he had been
undressed and was lying under a shelter fashioned from tree branches, a blanket
over him. He smelled food cooking over a fire and saw the pot the savory aroma
came from. His host noticed and signaled for a bowl to be brought over.
Tomas sat up, and his head swam for a
moment. He was given a large piece of bread and used it in place of a spoon.
The food was delicious, and every bite seemed to fill him with increasing
strength. As he ate, he took stock of the others sitting nearby. The two silent
elves regarded him with blank expressions. Only the speaker showed any signs of
hospitality.
Tomas looked at him and said, “What of
the enemy?”
The elf smiled. “The outworlders still
fear to cross the river. Here our magic is stronger, and they find themselves
lost and confused. No outworlder has reached our shore and returned to the
other side.”
Tomas nodded. When he finished eating, he
felt surprisingly well. He tried to stand and found he was only a little shaky.
After a few steps, he could feel the strength returning to his limbs, and that
his leg was already healed. He spent a few minutes stretching and working out
the stiffness of three days sleeping on the ground, then dressed.
“You're Prince Calin. I remember you from
the Duke's court.”
Calin smiled in return. “And I you, Tomas
of Crydee, though you have changed much in a year's time. These others are
Galain - and Algavins. If you feel up to it, we can rejoin your friends at the
court of the Queen.”
Tomas smiled. “Let's go.”
They broke camp and set out. At first
they moved slowly, giving Tomas plenty of time to gain his wind, but after a
while it was evident he was remarkably fit in light of his recent brush with
death.
Soon the four figures were running through
the trees. Tomas, in spite of his armor, kept pace. His hosts glanced
questioningly at each other.
They ran most of the afternoon before
stopping. Tomas looked around the forest and said, “What a wonderful place.”
Galain said, “Most of your race would
disagree, man. They find the forest frightening, full of strange shapes and
fearful sounds.”
Tomas laughed. “Most men lack
imagination, or possess too much. The forest is quiet and peaceful. It is the
most peaceful place I think I have known.”
The elves said nothing, but a look of
mild surprise crossed Calin's face. “We had best continue, if we are to reach
Elvandar before dark.”
As night fell, they reached a giant
clearing. Tomas stopped and stood rooted by the sight before him. Across the
clearing a huge city of tree's rose upward. Gigantic trees, dwarfing any oaks
imagined, stood together. They were linked by gracefully arching bridges of
branches, flat across the tops, on which elves could be seen crossing from bole
to bole. Tomas looked up and saw the trunks rise until they were lost in a sea
of leaves and branches. The leaves were deep green, but here and there a tree
with golden, silver, or even white foliage could be seen; sparkling with
lights. A soft glow permeated the entire area, and Tomas wondered if it ever
became truly dark here.
Calin placed his hand on Tomas's shoulder
and simply said, “Elvandar.”
They hurried across the clearing, and
Tomas could see the elven tree city was even larger than he had first imagined.
It spread away on all sides and must have been over a mile across. Tomas felt a
thrill of wonder at this magic place, a singular exaltation.
They reached a stairway, carved into the
side of a tree that wound its way upward, into the branches. They started up
the steps, and Tomas again felt a sensation of joy, as if the mad frenzy that
filled him during a battle had a harmonious aspect of gentler nature.
Upward they climbed, and as they passed
the large branches that served as roadways for the elves, Tomas could see elven
men and women on all sides. Many of the men wore fighting leather like his
guides, but many others wore long, graceful robes or tunics of bright and .rich
colors. The women were all beautiful, with their hair worn long and down,
unlike the ladies of the Duke's court. Many had jewels woven into their tresses
that sparkled when they passed. All were tall and graceful.
They reached a gigantic branch and left
the stairs. Calin began to warn him about not looking down, for he knew humans
had difficulty on the high pathways, but Tomas stood near the edge, looking
down with no sign of discomfort or vertigo.
“This is a marvelous place,” he said. The
three elves exchanged questioning glances, but no words were spoken.
They set off again, and when they came to
an intersection of branches, the two elves turned off the path, leaving Tomas
and Calin to travel alone. Deeper and deeper they moved, Tomas as surefooted on
the branch road as the elf, until they reached a large opening. Here a circle
of trees formed a central court for the Elf Queen. A hundred branches met and
merged into a huge platform. Aglaranna was sitting upon a wooden throne,
surrounded by her court. A single human, in the grey of a Natalese Ranger,
stood near the Queen, his black skin gleaming in the night glow. He was the
tallest man Tomas had ever seen, and the young man from Crydee knew this must
be Long Leon, the ranger Grimsworth had spoken of.
Calin led Tomas into the center of the
clearing and presented him to Queen Aglaranna. She showed slight surprise as
she saw the figure of the young man in white and gold, but quickly composed her
features. In her rich voice she welcomed Tomas to Elvandar, and bade him stay
as long as he wished.
The court adjourned, and Dolgan came to where Tomas stood. “Well,
laddie, I am glad to see you recovered. It was an undecided issue when we left
you. I hated to do so, but I think you understand. I was in need of getting
word on the fighting near Stone Mountain.”
Tomas
nodded. “I understand. What news?”
Dolgan shook his head. “Bad, I fear. We
are cut off from our brethren. I think we will be staying with the elvenfolk
for a while, and I have little love for these heights.”
Tomas broke into open laughter at that.
Dolgan smiled, for it was the first time since the boy had donned the dragon's
armor he had heard the sound.
Wagons groaned
under heavy loads.
Whips cracked and wheels creaked as
lumbering oxen pulled their burdens down the road toward the beach. Arutha,
Fannon, and Lyam rode before soldiers protecting the wagons traveling between
the castle and the shore. Behind the wagons a ragged crowd of townspeople
followed. Many carried bundles or pulled carts, following the Duke's sons,
toward the waiting ships.
They turned down the road that split off
from the town road, and Arutha's gaze swept over the signs of destruction. The
once-thriving town of Crydee was now covered in an acrid blue haze. The sounds
of hammering and sawing rang through the morning air as workmen labored to
repair what they could of the damage.
The Tsurani had raided at sundown two
days before, racing through the town, overwhelming the few guards at their
posts before an alarm was raised by terrified women, old men, and children. The
aliens had run riot through the town, not pausing until they reached dockside,
where they had fired three ships, heavily damaging two. The damaged ships were
already limping toward Carse, while the undamaged ships in the harbor had moved
down the coast to their present location, north of Sailor's Grief.
The Tsurani had put most of the buildings
near the quay to the torch, but while heavily damaged, they were reparable. The
fire had spread into the heart of town, resulting in the heaviest loss there.
The Hall of the Craftmasters, the two inns, and dozens of lesser buildings were
now only smoldering ruins. Blackened timbers, cracked roof tiles, and scorched
stones marked their locations. Fully one third of Crydee had burned before the
fire had been brought under control.
Arutha had stood on the wall, watching
the hellish glow reflected on the clouds above the town as the flames spread.
Then at first light he had led the garrison out, finding the Tsurani already
vanished into the forests.
Arutha still chafed at the memory. Fannon
had advised Lyam not to allow the garrison out until dawn -- fearing it was a
ruse to get the castle gates open or to lure the garrison into the woods where
a larger force waited in ambush -- and Lyam had acceded to the old
Swordmaster's request. Arutha was sure he could have prevented much of the
damage had he been allowed to rout the Tsurani at once.
As he rode down the coast road, Arutha
was lost in thought. Orders arrived the day before instructing Lyam to leave
Crydee. The Duke's aide-de-camp had been killed, and with the war beginning its
third year this spring, he wished Lyam to join him at his camp in Yabon. For
reasons Arutha didn't understand, Duke Borric had not given command to him as
expected; instead Borric had named the Swordmaster garrison commander. But,
thought the younger Prince, at least Fannon will be less ready to order me
about without Lyam's backing. He shook his head slightly in an attempt to dislodge
his irritation. He loved his brother, but wished Lyam had shown more
willingness to assert himself. Since the beginning of the war, Lyam had
commanded in Crydee, but it had been Fannon making all the decisions. Now
Fannon had the office as well as the influence.
“Thoughtful, brother?”
Lyam had pulled his own horse up and was
now beside Arutha, who shook his head and smiled faintly. “Just envious of
you.”
Lyam smiled his warmest at his younger
brother. “I know you wish to be going, but Father's orders were clear. You're
needed here.”
“How needed can I be where every
suggestion I make has been ignored?”
Lyam's expression was conciliatory.
“You're still disturbed by Father's decision to name Fannon commander of the
garrison.”
Arutha looked hard at his brother. I am
now the age you were when Father named you commander at Crydee. Father was full
commander and second Knight-General in the West at my age, only four years shy
of being named King's Warden of the West. Grandfather trusted him enough to
give him full command.”
“Father's not Grandfather, Arutha.
Remember, Grandfather grew up in a time when we were still warring in Crydee,
pacifying newly conquered lands. He grew up in war. Father did not. He learned
all his warcraft down in the Vale of Dreams, against Kesh, not defending his
own home as Grandfather had. Times change.”
“How they change, brother,” Arutha said
dryly.
“Grandfather, like his father before him,
would not have sat behind safe walls. In the two years since the war began, we
have not mounted one major offensive against the Tsurani. We cannot continue
letting them dictate the course of the war, or surely they will prevail.”
Lyam regarded his brother with concern
mirrored in his eyes. “Arutha, I know you are restless to harry the enemy, but
Fannon is right in saying we dare not risk the garrison. We must hold here and
protect what we have.”
Arutha cast a quick glance at the ragged
townspeople behind. “I'll tell those who follow how well they're protected.”
Lyam saw the bitterness in Arutha. “I
know you blame me, brother. Had I taken your advice, rather than Fannon’s . .
.”
Arutha lost his harsh manner. “It is not
your doing,” he conceded. “Old Fannon is simply cautious. He also is of the
opinion a soldier's worth is measured by the grey in his beard. I am still only
the Duke's boy. I fear my opinions from now on will receive short shrift.”
“Curb thy impatience, youngster,” he said
in mock seriousness. “Perhaps between your boldness and Fannon's caution, a
safe middle course will be followed.” Lyam laughed.
Arutha had always found his brother's
laughter infectious and couldn't repress a grin. “Perhaps, Lyam,” he said with
a laugh.
They came to the beach where longboats
waited to haul the refugees out to the ships anchored offshore. The captains
would not return to the quayside until they were assured their ships would not
again come under attack, so the fleeing townspeople were forced to walk through
the surf to board the boats. Men and women began to wade to the boats, bundles
of belongings and small children held safely overhead. Older children swam
playfully, turning the event into sport. There were many tearful partings, for
most of the townsmen were remaining to rebuild their burned homes and serve as
levies in the dukes' army. The women, children, and old men who were leaving
would be carried down the coast to Tulan, the southernmost town in the Duchy,
as yet untroubled by either the Tsurani or the rampaging Dark Brothers in the
Green Heart.
Lyam and Arutha dismounted, and a soldier
took their horses. The brothers watched as soldiers carefully loaded crates of
messenger pigeons onto the sole longboat pulled up on shore. The birds would be
shipped through the Straits of Darkness to the dukes' camp. Pigeons trained to
fly to the camp were now on their way to Crydee, and with their arrival some of
the responsibility for carrying information to and from the dukes' camp would
be lifted from Martin Longbow's trackers and the Natalese Rangers. This was the
first year mature pigeons raised in the camp -- necessary for them to develop
the homing instinct-were available.
Soon the baggage and refugees were
loaded, and it was time for Lyam to depart. Fannon bid him a stiff and formal
farewell, but it was apparent from his controlled manner that the old
Swordmaster felt concern for the Duke's older son. With no family of his own,
Fannon had been something of an uncle to the boys when they were growing, personally
instructing them in swordsmanship, the maintenance of armor, and the theories
of warcraft. He maintained his formal pose, but both brothers could see the
genuine affection there.
When Fannon left, the brothers embraced.
Lyam said, “Take care of Fannon.” Arutha looked surprised. Lyam grinned and
said, “I'd not care to think what would happen here should Father pass you over
once more and name Algon commander of the garrison.”
Arutha groaned, then laughed with his
brother. As Horsemaster, Algon was technically second-in-command behind Fannon.
All in the castle shared genuine affection for the man, and deep respect for
his vast knowledge of horses, but everyone conceded his general lack of
knowledge about anything besides horses. After two years of warfare, he still
resisted the idea the invaders came from another world, an attitude that caused
Tully no end of irritation.
Lyam moved into the water, where two
sailors held the longboat for him. Over his shoulder he shouted, “And take care
of our sister, Arutha.”
Arutha said he would. Lyam leaped into
the longboat, next to the precious pigeons, and the boat was pushed away from
shore. Arutha watched as the boat dwindled into the distance.
Arutha walked slowly back to where a
soldier held his mount. He paused to stare down the beach. To the south, the
high bluffs reared, dominated by Sailor's Grief, which stood upthrust against
the morning sky. Arutha silently cursed the day the Tsurani ship crashed
against those rocks.
CARLINE STOOD ATOP the southern tower of
the keep, watching the horizon, gathering her cloak around her against the sea
breeze. She had stayed at the castle, bidding Lyam good-bye earlier, not
wishing to ride to the beach. She preferred that her fears not becloud Lyam's
happiness at joining their father in the dukes' camp. Many times over the last
two years she had chided herself over such feelings. Her men were soldiers, all
trained since boyhood for war. But since word had reached Crydee of Pug's
capture, she had remained afraid for them.
A feminine clearing of the throat. made
Carline turn. Lady Glynis, the Princess's companion for the last four years,
smiled slightly and indicated with a nod of her head the newcomer who appeared
at the trapdoor leading down into the tower.
Roland emerged from the doorway in the
floor. The last two years had added to his growth, and now he stood as tall as
Arutha. He was still thin, but his boyish features were resolving into those of
a man.
He bowed and said, “Highness.”
Carline acknowledged the greeting with a
nod and gestured that Lady Glynis should leave them alone. Glynis fled down the
stairway into the tower.
Softly Carline said, “You did not ride to
the beach with Lyam?”
“No, Highness.”
“You spoke with him before he left?”
Roland turned his gaze to the far
horizon. “Yes, Highness, though I must confess to a foul humor at his going.”
Carline nodded understanding. “Because
you have to stay.”
He spoke with bitterness, “Yes,
Highness.”
Carline said gently, “Why so formal,
Roland?”
Roland looked at the Princess, seventeen
years old just this last Midsummer's Day. No longer a petulant little girl
given to outbursts of temper, she was changing into a beautiful young woman of
thoughtful introspection. Few in the castle were unaware of the many nights'
sobbing that issued from Carline's suite after news of Pug had reached the
castle. After nearly a week of solitude, Carline had emerged a changed person,
more subdued, less willful. There was little outward to show how Carline felt,
but Roland knew she carried a scar.
After a moment of silence, Roland said,
“Highness, when . . .” He halted, then said, “It is of no consequence.”
Carline placed her hand upon his arm.
“Roland, whatever else, we have always been friends.”
“It pleases me to think that is true.”
“Then tell me, why has a wall grown
between us?”
Roland sighed, and there was none of his
usual roguish humor in his answer. “If there has, Carline, it is not of my
fashioning.”
A spark of the girl's former self sprang
into being, and with a temperamental edge to her voice she said, “Am I, then,
the architect of this estrangement?”
Anger erupted in Roland's voice. “Aye,
Carline!” He ran his hand through his wavy brown hair and said, “Do you
remember the day I fought with Pug? The very day before he left.”
At the mention of Pug's name she tensed.
Stiffly she said, “Yes, I remember.”
“Well, it was a silly thing, a boys'
thing, that fight. I told him should he ever cause you any hurt, I'd thrash
him. Did he tell you that?”
Moisture came unbidden to her eyes.
Softly she said, “No, he never mentioned it.”
Roland looked at the beautiful face he
had loved for years and said, “At least then I knew my rival.” He lowered his
voice, the anger slipping away. “I like to think then, near the end, he and I
were fast friends. Still, I vowed I'd never stop my attempts to change your
heart.”
Shivering, Carline drew her cloak about
her, though the day was not that cool. She felt conflicting emotions within,
confusing emotions. Trembling, she said, “Why did you stop, Roland?”
Sudden harsh anger burst within Roland.
For the first time he lost his mask of wit and manners before the Princess.
“Because I can't contend with a memory, Carline.” Her eyes opened wide, and
tears welled up and ran down her cheeks. “Another man of flesh I can face, but
this shade from the past I cannot grapple with.” Hot anger exploded into words.
“He's dead, Carline. I wish it were not so; he was my friend and I miss him,
but I've let him go. Pug is dead. Until you grant that this is true, you are
living with a false hope.”
She put her hand to her mouth, palm
outward, her eyes regarding him in wordless, denial. Abruptly she turned and
fled down the stairs.
Alone, Roland leaned his elbows on the
cold stones of the tower wall. Holding his head in his hands, he said; “Oh,
what a fool I have become!”
“PATROL!” SHOUTED THE guard from the wall
of the castle. Arutha and Roland turned from where they watched soldiers giving
instructions to levies from the outlying villages.
They reached the gate, and the patrol
came riding slowly in, a dozen dirty, weary riders, with Martin Longbow and two
other trackers walking beside. Arutha greeted the Huntmaster and then said,
“What have you there?”
He indicated the three men in short grey
robes who stood between the line of horsemen. “Prisoners, Highness,” answered
the hunter, leaning on his bow.
Arutha dismissed the tired riders as
other guards came to take position around the prisoners. Arutha walked to where
they waited, and when he came within touching distance, all three fell to their
knees, putting their foreheads to the dirt.
Arutha raised his eyebrows in surprise at
the display. “I have never seen such as these.”
Longbow nodded in agreement. “They wear
no armor, and they didn't give fight or run when we found them in the woods.
They did as you see now, only then they babbled like fishwives.”
Arutha said to Roland, “Fetch Father
Tully. He may be able to make something of their tongue.” Roland hurried off to
find the priest. Longbow dismissed his two trackers, who headed for the
kitchen. A guard was dispatched to find Swordmaster Fannon and inform him of
the captives.
A few minutes later Roland returned with
Father Tully. The old priest of Astalon was dressed in a deep blue, nearly
black, robe, and upon catching a glimpse of him, the three prisoners set up a
babble of whispers. When Tully glanced in their direction, they fell completely
silent. Arutha looked at Longbow in surprise.
Tully said, “What have we here?”
“Prisoners,” said Arutha. “As you are the
only man here to have had some dealings with their language, I thought you
might get something out of them.”
“I remember little from my mind contact
with the Tsurani Xomich, but I can try.” The priest spoke a few halting words,
which resulted in a confusion as all three prisoners spoke at once. The
centermost snapped at his companions, who fell silent. He was short, as were
the others, but powerfully built. His hair was brown, and his skin swarthy, but
his eyes were a startling green. He spoke slowly to Tully, his manner somehow
less deferential than his companions'.
Tully shook his head. “I can't be
certain, but I think he wishes to know if I am a Great One of this world.”
“Great One?” asked Arutha.
“The dying soldier was in awe of the man
aboard ship he called 'Great One.' I think it was a title rather than a
specific individual. Perhaps Kulgan was correct in his suspicion these people
hold their magicians or priests in awe.”
“Who are these men?” asked the Prince.
Tully spoke to them again in halting
words. The man in the center spoke slowly, but after a moment Tully cut him off
with a wave of his hand. To Arutha he said, “These are slaves.”
“Slaves?” Until now there had been no
contact with any Tsurani except warriors. It was something of a revelation to
find they practiced slavery. While not unknown in the Kingdom, slavery was not
widespread and was limited to convicted felons. Along the Far Coast, it was
nearly nonexistent. Arutha found the idea strange and repugnant. Men might be
born to low station, but even the lowliest serf had rights the nobility were
obligated to respect and protect. Slaves were property. With a sudden disgust,
Arutha said, “Tell them to get up, for mercy's sake.”
Tully spoke and the men slowly rose, the
two on the flanks looking about like frightened children. The other stood
calmly, eyes only slightly downcast. Again Tully questioned the man, finding
his understanding of their language returning.
The centermost man spoke at length, and
when he was done Tully said, “They were assigned to work in the enclaves near
the river. They say their camp was overrun by the forest people -- he refers to
the elves, I think -- and the short ones.”
“Dwarves, no doubt,” added Longbow with a
grin.
Tully threw him a withering look. The
rangy forester simply continued to smile. Martin was one of the few young men
of the castle never intimidated by the old cleric, even before becoming one of
the Duke' s staff.
“As
I was saying,” continued the priest, “the elves and dwarves overran their camp.
They fled, fearing they would be killed. They wandered in the woods for days
until the patrol picked them up this morning.”
Arutha said, “This fellow in the center
seems a bit different from the others. Ask why this is so.”
Tully spoke slowly to the man, who
answered with little inflection in his tones. When he was done, Tully spoke
with some surprise. “He says his name is Tchakachakalla. He was once a Tsurani
officer!”
Arutha said, “This may prove most
fortunate. If he'll cooperate, we may finally learn some things about the
enemy.”
Swordmaster Fannon appeared from the keep
and hurried to where Arutha was questioning the prisoners. The commander of the
Crydee garrison said, “What have you here?”
Arutha explained as much as he knew about
the prisoners, and when he was finished, Fannon said, “Good, continue with the
questioning.”
Arutha said to Tully, “Ask him how he
came to be a slave.”
Without sign of embarrassment,
Tchakachakalla told his story. When he was done, Tully stood shaking his head.
“He was a Strike Leader. It may take some time to puzzle out what his rank was
equivalent to in our armies, but I gather he was at least a Knight-Lieutenant.
He says his men broke in one of the early battles and his 'house' lost much
honor. He wasn't given permission to take his own life by someone he calls the
Warchief. Instead he was made a slave to expiate the shame of his command.”
Roland whistled low. “His men fled and he
was held responsible.”
Longbow said, “ There's been more than
one earl who's bollixed a command and found himself ordered by his Duke to
serve with one of the Border Barons along the Northern Marches.”
Tully shot Martin and Roland a black
look. “If you are finished?” He addressed Arutha and Fannon: “From what he
said, it is clear he was stripped of everything. He may prove of use to us.”
Fannon said, “This may be some trick. I
don't like his looks.”
The man's head came up, and he fixed
Fannon with a narrow gaze. Martin's mouth fell open. “By Kilian! I think he
understands what you said.”
Fannon stood directly before
Tchakachakalla. “Do you understand me?”
“Little, master.” His accent was thick,
and he spoke with a slow singsong tone alien to the King's Tongue. “Many
Kingdom slaves on Kelewan. Know little King's Tongue.”
Fannon said, “Why didn't you speak
before?”
Again without any show of emotion, he
answered, “Not ordered. Slave obey. Not . . .” He turned to Tully and spoke a
few words.
Tully said, “He says it isn't a slave's place to show
initiative.”
Arutha said, “Tully, do you think he can
be trusted?”
“I don't know. His story is strange, but
they are a strange people by our standards. My mind contact with the dying soldier
showed me much I still don't understand.” Tully spoke to the man.
To Arutha the Tsurani said,
“Tchakachakalla tell.” Fighting for words, he said, “I Wedewayo. My house,
family. My clan Hunzan. Old, much honor. Now slave. No house, no clan, no Tsuranuanni.
No honor. Slave obey.')
Arutha said, “I think I understand. If
you go back to the Tsurani, what would happen to you?”
Tchakachakalla said, “Be slave, maybe. Be
killed, maybe. All same.”
“And if you stay here?”
“Be slave, be killed?” He shrugged,
showing little concern.
Arutha said, slowly, “We keep no slaves.
What would you do if we set you free?”
A flicker of some emotion passed over the
slave's face, and he turned to Tully and spoke rapidly. Tully translated. “He
says such a thing is not possible on his world. He asks if you can do such a
thing.”
Arutha nodded. Tchakachakalla pointed to
his companions. “They work. They always slaves.”
“And you?” said Arutha.
Tchakachakalla looked hard at the Prince
and spoke to Tully, never taking his eyes from Arutha. Tully said, “He's
recounting his lineage. He says he is Tchakachakalla, Strike Leader of the
Wedewayo, of the Hunzan Clan. His father was a Force Leader, and his
great-grandfather Warchief of the Hunzan Clan. He has fought honorably, and
only once has he failed in his duty. Now he is only a slave, with no family, no
clan, no nation, and no honor. He asks if you mean to give him back his honor.”
Arutha said, “If the Tsurani come, what
will you do?”
Tchakachakalla indicated his companions.
“These men slaves. Tsurani come, they do nothing. Wait. Go with . . .” He and
Tully exchanged brief remarks and Tully supplied him with the word he wished.
“. . . victors. They go with victors.” He looked at Arutha, and his eyes came
alive. “You make Tchakachakalla free. Tchakachakalla be your man, lord. Your
honor is Tchakachakalla's honor. Give life if you say. Fight Tsurani if you
say.”
Fannon spoke. “Likely story that. More's
the odds he's a spy.”
The barrel-chested Tsurani looked hard at
Fannon, then with a sudden motion stepped before the Swordmaster, and before
anyone could react, pulled Fannon's knife from his belt.
Longbow had his own knife out an instant
later, as Arutha's sword was clearing its scabbard. Roland and the other
soldiers were only a moment behind. The Tsurani made no threatening gesture,
but simply flipped the knife, reversing it and handing it to Fannon hilt first.
“Master think Tchakachakalia enemy? Master kill. Give warrior's death, return
honor.”
Arutha returned his sword to his scabbard
and took the knife from Tchakachakalia's hand. Returning the knife to Fannon,
he said, “No, we will not kill you,” To Tully he said, “I think this man may
prove useful. For now, my inclination is to believe him.”
Fannon looked less than pleased. “He may
be a very clever spy, but you're right. There's no harm if we keep a close
watch on him. Father Tully, why don't you take these men to soldiers' commons
and see what you can learn from them. I'll be along shortly.”
Tully spoke to the three slaves and
indicated they should follow. The two timid slaves moved at once, but
Tchakachakalia bent his knee before Arutha. He spoke rapidly in the Tsurani
tongue; Tully translated. “He's just demanded you either kill him or make him
your man. He asked how a man can be free with no house, clan, or honor. On his
world such men are called grey warriors and have no honor.”
Arutha said, “Our ways are not your ways.
Here a man can be free with no family or clan and still have honor.”
Tchakachakalia bent his head slightly
while listening, then nodded. He rose and said, “Tchakachakalla understand.”
Then with a grin he added, “Soon, I be your man. Good lord need good warrior.
Tchakachakalla good warrior.”
“Tully, take them along, and find out how
much Tchak . . . Tchakal . . .” Arutha laughed. “I can't pronounce that
mouthful.” To the slave he said, “If you're to serve here, you need a Kingdom
name.”
The slave looked about and then gave a
curt nod.
Longbow said, “Call him Charles. It's as
close a name as I can imagine.”
Arutha said, “As good a name as any. From
now on, you will be called Charles.”
The newly named slave said, “Tcharles?”
He shrugged and nodded. Without another word he fell in beside Father Tully,
who led the slaves toward the soldiers' commons.
Roland said, “What do you make of that?”
as the three slaves vanished around the corner.
Fannon said, “Time will tell if we've been
duped.”
Longbow laughed. “I'll keep an eye on
Charles, Swordmaster. He's a tough little fellow. He traveled at a good pace
when we brought them in. Maybe I'll turn him into a tracker.”
Arutha interrupted. “It will be some time
before I'll be comfortable letting him outside the castle walls.”
Fannon let the matter drop. To Longbow he
said, “Where did you find them?”
“To the north, along the Clearbrook
branch of the river. We were following the signs of a large party of warriors
heading for the coast.”
Fannon considered this. “Gardan leads
another patrol near there. Perhaps he'll catch sight of them and we'll find out
what the bastards are up to this year.” Without another word he walked back
toward the keep.
Martin laughed; Arutha was surprised to
hear him. “What in this strikes you as funny, Huntmaster?”
Martin shook his head. “A little thing,
Highness. It's the Swordmaster himself. He'll not speak of it to anyone, but I
wager he would give all he owns to have your father back in command. He's a
good soldier, but he dislikes the responsibility.”
Arutha regarded the retreating back of
the Swordmaster, then said, “I think you are right, Martin.” His voice carried
a thoughtful note. “I have been at odds with Fannon so much of late, I lost
sight of the fact he never requested this commission.”
Lowering his voice, Martin said, “A
suggestion, Arutha.”
Arutha nodded. Martin pointed to Fannon.
“Should anything happen to Fannon, name another Swordmaster quickly; do not
wait for your father's consent. For if you wait, Algon will assume command, and
he is a fool. “
Arutha stiffened at the Huntmaster's
presumption, while Roland tried to silence Martin with a warning look. Arutha
coldly said, “I thought you a friend of the Horsemaster.”
Martin smiled, his eyes hinting at
strange humor. “Aye, I am, as are all in the castle. But anyone you ask will
tell you the same: take his horses away, and Algon is an indifferent thinker.”
Nettled by Martin's manner, Arutha said,
“And who should take his place? The Huntmaster?”
Martin laughed, a sound of such open,
clear amusement at the thought, Arutha found himself less angry at his
suggestion.
“I?” said the Huntmaster. “Heaven
forfend, Highness. I am a simple hunter, no more. No, should the need come,
name Gardan. He is by far the most able soldier in Crydee.”
Arutha knew Martin was correct, but gave
in to impatience. “Enough. Fannon is well, and I trust will remain so.”
Martin nodded. “May the gods preserve him
. . . and us all. Please excuse me, it was but a passing concern. Now, with
Your Highness's leave, I've not had a hot meal in a week.”
Arutha indicated he could leave, and
Martin walked away toward the kitchen. Roland said, “He is wrong on one
account, Arutha.”
Arutha stood with his arms folded across
his chest, watching Longbow as he vanished around the corner. “What is that,
Roland?”
“That man is much more than the simple
hunter he pretends.”
Arutha was silent for a moment. “He is.
Something about Martin Longbow has always made me uneasy, though I have never
found fault with him.”
Roland laughed, and Arutha said, “Now
something strikes you as funny, Roland?”
Roland shrugged. “Only that many think
you and he are much alike.”
Arutha turned a black gaze upon Roland,
who shook his head. “It's often said we take offense most in what we see of
ourselves in others. It's true, Arutha. You both have that same cutting edge to
your humor, almost mocking, and neither of you suffers foolishness.” Roland's
voice became serious. “There's no mystery to it, I should think. You're a great
deal like your father, and with Martin having no family, it follows he would
pattern himself after the Duke.”
Arutha became thoughtful. “Perhaps you're
right. But something else troubles me about that man.” He left the thought
unfinished and turned toward the keep.
Roland fell into step beside the
thoughtful Prince and wondered if he had overstepped himself.
THE NIGHT THUNDERED. Ragged bolts of lightning shattered the
darkness as clouds rolled in from the west. Roland stood on the southern tower
watching the display. Since dinner his mood had been as dark as the Western
sky. The day had not gone well. First he had felt troubled by his conversation
with Arutha by the gate. Then Carline had treated him at dinner with the same
stony silence he had endured since their meeting on this very tower two weeks
earlier. Carline had seemed more subdued than usual, but Roland felt a stab of
anger at himself each time he chanced a glance in her direction. Roland could
still see the pain in the Princess's eyes. “What a witless fool I am,” he said
aloud.
“Not a fool, Roland.”
Carline was standing a few paces away, looking
toward the coming storm. She clutched a shawl around her shoulders, though the
air was temperate. The thunder had masked her footfalls, and Roland said, “It
is a poor night to be upon the tower, my lady.”
She came to stand beside him and said,
“Will it rain? These hot nights bring thunder and lightning, but usually little
rain.”
“It will rain. Where are your ladies?”
She indicated the tower door. “Upon the
stairs. They fear the lightning, and besides, I wished to speak with you alone.”
Roland said nothing, and Carline remained
silent for a time. The night was sundered with violent displays of energy tearing across the heavens,
followed by cracking booms of thunder. “When I was young,” she said at last,
“Father used to say on nights such as this the gods were sporting in the sky.”
Roland looked at her face, illuminated by
the single lantern hanging on the wall. “My father told me they made war.”
She smiled. “Roland, you spoke rightly on
the day Lyam left. I have been lost in my own grief, unable to see the truth.
Pug would have been the first to tell me that nothing is forever. That living
in the past is foolish and robs us of the future.” She lowered her head a
little. “Perhaps it has something to do with Father. When Mother died, he never
fully recovered. I was very young, but I can still remember how he was. He used
to laugh a great deal before she died. He was more like Lyam then. After . . .
well, he became more like Arutha. He'd laugh, but there'd be a hard edge to it,
a bitterness.”
“As if somehow mocking?”
She nodded thoughtfully. “Yes, mocking.
Why did you say that?”
“Something I noticed . . . something I
pointed out to your brother today. About Martin Longbow.”
She sighed. “Yes, I understand. Longbow
is also like that.”
Softly Roland said, “Nevertheless, you
did not come to speak of your brother or Martin.”
“No, I came to tell you how sorry I am
for the way I've acted. I've been angry with you for two weeks, but I'd no
right. You only said what was true. I've treated you badly.”
Roland was surprised. “You've not treated
me badly, Carline. I acted the boor.”
“No, you have done nothing but be a
friend to me, Roland. You told me the truth, not what I wanted to hear. It must
have been hard . . . considering how you feel.” She looked out at the
approaching storm. “When I first heard of Pug's capture, I thought the world
ended.”
Trying to be understanding, Roland
quoted, “ 'The first love is the difficult love.' “
Carline smiled at the aphorism. “That is
what they say. And with you?”
Roland mustered a carefree stance. “So it
seems, Princess.”
She placed her hand upon his arm.
“Neither of us is free to feel other than as we do, Roland.”
His smile became sadder. “That is the
truth, Carline.”
“ Will you always be my good friend?”
There was a genuine note of concern in
her voice that touched the young Squire. She was trying to put matters right
between them, but without the guile she'd used when younger. Her honest attempt
turned aside any frustration he felt at her not returning his affections fully.
“I will, Carline. I'll always be your good friend.”
She came into his arms and he held her
close, her head against his chest. Softly she said, “Father Tully says that
some loves come unbidden like winds from the sea, and others grow from the
seeds of friendship.”
“I will hope for such a harvest, Carline.
But should it not come, still I will remain your good friend. “
They stood quietly together for a time,
comforting each other for different causes, but sharing a tenderness each had
been denied for two years. Each of them was lost in the comfort of the other's
nearness, and neither saw what the lightning flashes revealed for brief
instants. On the horizon, beating for the harbor, came a ship.
THE
WINDS WHIPPED the banners on the palisades of the castle walls as rain began to
fall. As water gathered in small pools, the lanterns cast yellow reflections
upward off the puddles to give an otherworldly look to the two men standing on
the wall.
A flash of lightning illuminated the sea,
and a soldier said, “There! Highness, did you see? Three points south of the
Guardian Rocks.” He extended his arm, pointing the way.
Arutha peered into the gloom, his brow
furrowed in concentration. “I can see nothing in this darkness. It's blacker
than a Guis-wan priest's soul out there.” The soldier absently made a
protective sign at the mention of the killer god. “Any signal from the beacon
tower?”
“None, Highness. Not by beacon, nor by
messenger.
Another flash of lightning illuminated
the night, and Arutha saw the ship outlined in the distance. He swore. “It will
need the beacon at Longpoint to reach the harbor safely.” Without another word,
he ran down the stairs leading to the courtyard. Near the gate he instructed a
soldier to get his horse and two riders to accompany him. As he stood there
waiting, the rain passed, leaving the night with a clean but warm, moist
feeling. A few minutes later, Fannon appeared from the direction of the
soldiers' commons. “What's this? Riding?”
Arutha said, “A ship makes for the
harbor, and there is no beacon at Longpoint.”
As a groom brought Arutha's horse,
followed by two mounted soldiers, Fannon said, “You'd best be off, then. And
tell those stone-crowned layabouts at the lighthouse I'll have words for them
when they finish duty.”
Arutha had expected an argument from
Fannon and felt relieved there would be none. He mounted and the gates were
opened. They rode through and headed down the road toward town.
The brief rain had made the night rich
with fresh odors: the flowers along the road, and the scent of salt from the
sea, soon masked by the acrid odor of burned wood from the charred remnants of
gutted buildings as they neared town.
They sped past the quiet town, taking the
road along the harbor. A pair of guards stationed by the quayside hastily
saluted when they saw the Prince fly past. The shuttered buildings near the
docks bore mute testimony to those who had fled after the raid.
They left the town and rode out to the
lighthouse, following a bend in the road. Beyond the town they gained their
first glimpse of the lighthouse, upon a natural island of rock joined to the
mainland by a long causeway of stone, topped by a compacted dirt road. The
horses' hooves beat a dull tattoo upon the dirt as they approached the tall
tower. A lightning flash lit up the sky, and the three riders could see the
ship running under full sail toward the harbor.
Shouting to the others, Arutha said,
“They'll pile upon the rocks without a beacon.”
One of the guards shouted back, “Look,
Highness. Someone signals!”
They reined in and saw figures near the
base of the tower. A man dressed in black stood swinging a shuttered lantern
back and forth. It could be clearly seen by those on the ship, but not by
anyone upon the castle walls. In the dim light, Arutha saw the still forms of
Crydee soldiers lying on the ground. Four men, also attired in black with head
coverings that masked their faces, ran toward the horsemen. Three drew long
swords from back scabbards, while the fourth aimed a bow. The soldier to
Arutha's right cried out as an arrow struck him in the chest. Arutha charged
his horse among the three who closed, knocking over two while his sword slashed
out, taking the third across the face. The man fell without a sound.
The Prince wheeled around and saw his
other companion also engaged, hacking downward at the bowman. More men in black
dashed from within the tower, rushing forward silently.
Arutha's horse screamed. He could see an
arrow protruding from its neck. As it collapsed beneath him, he freed his feet
from the stirrups and lifted his left leg over the dying animal's neck, jumping
free as it struck the ground. He hit and rolled, coming to his feet before a
short figure in black with a long sword held high overhead with both hands. The
long blade flashed down, and Arutha jumped to his left, thrusting with his own
sword. He took the man in the chest, then yanked his sword free. Like the
others before, the man in black fell without uttering a cry.
Another flash of lightning showed men
rushing toward Arutha from the tower. Arutha turned to order the remaining
rider back to warn the castle, but the shouted command died aborning when he
saw the man pulled from his saddle by swarming figures in black. Arutha dodged
a blow from the first man to reach him and ran past three startled figures. He
smashed at the face of a fourth man with his sword hilt, trying to knock the
man aside. His only thought was to open a pathway so he might flee to warn the
castle. The struck man reeled back, and Arutha attempted to jump past him. The
falling man reached out with one hand, catching Arutha's leg as he sprang.
Arutha struck hard stone and felt hands
frantically grab at his right foot. He kicked backward with his left and took
the man in the throat with his boot. The sound of the man's windpipe being
crushed was followed by a convulsion of movement.
Arutha
came to his feet as another attacker reached him, others only a step behind.
Arutha sprang backward, trying to gain some distance. His boot heel caught on a
rock, and suddenly the world tilted crazily. He found himself suspended in
space for an instant, then his shoulders met rock as he bounced down the side
of the causeway. He hit several more rocks, and icy water closed over him.
The shock of the water kept him from
passing into unconsciousness. Dazed, he reflexively held his breath, but had
little wind. Without thinking, he pushed upward and broke the surface with a
loud, ragged gasp. Still groggy, he nevertheless possessed enough wits to duck
below the surface when arrows struck the water near him. He couldn't see a
thing in the murky darkness of the harbor, but clung to the rocks, pulling
himself along more than swimming. He moved back toward the tower end of the
causeway, hoping the raiders would think him headed in the other direction.
He quietly surfaced and blinked the salt
water from his eyes. Peering around the shelter of a large rock, he saw black
figures searching the darkness of the water. Arutha moved quietly, nestling
himself into the rocks. Bruised muscles and joints made him wince as he moved,
but nothing seemed broken.
Another flash of lightning lit the
harbor. Arutha could see the ship speeding safely into Crydee harbor. It was a
trader, but rigged for speed and outfitted for war. Whoever piloted the ship
was a mad genius, for he cleared the rocks by a scant margin, heading straight
for the quayside around the bend of the causeway. Arutha could see men in the
rigging, frantically reefing in sails. Upon the deck a company of black-clad
warriors stood with weapons ready.
Arutha turned his attention to the men on
the causeway and saw one motion silently to the others. They ran off in the
direction of the town. Ignoring the pain in his body, Arutha pulled himself up,
negotiating the slippery rocks to regain the dirt road of the causeway.
Staggering a bit, he came to his feet and looked off toward the town. There was
still no sign of trouble, but he knew it would erupt shortly.
Arutha half staggered, half ran to the
lighthouse tower and forced himself to climb the stairs. Twice he came close to
blacking out, but he reached the top of the tower. He saw the lookout lying
dead near the signal fire. The oilsoaked wood was protected from the elements
by a hood that hung suspended over it. The cold wind blew through the open
windows on all sides of the building.
Arutha found the dead sentry's pouch and
removed flint, steel, and tinder. He opened the small door in the side of the
metal hood, using his body to shield the wood from the wind. The second spark
he fired caught in the wood, and a small flame sprang into existence. It
quickly spread, and when it was burning fully, Arutha pulled on the chain hoist
that elevated the hood. With an audible whoosh, the flames sprang fully to the
ceiling as the wind struck the fire.
Against one wall stood a jar of powder
mixed by Kulgan against such an emergency. Arutha fought down dizziness as he
bent again to pull the knife from the dead sentry's belt. He used it to pry the
lid off the jar and then tossed the entire contents into the fire.
Instantly the flames turned bright
crimson, a warning beacon none could confuse with a normal light. Arutha turned
toward the castle, standing away from the window so as not to block the light.
Brighter and brighter the flames burned as Arutha found his mind going vague
again. For a long moment there was silence in the night, then suddenly an alarm
sounded from the castle. Arutha felt relief. The red beacon was the signal for
reavers in the harbor, and the castle garrison had been well drilled to meet
such raids. Fannon might be cautious with chasing Tsurani raiders into the
woods at night, but a pirate ship in his harbor was something he would not
hesitate to answer.
Arutha staggered down the stairs,
stopping to support himself at the door. His entire body hurt, and he was
nearly overcome by dizziness. He drew a deep breath and headed for the town.
When he came to where his dead horse lay, he looked about for his sword, then
remembered he had carried it with him into the harbor. He stumbled to where one
of his riders lay, next to a black-clad bowman. Arutha bent down to pick up the
fallen soldier's sword, nearly blacking out as he stood. He held himself erect
for a moment, fearing he might lose consciousness if he moved, and waited as
the ringing in his head subsided. He slowly reached up and touched his head.
One particularly sore spot, with an angry lump forming, told him he had struck
his head hard at least once as he fell down the causeway. His fingers came away
sticky with clotting blood.
Arutha began to walk to town, and as he
moved, the ringing in his head resumed. For a time he staggered, then he tried
to force himself to run, but after only three wobbly strides he resumed his
clumsy walk. He hurried as much as he could, rounding the bend in the road to
come in sight of town. He heard faint sounds of fighting. In the distance he
could see the red light of fires springing heavenward as buildings were put to
the torch. Screams of men and women sounded strangely remote and muted to Arutha's
ears.
He forced himself into a trot, and as he
closed upon the town, anticipation of fighting forced away much of the fog
clouding his mind. He turned along the harborside; with the dockside buildings
burning, it was bright as day, but no one was in sight. Against the quayside
the raiders' ship rested, a gangway leading down to the dock. Arutha approached
quietly, fearing guards had been left to protect it. When he reached the
gangway, all was quiet. The sounds of fighting were distant, as if all the
raiders had attacked deeply into the town.
As he began to move away, a voice cried
out from the ship, “Gods of mercy! Is anyone there?” The voice was deep and
powerful, but with a controlled note of terror.
Arutha hurried up the gangway, sword
ready. He stopped when he reached the top. From the forward hatch cover he
could see fire glowing brightly belowdecks.. He looked about: everywhere his
eyes traveled he saw seamen lying dead in their own blood. From the rear of the
ship the voice cried out, “You, man. If you're a godsfearing man of the
Kingdom, come help me.”
Arutha made his way amid the carnage and
found a man sitting against the starboard rail. He was large, broadshouldered,
and barrel-chested. He could have been any age between twenty and forty. He
held the side of an ample stomach with his right hand, blood seeping through
his fingers. Curly dark hair swept back from a receding hairline, and he wore
his black beard cut short. He managed a weak smile as he pointed to a black-clothed
figure lying nearby. “The bastards killed my crew and fired my ship. That one
made the mistake of not killing me with the first blow.” He pointed at the
section of a fallen yard pinning his legs. “I can't manage to budge that damned
yard and hold my guts in at the same time. If you'd lift it a bit, I think I
can pull myself free.”
Arutha saw the problem: the man was
pinned down at the short end of the yard, tangled in a mass of ropes and
blocks. He gripped the long end and heaved upward, moving it only a few inches,
but enough. With a half grunt, half groan, the wounded man pulled his legs out.
“I don't think my legs are broken, lad. Give me a hand up and we'll see.”
Arutha gave him a hand and nearly lost
his footing pulling the bulky seaman to his feet. “Here, now,” said the wounded
man. “You're not in much of a fighting trim yourself, are you?”
“I'll be all right,” said Arutha,
steadying the man while fighting off an attack of nausea.
The seaman leaned upon Arutha. “We'd better
hurry, then. The fire is spreading.” With Arutha's help, he negotiated the
gangway. When they reached the quayside, gasping for breath, the heat was
becoming intense. The wounded seaman gasped, “Keep going!”
Arutha nodded and slung the man's arm over
his shoulder. They set off down the quay, staggering like a pair of drunken
sailors on the town.
Suddenly there came a roar, and both men
were slammed to the ground. Arutha shook his dazed head and turned over. Behind
him a great tower of flames leaped skyward. The ship was a faintly seen black
silhouette in the heart of the blinding yellow-and-white column of fire. Waves
of heat washed over them, as if they were standing at the door of a giant oven.
Arutha
managed to croak, “What was that?”
His companion gave out with an equally feeble reply: “Two
hundred barrels of Quegan fire oil.”
Arutha spoke in disbelief. “You didn't
say anything about fire oil back aboard ship.”
“I didn't want you getting excited. You
looked half-gone already. I figured we'd either get clear or we wouldn't.”
Arutha tried to rise, but fell back.
Suddenly he felt very comfortable resting on the cool stone of the quay. He saw
the fire begin to dim before his eyes, then all went dark.
ARUTHA OPENED His eyes and saw blurred
shapes over him. He blinked and the images cleared. Carline hovered over his
sleeping pallet, looking anxiously on as Father Tully examined him. Behind
Carline, Fannon watched, and next to him stood an unfamiliar man. Then Arutha remembered
him. “The man from the ship.”
The man grinned. “Amos Trask, lately
master of the Sidonie until those bast -- begging the Princess's pardon --
those cursed land rats put her to the torch. Standing here thanks to Your
Highness.”
Tully interrupted. “How do you feel?”
Arutha sat up, finding his body a mass of
dull aches. Carline placed cushions behind her brother. “Battered, but I'll
survive.” His head swam a little. “I'm a bit dizzy.”
Tully looked down his nose at Arutha's head.
“Small wonder. You took a nasty crack. You may find yourself occasionally dizzy
for a few days, but I don't think it is serious.”
Arutha looked at the Swordmaster. “How
long?”
Fannon said, “A patrol brought you in
last night. It's morning.”
“The raid?”
Fannon shook his head sadly. “The town's
gutted. We managed to kill them all, but there's not a whole building left
standing in Crydee. The fishing village at the south end of the harbor is
untouched, but otherwise everything was lost.”
Carline fussed around near Arutha,
tucking in covers and fluffing his cushions. “You should rest.”
He said, “Right now, I'm hungry.”
She brought over a bowl of hot broth. He
submitted to the light broth in place of solid food, but refused to let her
spoon-feed him. Between mouthfuls he said, “Tell me what happened.”
Fannon looked disturbed. “It was the
Tsurani.”
Arutha's hand stopped, his spoon poised
halfway between bowl and mouth. “Tsurani? I thought they were reavers, from the
Sunset Islands.”
“At first so did we, but after talking to
Captain Trask here, and the Tsurani slaves who are with us, we’ve pieced
together a picture of what's happened.”
Tully picked up the narrative. “From the
slaves' story, these men were specially chosen. They called it a death raid.
They were selected to enter the town, destroy as much as possible, then die
without fleeing. They burned the ship as much as a symbol of their commitment
as to deny it to us. I gather from what they say it's considered something of a
great honor.”
Arutha looked at Amos Trask. “How is it
they managed to seize your ship, Captain?”
“Ah, that is a bitter story, Highness.”
He leaned to his right a little, and Arutha remembered his wound.
“How is your side?”
Trask grinned, his dark eyes merry. “A
messy wound, but not a serious one. The good father put it right as new,
Highness.”
Tully made a derisive sound. “That man
should be in bed. He is more seriously injured than you. He would not leave
until he saw you were all right. “
Trask ignored the comment. “I've had
worse. We once had a fight with a Quegan war galley turned rogue pirate and --
well, that's another story. You asked about my ship.” He limped over closer to
Arutha's pallet. “We were outward bound from Palanque with a load of weapons
and fire oil. Considering the situation here, I thought to find a ready market.
We braved the straits early in the season, stealing the march on other ships,
or so we hoped.”
“But while we made the passage early, we
paid the price. A monstrous storm blew up from the south, and we were driven
for a week. When it was over, we headed east, striking for the coast. I thought
we'd have no trouble plotting our position from landmarks. When we sighted
land, not one aboard recognized a single feature. As none of us had ever been
north of Crydee, we judged rightly we had gone farther than we had thought.
“We coasted by day, heaving to at night,
for I'd not risk unknown shoals and reefs. On the third night the Tsurani came
swimming out from shore like a pod of dolphins. Dived right under the ship, and
came up on both sides. By the time I was awake from the commotion on deck,
there was a full half dozen of the bast -- begging the Princess's pardon --
them Tsurani swarming over me. It took them only minutes to take my ship.” His
shoulders sagged a bit. “It's a hard thing to lose one's ship, Highness.”
He grimaced and Tully stood, making Trask
sit on the stool next to Arutha. Trask continued his story. “We couldn't
understand what they said; their tongue is more suited for monkeys than men --
I myself speak five civilized languages and can do 'talk-see' in a dozen more.
But as I was saying, we couldn't understand their gibberish, but they made
their intentions clear enough.”
“They pored over my charts.” He grimaced
in remembering. “I purchased them legal and aboveboard from a retired captain
down in Durbin. Fifty years of experience in those charts, there were, from
here in Crydee to the farthest eastern shores of the Keshian Confederacy, and
they were tossing them around my cabin like so much old canvas until they found
the ones they wanted. They had some sailors among them, for as soon as they
recognized the charts, they made their plans known to me.
“Curse me for a freshwater fisherman, but
we had heaved to only a few miles north of the headlands above your lighthouse.
If we'd sailed a little longer, we would have been safely in Crydee harbor two
days ago.
Arutha and the others said nothing. Trask
continued, “They went through my cargo holds and started tossing things
overboard, no matter what. Over five hundred fine Quegan broadswords, over the
side. Pikes, lances, longbows, everything -- I guess to keep any of it from reaching
Crydee somehow. They didn't know what to do with the Quegan fire oil -- the
barrels would've needed a dock hoist to get them out of the hold -- so they
left it alone. But they made sure there wasn't a weapon aboard that wasn't in
their hands. Then some of the little land rats got dressed up in those black
rags, swam ashore, and started down the coast toward the lighthouse. While they
were going, the rest were praying, on their knees rocking back and forth,
except for a few with bows watching my crew. Then all of a sudden, about three
hours after sundown, they're up and kicking my men around, pointing to the
harbor on the map.”
“We set sail and headed down the coast.
The rest you know. I guess they judged you would not expect an attack from
seaward.”
Fannon said, “They judged correctly.
Since their last raid we've patrolled the forests heavily. They couldn't get
within a day's march of Crydee without our knowing. This way they caught us
unawares.” The old Swordmaster sounded tired and bitter. “Now the town is
destroyed, and we've a courtyard filled with terrified townsmen.”
Trask also sounded bitter. “They put most
of their men ashore quickly, but left two dozen to slaughter my men.” An
expression of pain crossed his face. “They were a hard lot, my lads, but on the
whole good enough men. We didn't know what was happening until the first of my
boys began to fall from the spars with Tsurani arrows in them, waving like
little flags as they hit the water. We thought they were going to have us take
them out again. My boys put up a struggle then, you can bet. But they didn't
start soon enough. Marlinspikes and belayin' pins can't stand up to men with
swords and bows.”
Trask sighed deeply, the pain on his face
as much from his story as from his injury. “Thirty-five men. Dock rats,
cutthroats, and murderers all, but they were my crew. I was the only one
allowed to go killing them I cracked the skull of the first Tsurani who came at
me, took his sword, and killed another. But the third one knocked it from my
hand and ran me through.” He barked a short, harsh-sounding laugh. “I broke his
neck. I passed out for a time. They must have thought me dead. The next I knew,
the fires were going and I started yelling. Then I saw you come up the gangway.”
Arutha said, “You're a bold man, Amos
Trask.”
A look of deep pain crossed the large
man's face. “Not bold enough to keep my ship, Highness. Now I'm nothing more
than another beached sailor.”
Tully said, “Enough for now. Arutha, you
need rest.” He put his hand on Amos Trask's shoulder. “Captain, you'd do well
to follow his example. Your wound is more serious than you admit. I'll take you
to a room where you can rest.”
The captain rose, and Arutha said,
“Captain Trask.”
“Yes, Highness?”
“We have need of good men here in
Crydee.”
A glimmer of humor crossed the seaman's
face. “I thank you, Highness. Without a ship, though, I don't know what use I
could be.”
Arutha said, “Between Fannon and myself,
we'll find enough to keep you busy.”
The man bowed slightly, restricted by his
wounded side. He left with Tully. Carline kissed Arutha on the cheek, saying,
“Rest now.” She took away the broth and was escorted from the room by Fannon.
Arutha was asleep before the door closed.
Carline lunged.
She thrust the point of her sword in a
low line, aiming a killing blow for the stomach. Roland barely avoided the
thrust by a strong beat of his blade, knocking hers out of line. He sprang back
and for a moment was off balance. Carline saw the hesitation and lunged forward
again.
Roland laughed as he suddenly leaped
away, knocking her blade aside once more, then stepping outside her guard.
Quickly tossing his sword from right hand to left, he reached out and caught
her sword arm at the wrist, pulling her, in turn, off balance. He swung her
about, stepping behind her. He wrapped his left arm around her waist, being
careful of his sword edge, and pulled her tightly to him. She struggled against
his superior strength, but while he was behind her, she could inflict no more
than angry curses on him. “It was a trick! A loathsome trick,” she spat.
She
kicked helplessly as he laughed. “Don't over extend yourself that way, even
when it looks like a clean kill. You've good speed, but you press too much.
Learn patience. Wait for a clear opening, then attack. You overbalance that
much and you're dead.” He gave her a quick kiss on the cheek and pushed her
unceremoniously away.
Carline stumbled forward, regained her
balance, and turned. “Rogue! Make free with the royal person, will you?” She
advanced on him, sword at the ready, slowly circling to the left. With her
father away, Carline had pestered Arutha into allowing Roland to teach her
swordplay. Her final argument had been, “What do I do if the Tsurani enter the
castle? Attack them with embroidery needles?” Arutha had relented more from
tiring of the constant nagging than from any conviction she would have to use
the weapon.
Suddenly Carline launched a furious
attack in high line, forcing Roland to retreat across the small court behind
the keep. He found himself backed against a low wall and waited. She lunged
again, and he nimbly stepped aside, the padded point of her rapier striking the
wall an instant after he vacated the spot. He jumped past her, playfully
swatting her across the rump with the flat of his blade as he took up position
behind her. “And don't lose your temper, or you'll lose your head as well.”
“Oh!” she cried, spinning to face him.
Her expression was caught halfway between anger and amusement. “You monster!”
Roland stood ready, a look of mock
contrition on his face. She measured the distance between them and began to
advance slowly. She was wearing tight-fitting men's trousers -- to the despair
of Lady Marna -- and a man's tunic cinched at the waist by her sword belt. In
the last year her figure had filled out, and the snug costume bordered on the
scandalous. Now eighteen years of age, there was nothing about Carline that was
girlish. The specially crafted boots she wore, black, ankle-high, carefully
beat upon the ground as she stepped the distance between them, and her long,
lustrous dark hair was tied into a single braid that swung freely about her
shoulders.
Roland welcomed these sessions with her.
They had rediscovered much of their former playful fun in them, and Roland held
the guarded hope her feelings for him might be developing into something more
than friendship. In the year since Lyam's departure they had practiced
together, or had gone riding when it was considered safe, near the castle. The
time with her had nourished a sense of companionship between them he had
previously been unable to bring about. While more serious than before, she had
regained her spark and sense of humor.
Roland stood lost in reflection a moment.
The little-girl Princess, spoiled and indulged, was gone. The child grown
petulant and demanding from the boredom of her role was now a thing of the
past. In her stead was a young woman of strong mind and will, tempered by harsh
lessons.
Roland blinked and found himself with her
sword's point at his throat. He playfully threw down his own weapon and said,
“Lady, I yield!”
She laughed. “What were you daydreaming
about, Roland?”
He gently pushed aside the tip of her
sword. “I was remembering how distraught Lady Marna became when you first went
riding in those clothes and came back all dirty and very unladylike.”
Carline smiled at the memory. “I thought
she would stay abed for a week.” She put up her sword. “I wish I could find
reasons to wear these clothes more often. They are so comfortable.”
Roland nodded, grinning widely, “And very
fetching.” He made a display of leering
at the way they hugged Carline's curvaceous body. “Though I expect that is due
to the wearer.”
She tilted her nose upward in a show of
disapproval. “You are a rogue and a flatterer, sir. And a lecher.”
With a chuckle, he picked up his sword.
“I think that is enough for today, Carline. I could endure only one defeat this
afternoon. Another, and I shall have to quit the castle in shame.''
Her eyes widened as she drew her weapon,
and he saw the dig had struck home. “Oh! Shamed by a mere girl, is it?” she
said, advancing with her sword ready.
Laughing, he brought his own to the
ready, backing away. “Now, Lady. This is most unseemly.”
Leveling her sword, she fixed him with an
angry gaze. “I have Lady Marna to be concerned with my manners, Roland. I don't
need a buffoon like you to instruct me.”
“Buffoon!” he cried, leaping forward. She
caught his blade and riposted, nearly striking. He took the thrust on his
blade, sliding his own along hers until they stood corps a corps. He seized her
sword wrist with his free hand and smiled. “You never want to find yourself in
this position.” She struggled to free herself, but he held her fast. “Unless
the Tsurani start sending their women after us, most anyone you fight will
prove stronger than yourself, and from here have his way with you.” So saying,
he jerked her closer and kissed her.
She pulled back, an expression of
surprise on her face. Suddenly the sword fell from her fingers and she grabbed
him. Pulling him with surprising force, she kissed him with a passion that answered
his.
When he pulled back, she regarded him
with a look of surprise mixed with longing. A smile spread on her face, as her
eyes sparkled. Quietly she said, “Roland, I –”
Alarm sounded throughout the castle, and
the shout of “Attack!” could be heard from the walls on the other side of the
keep.
Roland swore softly and stepped back. “Of
all the gods-cursed, ill-timed luck.” He headed into the hall that led to the
main courtyard. With a grin he turned and said, “Remember what you were going
to say, Lady.” His humor vanished when he saw her following after, sword in
hand. “Where are you going?” he asked, all lightness absent from his voice.
Defiantly she said, “To the walls. I'm
not going to sit in the cellars any longer.”
Firmly he said, “No. You've never
experienced true fighting. As a sport, you do well enough with a sword, but
I'll not risk your freezing the first time you smell blood. You'll go to the
cellars with the other ladies and lock yourself safely in.”
Roland had never spoken to her in this
manner before, and she was amazed. Always before he had been the teasing rogue,
or the gentle friend. Now he was suddenly a different man. She began to
protest, but he cut her off. Taking her by the arm, half leading, half dragging
her, he walked in the direction of the cellar doors. “Roland!” she cried. “Let
me go!”
Quietly he said, “You'll go where you
were ordered. And I'll go where I'm ordered. There will be no argument.
She pulled against his hold, but the grip
was unyielding. “Roland! Take your hand from me this instant!” she commanded.
He continued to ignore her protests and
dragged her along the hall. At the cellar door a startled guard watched the
approaching pair. Roland came to a stop and propelled Carline toward the door
with a less than gentle shove. Her eyes wide in outrage, Carline turned to the
guard. “Arrest him! At once! He” -- anger elevated her voice to a most
unladylike volume -- “laid hands on me!”
The guard hesitated, looking from one to
another, then tentatively began to step toward the Squire. Roland raised a
warning finger and pointed it at the
guard, less than an inch from. his nose. “You will see Her Highness to her
appointed place of safety. You will ignore her objections, and should she try
to leave, you will restrain her. Do you understand?” His voice left no doubt he
was deadly serious.
The guard nodded, but still was reluctant
to place hands upon the Princess. Without taking his eyes from the soldier's
face, Roland pushed Carline gently toward the door and said, “If I find she has
left the cellar before the signal that all is safe has sounded, I will ensure
that the Prince and the Swordmaster are informed you allowed the Princess to
step in harm's way. “
That was enough for the guard. He might
not understand who had right of rank between Princess and Squire during
attacks, but there was no doubt at all in his mind of what the Swordmaster
would do to him under such circumstances. He turned to the cellar door before
Carline could return and said, “Highness, this way,” forcing her down the
steps.
Carline backed down the stairs, fuming.
Roland closed the door behind them. She turned after another backward step,
then haughtily walked down. When they reached the room set aside for the women
of the castle and town in time of attack, Carline found the other women
waiting, huddled together, terrified.
The guard hazarded an apologetic salute
and said, “Begging the Princess's pardon, but the Squire seemed most determined.”
Suddenly Carline's scowl vanished, and in
its place a small smile appeared. She said, “Yes, he did, didn't he?”
RIDERS SPED INTO the courtyard, the
massive gates swinging shut behind. Arutha watched from the walls and turned to
Fannon.
Fannon said, “Of all the worst possible
luck.”
Arutha said, “Luck has nothing to do with
it. The Tsurani would certainly not be attacking when the advantage is ours.”
Everything looked peaceful, except the burned town standing as a constant
reminder of the war. But he also knew that beyond the town, in the forests to
the north and northeast, an army was gathering. And by all reports as many as
two thousand more Tsurani were on the march toward Crydee.
“Get back inside, you rat-bitten, motherless
dog.”
Arutha looked downward into the courtyard
and saw Amos Trask kicking at the panic-stricken figure of a fisherman, who
dashed back into one of the many rude huts erected inside the wall of the
castle to house the last of the displaced townsfolk who had not gone south.
Most of the townspeople had shipped for Carse after the death raid, but a few
had stayed the winter. Except for some fishermen who were to stay to help feed
the garrison, the rest were due to be shipped south to Carse and Tulan this
spring. But the first ships of the coming season were not due in for weeks.
Amos had been put in charge of these folk since his ship had been burned the
year before, keeping them from getting underfoot and from causing too much
disruption in the castle. The former sea captain had proved a gift during the
first weeks after the burning of the town. Amos had the necessary talent for
command and kept the tough, illmannered, and individualistic fisherfolk in
line. Arutha judged him a braggart, a liar, and most probably, a pirate, but
generally likable.
Gardan came up the stairs from the court,
Roland following. Gardan saluted the Prince and Swordmaster, and said, “That's
the last patrol, Sir.”
“Then we must only wait for Longbow,”
said Fannon.
Gardan shook his head. “Not one patrol
caught sight of him, sir.”
“That's because Longbow is undoubtedly
closer to the Tsurani than any soldier of sound judgment is likely to get,”
ventured Arutha. “How soon, do you think, before the rest of the Tsurani
arrive?”
Pointing to the northeast, Gardan said,
“Less than an hour, if they push straight through.” He looked skyward. “They
have less than four hours of light. We might expect one attack before
nightfall. Most likely they'll take position, rest their men, and attack at
first light.”
Arutha glanced at Roland. “Are the women
safe?”
Roland grinned. “All, though your sister
might have a few harsh words about me when this is over.”
Arutha returned the grin. “When this is over,
I'll deal with it.” He looked around. “Now we wait.”
Swordmaster Fannon's eyes swept the
deceptively peaceful scene before them. There was a note of worry mixed with
determination in his voice as he said, “Yes, now we wait.”
MARTIN RAISED HIS hand. His three
trackers stopped moving. The woods were quiet as far as they could tell, but
the three knew Martin possessed more acute senses than they. After a moment he
moved along, scouting ahead.
For ten hours, since before dawn, they
had been marking the Tsurani line of march. As well as he could judge, the
Tsurani had been repulsed once more from Elvandar at the fords along the river
Crydee and were now turning their attention to the castle at Crydee. For three
years the Tsurani had been occupied along four fronts: against the Duke's
armies in the east, the elves and dwarves along the north, the hold at Crydee
in the west, and the Brotherhood of the Dark Path and the goblins in the south.
The trackers had stayed close to the
Tsurani trailbreakers, occasionally too close. Twice they had been forced to
run from attackers, Tsurani warriors tenaciously willing to follow the
Huntmaster of Crydee and his men. Once they had been overtaken, and Martin had
lost one of his men in the fighting.
Martin gave the raucous caw of a crow,
and in a few minutes his three remaining trackers joined him. One, a long-faced
young man named Garret, said, “They move far west of where I thought they would
turn.”
Longbow considered. “Aye, it seems they
may be planning to encircle all of the lands around the castle. Or they may
simply wish to strike from an unexpected quarter.” Then with a wry grin he
said, “But most likely, they simply sweep the area before the attack begins,
ensuring they have no harrying forces at their backs.”
Another tracker said, “Surely they know
we mark their passing.”
Longbow's crooked grin widened. “No
doubt. I judge them unconcerned with our comings and goings.” He shook his
head. “These Tsurani are an arrogant crew.” Pointing, he said, “Garret will
come with me. You two will make straight for the castle. Inform the Swordmaster
some two thousand more Tsurani march on Crydee.” Without a word the two men set
off at a brisk pace toward the castle.
To his remaining companion he spoke
lightly. “Come, let us return to the advancing enemy and see what he is about
now.”
Garret shook his head. “Your cheerful
manner does little to ease my worrisome mind, Huntmaster.”
Turning back the way they had come,
Longbow said, “One time is much like another to death. She comes when she will.
So why give over your mind to worry?”
“Aye,” said Garret, his long face showing
he was unconvinced. “Why, indeed? It's not death arriving when she will that
worries me; it's your inviting her to visit that gets me shivering.”
Martin laughed softly. He motioned for
Garret to follow. They set off at a trot, covering ground with long, loose
strides. The forest was bright with sunlight, but between the thick boles were
many dark places wherein a watchful enemy could lurk. Garret left it to
Longbow's able judgment whether these hiding places were safe to pass. Then, as
one, both men stopped in their tracks at the sound of movement ahead.
Noiselessly they melted into a shadowy thicket. A minute passed slowly with
neither man speaking. Then a faint whispering came to them, the words unclear.
Into their field of vision came two
figures, moving cautiously along a north-south path that intersected the one.
Martin followed. Both were dressed in dark grey cloaks, with bows held ready.
They stopped, and one kneeled down to study the signs left by Longbow and his
trackers. He pointed down the trail and spoke to his companion, who nodded and
returned the way they had come.
Longbow heard Garret hiss as he drew in
his breath. Peering around the-area was a tracker of the Brotherhood of the
Dark Path. After a moment of searching he followed his companion.
Garret began to stir and Martin gripped
his arm. “Not yet,” Longbow whispered.
Garret whispered back, “What are they
doing this far north?”
Martin shook his head. “They've slipped
in behind our patrols along the foothills. We've grown lax in the south,
Garret. We never thought they'd move north this far west of the mountains.” He
waited silently for a moment, then whispered, “Perhaps they tire of the Green
Heart and are trying for the Northlands to join their brothers.”
Garret started to speak, but stopped when
another Dark Brother entered the spot vacated by the others a moment before. He
looked around, then raised his hand in signal. Other figures appeared along the
trail intersecting the one Martin's men had traveled. In ones, twos, and
threes, Dark Brothers crossed the path, disappearing into the trees.
Garret sat holding his breath. He could hear Martin counting
faintly as the figures crossed their field of vision: “. . . ten, twelve,
fifteen, sixteen, eighteen . . . “
The stream of dark-cloaked figures
continued, seemingly unending to Garret. “. . . thirty-one,thirty-two,
thirty-four . . .”
As the crossing continued, larger numbers
of Brothers appeared, and after a time Martin whispered, “There are more than a
hundred.”
Still they came, some now carrying
bundles on their backs and shoulders. Many wore the dark grey mountain cloaks,
but others were dressed in green, brown, or black clothing. Garret leaned close
to Martin and whispered, “You are right. It is a migration north. I mark over
two hundred.”
Martin nodded. “And still they come.”
For many more minutes the Dark Brothers
crossed the trail, until the flood of warriors was replaced by ragged-looking
females and young. When they had passed, a company of twenty fighters crossed
the trail, and then the area was quiet.
They waited a moment in silence. Garret
said, “They are elven-kin to move so large a number through the forest
undetected so long.”
Martin smiled. “I'd advise you not
mention that fact to the next elf you encounter.” He stood slowly, unbending
cramped muscles from the long sitting in the brush. A faint sound echoed from
the east, and Martin got a thoughtful look on his face. “How far along the
trail do you judge the Dark Brothers' march?”
Garret said, “At their rear, a hundred
yards; at the van, perhaps a quarter mile or less. Why?”
. Martin grinned, and Garret became
discomforted by the mocking humor in his eyes. “Come, I think I know where we
can have some fun.”
Garret groaned softly, “Ah, Huntmaster,
my skin gets a poxy feeling when you mention fun.”
Martin struck the man a friendly blow to
the chest with the back of his hand. “'Come, stout fellow.” The Huntmaster
broke trail, with Garret behind. They loped along through the woods, easily
avoiding obstacles that would have hindered less experienced woodsmen.
They came to a break in the trail, and
both men halted. Just down the trail, at the edge of their vision in the gloom
of the forest, came a company of Tsurani trailbreakers. Martin and Garret faded
into the trees, and the Huntmaster said, “The main column is close behind. When
they reach the crossing where the Dark Brothers passed, they might chance to
follow.”
Garret shook his head. “Or they might
not, so we will make certain they do.” Taking a deep breath, he added, “Oh
well,” then made a short silent prayer to Kilian, the Singer of Green Silences,
Goddess of Foresters, as they unshouldered their bows.
Martin stepped out onto the trail and
took aim, and Garret followed his example. The Tsurani trailbreakers came into
view, cutting away the thick underbrush along the trail so the main body could
more easily follow. Martin waited until the Tsurani were uncomfortably close,
then he let fly, just as the first trailbreaker took notice of them. The first
two men fell, and before they hit the ground, two more arrows were loosed.
Martin and Garret pulled arrows from back quivers in fluid motions, set arrow
to bowstring, and let fly with uncommon quickness and accuracy. It was not from
any act of kindness Martin had selected Garret five years before. In the eye of
the storm, he would stand calmly, do as ordered, and do it with skill.
Ten stunned Tsurani fell before they
could raise an alarm. Calmly Martin and Garret shouldered their bows and
waited. Then along the trail appeared a veritable wall of colored armor. The
Tsurani officers in the van stopped in shocked silence as they regarded the
dead trailbreakers. Then they saw the two foresters standing quietly down the
trail and shouted something. The entire front of the column sprang forward,
weapons drawn.
Martin leaped into the thicket on the
north side of the trail, Garret a step behind. They dashed through the trees,
the Tsurani in close pursuit.
Martin's voice filled the forest with a
wild hunter's call. Garret shouted as much from some nameless, crazy
exhilaration as from fear. The noise behind was tremendous as a horde of
Tsurani pursued them through the trees.
Martin led them northward, paralleling
the course taken by the Dark Brotherhood. After a time he stopped and between
gasping breaths said, “Slowly, we don't want to lose them.”
Garret looked back and saw the Tsurani
were out of sight. They leaned against a tree and waited. A moment later the
first Tsurani came into view, hurrying along on a course that angled off to the
northwest.
With a disgusted look, Martin said, “We
must have killed the only skilled trackers on their whole bloody world.” He
took his hunter's horn from his belt and let forth with such a loud blast the Tsurani
soldier froze, an expression of shock clearly evident on his face even from
where Martin and Garret stood.
The Tsurani looked around and caught
sight of the two huntsmen. Martin waved for the man to follow, and he and
Garret were off again. The Tsurani shouted for those behind and gave chase. For
a quarter Mile they led the Tsurani through the woods, then they angled
westward. Garret shouted, between heaving breaths, “The Dark Brothers . . .
they'll know . . . we come.”
Martin shouted back, “Unless they've . .
suddenly all . . . gone deaf.” He managed a smile. “The Tsurani . . . hold a
six-to-one . . . advantage. I . . . think it . . . only fair to let . . . the
Brotherhood . . . have the . . . ambush.”
Garret spared enough breath for a low
groan and continued to follow his master's lead. They crashed out of a thicket
and Martin stopped, grabbing Garret by the tunic. He cocked his head and said,
“They're up ahead.”
Garret said, “I don't know . . . how you
can hear a thing with . . . all that cursed racket behind.” It sounded as if
most of the Tsurani column had followed, though the forest amplified the noise
and confused its source.
Martin said, “Do you still wear that . .
. ridiculous red undertunic?”
“Yes, why?”
“Tear off a strip.” Garret pulled his knife without question and
lifted up his green forester's tunic. Underneath was a garish red cotton
undertunic. He cut a long strip off the bottom, then hastily tucked the undertunic
in. While Garret ordered himself, Martin tied the strip to an arrow. He looked
back to where the Tsurani thrashed in the brush. “It must be those stubby legs.
They may be able to run all day, but they can't keep up in the woods.” He
handed the arrow to Garret. “See that large elm across that small clearing?”
Garret nodded. “See the small birch
behind, off to the left?” Again Garret nodded. “Think you can hit it with that
rag dragging at your arrow?”
Garret grinned as he unslung his bow,
notched the arrow, and let fly. The arrow sped true, striking the tree. Martin
said, “When our bandy-legged friends get here, they'll see that flicker of
color over there and go charging across. Unless I'm sadly mistaken, the
Brothers are about fifty feet the other side of your arrow.” He pulled his horn
as Garret shouldered his bow again. “Once more we're off,” he said, blowing a
long, loud call.
Like hornets the Tsurani descended, but
Longbow and Garret were off to the southwest before the note from the hunter's
horn had died in the air. They dashed to be gone before the Tsurani caught
sight of them, aborting the hoax. Suddenly they broke through a thicket and ran
into a group of women and children milling about. One young woman of the
Brotherhood was placing a bundle upon the ground. She stopped at the sight of
the two men. Garret had to slide to a halt to keep from bowling her over.
Her
large brown eyes studied him for an instant as he stepped sideways to get
around her. Without thinking, Garret said, “Excuse me, ma'am,” and raised his hand
to his forelock. Then he was off after the Huntmaster as shouts of surprise and
anger erupted behind them.
Martin called a halt after they had
covered another quarter mile and listened. To the northeast came the sounds of
battle, shouts and screams, and the ring of weapons. Martin grinned. “They'll
both be busy for a while.”
Garret sank wearily to the ground and
said, “Next time send me to the castle, will you, Huntmaster?”
Martin kneeled beside the tracker. “That
should prevent the Tsurani from reaching Crydee until sundown or after. They
won't be able to mount an attack until tomorrow. Four hundred Dark Brothers are
not something they can safely leave at their rear. We'll rest a bit, then make
for Crydee.”
Garret leaned back against a tree.
“Welcome news.” He let out a long sigh of relief. “That was a close thing,
Huntmaster.”
Martin smiled enigmatically. “All life is
a close thing, Garret.”
Garret shook his head slowly. “Did you
see that girl? “
Martin nodded. “What of her?”
Garret looked perplexed. “She was pretty
no, closer to being beautiful, in a strange sort of way, I mean. But she had
long black hair, and her eyes were the color of otter's fur. And she had a
pouty mouth and pert look. Enough to warrant a second glance from most men.
It's not what I would have expected from the Brotherhood.”
Martin nodded. “The moredhel are a pretty
people, in truth, as are the elves. But remember, Garret,” he said with a
smile, “should you chance to find yourself exchanging pleasantries with a
moredhel woman again, she'd as soon cut your heart out as kiss you.”
They rested for a while as cries and
shouts echoed from the northeast. Then slowly they stood and began the return
to Crydee.
SINCE THE START of the war, the Tsurani
had confined their activities to those areas immediately adjacent the valley in
the Grey Towers. Reports from the dwarves and the elves revealed mining
activities were taking place in the Grey Towers. Enclaves had been thrown up outside
the valley, from which they raided Kingdom positions. Once or twice during the
year they would mount an offensive against the Dukes' Armies of the West, the
elves in Elvandar, or Crydee, but for the most part they were content to hold
what they had already taken.
And each year they would expand their
holdings, building more enclaves, expanding the area under their control, and
gaining themselves a stronger position from which to conduct th e next year's
campaign. Since the fall of Walinor, the expected thrust toward the coast of
the Bitter Sea had not materialized, nor had the Tsurani again tried for the
LaMutian fortresses near Stone Mountain. Walinor and Crydee town were sacked
and abandoned, more to deny them to the Kingdom and Free Cities than for any
Tsurani gain. By the spring of the third year of the war, the leaders of the
Kingdom forces despaired of a major attack, one that might break the stalemate.
Now it came. And it came at the logical place, the allies' weakest front, the
garrison at Crydee.
Arutha looked out over the walls at the
Tsurani army. He stood next to Gardan and Fannon, with Martin Longbow behind.
“How many?” he asked, not taking his eyes from the gathering host.
Martin spoke. “Fifteen hundred, two
thousand, it is hard to judge. There were two thousand more coming yesterday,
less whatever the Dark Brotherhood took with them. “
From the distant woods the sounds of
workmen felling trees rang out. The Swordmaster and Huntmaster judged the
Tsurani were cutting trees to build scaling ladders.
Martin said, “I'd never thought to hear
myself say such, but I wish there'd been four thousand Dark Brothers in the
forest yesterday.”
Gardan spat over the wall. “Still, you
did well, Huntmaster. It is only fitting they should run afoul of each other.”
Martin chuckled humorlessly. “It is also
a good thing the Dark Brothers kill on sight. Though I am sure they do it out
of no love for us, they do guard our southern flank.”
Arutha said, “Unless yesterday's band was
not an isolated case. If the Brotherhood is abandoning the Green Heart, we may
soon have to fear for Tulan, Jonril, and Carse.”
“I'm glad they've not parleyed,” said
Fannon. “If they should truce . . .”
Martin shook his head. “The moredhel will
traffic only with weapons runners and renegades who will serve them for gold.
Otherwise they have no use for us. And by all evidence, the Tsurani are bent on
conquest. The moredhel are no more spared their ambition than we are. “
Fannon looked back at the mounting
Tsurani force. Brightly colored standards with symbols and designs strange to
behold were placed at various positions along the leading edge of the army.
Hundreds of warriors in different-colored armor stood in groups under each banner.
A horn sounded, and the Tsurani soldiers
faced the walls. Each standard was brought forward a dozen paces and planted in
the ground. A handful of soldiers wearing the high-crested helmets that the
Kingdom forces took to denote officers walked forward and stood halfway between
the army and the standardbearers. One, wearing bright blue armor, called
something and pointed at the castle. A shout went up from the assembled Tsurani
host, and then another officer, this one in bright red armor, began to walk
slowly up to the castle.
Arutha and the others watched in silence
while the man crossed the distance to the gate. He looked neither right nor
left, nor up at the people on the walls, but marched with eyes straight ahead
until he reached the gate. There he took out a large hand ax and banged three
times upon it with the haft.
“What is he doing?” asked Roland, just
come up the stairs.
Again the Tsurani pounded on the gates of
the castle. “I think,” said Longbow, “he's ordering us to open up and quit the
castle.”
Then the Tsurani reached back and slammed
his ax into the gate, leaving it quivering in the wood. Without hurrying, he
turned and began walking away to cheers from the watching Tsurani.
“What
now?” asked Fannon.
“I think I know,” said Martin,
unshouldering his bow. He drew out an arrow and fitted it to the bowstring.
With a sudden pull, he let fly. The shaft struck the ground between the Tsurani
officer's legs and the man halted.
:'The Hadati hillmen of Yabon have
rituals like this,' said Martin. “They put great store by showing bravery in
the face of an enemy. To touch one and live is more honorable than killing
him.” He pointed toward the officer, who stood motionless. “If I kill him, I
have no honor, because he's showing us all how brave he is. But we can show we
know how to play this game. “
The Tsurani officer turned and picked up
the arrow and snapped it in two. He faced the castle, holding the broken arrow
high as he shouted defiance at those on the walls. Longbow sighted another
arrow and let fly. The second arrow sped down and sliced the plume from the
officer's helmet. The Tsurani fell silent as feathers began drifting down
around his face.
Roland whooped at the shot, and then the
walls of the castle erupted with cheers. The Tsurani slowly removed his helm.
Martin said, “Now he's inviting one of us
either to kill him, showing we are without honor, or to come out of the castle
and dare to face him.”
Fannon said, “I will not allow the gates
open over some childish contest!”
Longbow grinned as he said, “Then we'll
change the rules.” He leaned over the edge of the walkway and shouted down to
the courtyard below. “Garret; fowling blunt!”
Garret, in the court below, drew a fowling
arrow from his quiver and tossed it up to Longbow. Martin showed the others the
heavy iron ball that served as the tip, used to stun game birds where a sharp
arrow would destroy them, and then fitted it to his bow. Sighting the officer,
he let fly.
The arrow took the Tsurani officer in the
stomach, knocking him backward. All on the wall could imagine the sound made as
the man had his breath knocked from him. The Tsurani soldiers shouted in
outrage, then quieted as the man stood up, obviously stunned but otherwise
showing no injury. Then he doubled over, his hands on his knees, and vomited.
Arutha said dryly, “So much for an
officer's dignity.”
“Well,” said Fannon, “I think it is time
to give them another lesson in Kingdom warfare.” He raised his arm high above
his head. “Catapults!” he cried.
Answering flags waved from the tops of
the towers along the walls and atop the keep. He dropped his arm, and the
mighty engines were fired. On the smaller towers, ballistae, looking like giant
crossbows, shot spearlike missiles, while atop the keep, huge mangonels flung
buckets of heavy stones. The rain of stones and missiles landed amid the
Tsurani, crushing heads and limbs, tearing ragged holes in their lines. The
screams of wounded men could be heard by the defenders, while the catapult crew
quickly rewound and loaded their deadly engines.
The Tsurani milled about in confusion
and, when the second flight of stones and missiles struck, broke and ran. A
cheer went up from the defenders on the wall, then died when the Tsurani
regrouped beyond the range of the engines.
Gardan said, “Swordmaster, I think they
mean to wait us out.”
“I think you're wrong,” said Arutha,
pointing. The other looked: a large number of Tsurani detached themselves from
the main body, moving forward to stop just outside missile range.
“They look to be readying an attack,”
said Fannon, “but why with only a part of their force?”
A soldier appeared and said, “Highness,
there are no signs of Tsurani along any of the other positions.”
Arutha looked to Fannon. “And why attack
only one wall?” After a few minutes, Arutha said, “I'd judge a thousand.”
“More likely twelve hundred,” said
Fannon. He saw scaling ladders appearing at the rear of the attackers, moving
forward. “Anytime now.”
A thousand defenders waited inside the
walls. Other men of Crydee still manned outlying garrisons and lookout
positions, but the bulk of the Duchy's strength was here. Fannon said, “We can
withstand this force as long as the walls remain unbreached. Less than a
ten-to-one advantage we can deal with.”
More messengers came from the other
walls. “They still mount nothing along the east, north, and south,
Swordmaster,” one reported.
“They seem determined to do this the hard
way.” Fannon looked thoughtful for a moment. “Little of what we've seen is
understandable. Death raids, marshaling within catapult range, wasting time
with games of honor. Still, they are not without skill, and we can take nothing
for granted.” To the guard he said, “Pass the word to keep alert on the other
walls, and be ready to move to defend should this prove a feint.”
The messengers left, and the waiting
continued. The sun moved across the sky, until an hour before sunset, when it
sat at the backs of the attackers. Suddenly horns blew and drums beat, and in a
rush the Tsurani broke toward the walls. The catapults sang, and great holes
appeared in the lines of attackers. Still they came, until they moved within
bow range of the patiently waiting defenders. A storm of arrows fell upon the
attackers, and to a man the front rank collapsed, but those behind came on,
large brightly colored shields held overhead as they rushed the walls. A half
dozen times men fell, dropping scaling ladders, only to have others grab them
up and continue.
Tsurani bowmen answered the bowmen from
the walls with their own shower of arrows, and men of Crydee fell from the
battlements. Arutha ducked behind the walls of the castle as the arrows sped
overhead, then he risked a glance between the merlons of the wall. A horde of
attackers filled his field of vision, and a ladder top suddenly appeared before
him. A soldier near the Prince grabbed the ladder top and pushed it away, aided
by a second using a pole arm. Arutha could hear the screams of the Tsurani as
they fell from the ladder. The first soldier to the ladder then fell backward,
a Tsurani arrow protruding from his eye, and disappeared into the courtyard.
A sudden shout went up from below, and
Arutha sprang to his feet, risking a bowshaft by looking down. All along the
base of the wall, Tsurani warriors were withdrawing, running back to the safety
of their own lines.
“
What are they doing?” wondered Fannon.
The Tsurani ran until they were safe from
the catapults, then stopped, turned, and formed up ranks. Officers were walking
up and down before the men, exhorting them. After a moment the assembled
Tsurani cheered.
“Damn me!” came from Arutha's left, and
he glimpsed Amos Trask at his shoulder, a seaman's cutlass in his hand. “The
maniacs are congratulating themselves on getting slaughtered.”
The scene below was grisly. Tsurani
soldiers lay scattered around like toys thrown by a careless giant child. A few
moved feebly and moaned, but most were dead.
Fannon said, “I'd wager they lost a
hundred or more. This makes no sense.” He said to Roland and Martin, “Check the
other walls.” They both hurried off. “What are they doing now?” he said as he
watched the Tsurani. In the red glow of sunset, he could see them still in
lines, while men lit torches and passed them around. “Surely they don't intend
to attack after sunset? They'll fall over themselves in the dark.”
“Who knows what they plan?” said Arutha.
“I've never heard of an attack being staged this badly.”
Amos said, “Beggin' the Prince's pardon,
but I know a thing or two about warcraft -- from my younger days and I've also
never heard of this like before. Even the Keshians, who'll throw away dog
soldiers like a drunken seaman throws away his money, even they wouldn't try a
frontal assault like this. I'd keep a weather eye out for trickery.”
“Yes,” answered Arutha. “But of what
sort?”
THROUGHOUT THE NIGHT the Tsurani
attacked, rushing headlong against the walls, to die at the base. Once a few
made the top of the walls, but they were quickly killed and the ladders thrown
back. With dawn the Tsurani withdrew.
Arutha, Fannon, and Gardan watched as the
Tsurani reached the safety of their own lines, beyond catapult and bow range.
With the sunrise a sea of colorful tents appeared, and the Tsurani retired to
their campsites. The defenders were astonished at the number of Tsurani dead
along the base of the castle walls.
After a few hours the stink of the dead
became overpowering. Fannon consulted with an exhausted Arutha as the Prince
was readying for an overdue sleep. “The Tsurani have made no attempt to reclaim
their fallen.”
Arutha said, “We have no common language
in which to parley, unless you mean to send Tully out under a flag of truce.”
Fannon said, “He'd go, of course, but I'd
not risk him. Still, the bodies could be trouble in a day or two. Besides the
stink and flies, with unburied dead comes disease. It's the gods' way of showing
their displeasure over not honoring the dead.”
“Then,” said Arutha, pulling on the boot
he had just taken off, “we had best see what can be done.”
He returned to the gate and found Gardan
already making plans to remove the bodies. A dozen volunteers were waiting by
the gate to go and gather the dead for a funeral pyre.
Arutha and Fannon reached the walls as
Gardan led the men through the gate. Archers lined the walls to cover the
retreat of the men outside the walls if necessary, but it soon became evident
the Tsurani were not going to trouble the party. Several came to the edge of
their lines, to sit and watch the Kingdom soldiers working.
After a half hour it was clear the men of
Crydee would not be able to complete the work before they were exhausted.
Arutha considered sending more men outside, but Fannon refused, thinking it
what the Tsurani were waiting for. “If we have to move a large party back
through the gate, it might prove disastrous. If we close the gate, we lose men
outside, and if we leave it open too long, the Tsurani breach the castle.”
Arutha was forced to agree, and they settled down to watch Gardan's men working
in the hot morning.
Then, near midday, a dozen Tsurani
warriors, unarmed, walked casually across their lines and approached the work
party. Those on the wall watched tensely, but when the Tsurani reached the spot
where Crydee men worked, they silently began picking up bodies and carrying
them to where the pyre was being erected.
With the help of the Tsurani, the bodies
were stacked upon the huge pyre. Torches were set, and soon the bodies of the
slain were consumed in fire. The Tsurani who had helped place the bodies upon
the pyre watched as the soldier who led the volunteers stood away from the
mounting flames. Then one Tsurani soldier spoke a word, and he and his
companions bowed in respect to those upon the fire. The soldier who led the
Crydee soldiers said, “Honors to the dead!” The twelve men of Crydee assumed a
posture of attention and saluted. Then the Tsurani turned to face the Kingdom
soldiers and again they bowed. The commanding soldier called out, “Return
salute!” and the twelve men of Crydee saluted the Tsurani.
Arutha shook his head, watching men who
had tried to kill one another working side by side as if it were the most
natural thing in the world, then saluting one another. “Father used to say
that, among man's strange undertakings, war stood clearly forth as the
strangest.”
AT
SUNDOWN THEY came again, wave after wave of attackers, rushing the west wall,
to die at the base. Four times during the night they struck, and four times
they were repulsed.
Now they came again, and Arutha shrugged
off his fatigue to fight once more. They could see more Tsurani joining those
before the castle, long snakes of torchlight coming from the forest to the
north. After the last assault, it was clear the situation was shifting to the
Tsurani's favor. The defenders were exhausted from two nights of fighting, and
the Tsurani were still throwing fresh troops into the fray.
“They mean to grind us down, no matter
what the cost,” said a fatigued Fannon. He began to say something to a guard
when a strange expression crossed his face. He closed his eyes and collapsed.
Arutha caught him. An arrow protruded from his back. A panicky-looking soldier
kneeling on the other side looked at Arutha, clearly asking: What do we do?
Arutha shouted, “Get him into the keep,
to Father Tully,” and the man and another soldier picked up the unconscious
Swordmaster and carried him down. A third soldier asked, “What orders,
Highness?”
Arutha spun around, seeing the worried
faces of Crydee's soldiers nearby, and said, “As before. Defend the wall.”
The fighting went hard. A half-dozen
times Arutha found himself dueling with Tsurani warriors who topped the wall.
Then, after a timeless battling, the Tsurani withdrew.
Arutha stood panting, his clothing
drenched with perspiration beneath his chest armor. He shouted for water, and a
castle porter arrived with a bucket. He drank, as did the others around, and
turned to watch the Tsurani host.
Again they stood just beyond catapult
range, and their torchlights seemed undiminished. “Prince Arutha,” came a voice
behind. He spun around. Horsemaster Algon was standing before him. “I just
heard of Fannon's wound.”
Arutha
said, “How is he?”
“A close thing. The wound is serious, but
not yet fatal. Tully thinks should he live another day, he will recover. But he
will not be able to command for weeks, perhaps longer.”
Arutha knew Algon was waiting for a
decision from him. The Prince was Knight-Captain of the King's army and,
without Fannon, the commander of the garrison. He was also untried and could
turn over command to the Horsemaster. Arutha looked around. “Where is Gardan?”
“Here, Highness,” came a shout from a
short way down the wall. Arutha was surprised at the sergeant's appearance. His
dark skin was nearly grey from the dust that stuck to it, held fast by the
sheen of perspiration. His tunic and tabard were soaked with blood, which also
covered his arms to the elbows.
MAGICIAN:
APPRENTICE 455
Arutha looked down at his own hands and
arms and. found them likewise covered. He shouted, “More water!” and said to
Algon, “Gardan will act as my second commander. Should anything happen to me,
he will take command of the garrison. Gardan is acting Swordmaster.”
Algon hesitated as if about to say
something, then a look of relief crossed his face. “Yes, Highness. Orders?”
Arutha looked back toward the Tsurani
lines, then to the east. The first light of the false dawn was coming, and the
sun would rise over the mountains in less than two hours. He seemed to weigh
facts for a time, as he washed away the blood on his arms and face. Finally he
said, “Get Longbow.”
The Huntmaster was called for and arrived
a few minutes later, followed by Amos Trask, who wore a wide grin. “Damn me,
but they can fight,” said the seaman.
Arutha ignored the comment. “It is clear
to me they plan to keep constant pressure upon us. With as little regard as
they show for their own lives, they can wear us down in a few weeks. This is
one thing we didn't count upon, this willingness of their men to go to certain
death. I want the north, south, and east walls stripped. Leave enough men to
keep watch, and hold any attackers until reinforcements can arrive. Bring the
men from the other walls here, and order those here to stand down. I want
six-hour watches rotated throughout the rest of the day. Martin, has there been
any more word of Dark Brother migration?”
Longbow shrugged. “We've been a little
busy, Highness. My men have all been in the north woods the last few weeks.”
Arutha said, “Could you slip a few
trackers over the walls before first light?”
Longbow considered. “If they leave at
once, and if the Tsurani aren't watching the east wall too closely, yes. “
“Do so. The Dark Brothers aren't foolish
enough to attack this force, but if you could find a few bands the size of the
one you spotted three days ago and repeat your trap . . . “
Martin grinned. “I'll lead them out
myself. We'd best leave now, before it gets much lighter.” Arutha dismissed
him, and Martin ran down the stairs. “Garret!” he shouted. “Come on, lad. We're
off for some fun.” A groan could be heard by those on the wall as Martin
gathered his trackers around him.
Arutha said to Gardan, “I want messages
sent to Carse and Tulan. Use five pigeons for each. Order Barons Bellamy and
Tolburt to strip their garrisons and take ship for Crydee at once.”
Gardan said, “Highness, that will leave
those garrisons nearly undefended.”
Algon joined in the objection. “If the
Dark Brotherhood moves toward the Northlands, the Tsurani will have an open
path to the southern keeps next year.”
Arutha said, “If the Dark Brothers are
moving en masse, which they may not be, and if the Tsurani learn they have
abandoned the Green Heart, which they may not. I am concerned by this known
threat, not a possible one next year. If they keep this constant pressure upon
us, how long can we withstand?”
Gardan said, “A few weeks, perhaps a
month. No longer.”
Arutha once more studied the Tsurani
camp. “They boldly pitch their tents near the edge of town. They range through
our forests, building ladders and siege engines no doubt. They know we cannot
sally forth in strength. But with eighteen hundred fresh soldiers from the
southern keeps attacking up the coast road from the beaches and the garrison
sallying forth, we can rout them from Crydee. Once the siege is broken, they
will have to withdraw to their eastern enclaves. We can harry them continuously
with horsemen, keep them from regrouping. Then we can return those forces to
the southern keeps, and they'll be ready for any Tsurani attacks against Carse
or Tulan next spring.”
Gardan said, “A bold enough plan,
Highness.” He saluted and left the wall, followed by Algon.
Amos Trask said, “Your commanders are
cautious men, Highness.”
Arutha said, “You agree with my plan?”
“Should Crydee fall, what matters when
Carse or Tulan falls? If not this year, then next for certain. It might as well
be in one fight as two or three. As the sergeant said, it is a bold plan.
Still, a ship was never taken without getting close enough to board. You have
the makings of a fine corsair should you ever grow tired of being a Prince,
Highness.”
Arutha regarded Amos Trask with a
skeptical smile. “Corsair, is it? I thought you claimed to be an honest
trader.”
Amos looked slightly discomposed. Then he broke out in a hearty
laugh. “I only said I had a cargo for Crydee, Highness. I never said how I came
by it.”
“Well, we have no time for your piratical
past now. “
Amos looked stung. “No pirate, Sire. The
Sidonie was carrying letters of marque from Great Kesh, given by the governor
of Durbin.”
Arutha laughed. “Of course! And everyone
knows there is no finer, more law-abiding group upon the high seas than the
captains of the Durbin coast.”
Amos shrugged. “They tend to be a crusty
lot, it's true. And they sometimes make free with the concept of free passage
on the high seas, but we prefer the term privateer. “
Horns blew and drums beat, and with
shrieking war cries the Tsurani came. The defenders waited, then as the
attacking host crossed the invisible line marking the outer range of the
castle's war engines, death rained down upon the Tsurani. Still they came.
The Tsurani crossed the second invisible
line marking the outer range of the castle's bowmen, and scores more died.
Still they came.
The attackers reached the walls, and
defenders dropped stones and pushed over scaling ladders, dealing out death to
those below. Still they came.
Arutha quickly ordered a redeployment of
his reserves, directing them to be ready near the points of heaviest attack.
Men hurried to carry out his orders.
Standing atop the west wall, in the thick
of the fight, Arutha answered attack with attack, repulsing warrior after
warrior as they reached the top of the wall. Even in the midst of battle,
Arutha was aware of the scene around him, shouting orders, hearing replies,
catching glimpses of what others were doing. He saw Amos Trask, disarmed,
strike a Tsurani full in the face with his fist, knocking the man from the
wall. Trask then carefully bent down and picked up his cutlass as if he had
simply dropped it while strolling along the wall. Gardan moved among the men,
exhorting the defenders, bolstering sagging spirits, and driving the men beyond
the point where they would normally have given in to exhaustion.
Arutha helped two soldiers push away
another scaling ladder, then stared in momentary confusion as one of the men
slowly turned and sat at his feet, surprise on his face as he looked down at
the Tsurani bowshaft in his chest. The man leaned back against the wall and
closed his eyes as if deciding to sleep for a time.
Arutha heard someone shout his name.
Gardan stood a few feet away, pointing to the north section of the west wall.
“They've crested the wall!”
Arutha ran past Gardan, shouting, “Order
the reserves to follow!” He raced along the wall until he reached the breach in
the defenses. A dozen Tsurani held each end of a section of the wall, pushing
forward to clear room for their comrades to follow. Arutha hurled himself into
the front rank, past weary and surprised guards who were being forced back
along the battlement. Arutha thrust over the first Tsurani shield, taking the
man in the throat. The Tsurani's face registered shock, then he keeled over and
fell into the courtyard below. Arutha attacked the man next to the first and
shouted, “For Crydee! For the Kingdom!”
Then Gardan was among them, like a
towering black giant, dealing blows to all who stood before. Suddenly the men
of Crydee pressed forward, a wave of flesh and steel along the narrow rampart.
The Tsurani stood their ground, refusing to yield the hard-won breach, and to a
man were killed.
Arutha struck a Tsurani warrior with the
bell guard of his rapier, knocking him to the ground below, and turned to find
the wall once more in the possession of the defenders. Horns blew from the
Tsurani lines, and the attackers withdrew.
Arutha became aware the sun had cleared
the mountains to the east. The morning had finally come. He surveyed the scene
below and felt suddenly more fatigued than he could ever remember. Turning
slowly, he saw every man on the wall was watching him. Then one of the soldiers
shouted, “Hail, Arutha! Hail, Prince of Crydee!”
Suddenly the castle was ringing with shouts as men chanted, “Aruthal
Arutha!'
To Gardan, Arutha asked, “Why?”
With a satisfied look the sergeant
replied, “They saw you personally take the fight to the Tsurani, Highness, or
heard from others. They are soldiers and expect certain things from a
commander. They are now truly your men, Highness.”
Arutha stood quietly as the cheers filled
the castle. Then he raised his hand and the courtyard fell silent. “You have
done well. Crydee is served aright by her soldiers.” He spoke to Gardan.
“Change the watch upon the walls. We may have little time to enjoy the
victory.”
As if his words were an omen, a shout
came from a guard atop the nearest tower. “Highness, 'ware the field.”
Arutha saw the Tsurani lines had been
re-formed. Wearily he said, “Have they no limit?”
Instead of the expected attack, a single
man walked from the Tsurani line, apparently an officer by his crested helm. He
pointed to the walls, and the entire Tsurani line erupted in cheers. He walked
farther, within bow range, stopping several times to point at the wall. His
blue armor glinted in the morning sun as the attackers cheered with his
gestures toward the castle.
“A challenge?” said Gardan, watching the
strange display as the man showed his back, unmindful of personal danger, and
walked back to his own lines.
“No,” said Amos Trask, who came to stand
next to Gardan. “I think they salute a brave enemy.” Amos shook his head
slightly. “A strange people.”
Arutha said, “Shall we ever understand such men?”
Gardan put his hand upon Arutha's
shoulder. “I doubt it. Look, they quit the field.”
The Tsurani were marching back toward
their tents before the remains of Crydee town. A few watchmen were left to
observe the castle, but it was clear the main force was being ordered to stand
down again. Gardan said, “I would have ordered another assault.” His voice
betrayed his disbelief. “They have to know we are near exhaustion. Why not
press the attack?”
Amos said, “Who can say. Perhaps they,
too, are tired.”
Arutha said, “This attacking through the
night has some meaning I do not understand.” He shook his head. “In time we
will know what they plot. Leave a watch upon the walls, but have the men retire
to the courtyard. It is becoming clear they prefer not to attack during the
day. Order food brought from the kitchen, and water to bathe with.” Orders were
passed, and men left their posts, some sitting on the walks below the wall, too
tired to trudge down the steps. Others reached the courtyard and tossed aside
their weapons, sitting in the shade of the battlements while castle porters
hurried among them with buckets of fresh water. Arutha leaned against the wall.
He spoke silently to himself. “They'll be back.”
They came again that night.
Wounded men
groaned at sunrise.
For the twelfth straight night the
Tsurani had assaulted the castle, only to retire at dawn. Gardan could not see
any clear reason for the dangerous night attacks. As he watched the Tsurani
gathering up their dead, then returning to their tents, he said, “They are
strange. Their archers cannot fire at the walls once the ladders are up for
fear of hitting their own men. We have no such problem, knowing everyone below
is the enemy. I don't understand these men.”
Arutha sat numbly washing the blood and
dirt from his face, oblivious to the scene about him. He was too tired even to
answer Gardan. “Here,” a voice nearby said, and he pulled the damp cloth from
his face to see a proffered drinking cup. He took the cup and drained it in one
long pull, savoring the taste of strong wine.
Carline stood before him, wearing tunic
and trousers, her sword hanging at her side. “What are you doing here?” Arutha
asked, fatigue making his voice sound harsh in his own ears.
Carline's manner was brisk. “Someone must
carry water and food. With every man on the walls all night long, who do you
think is fit for duty in the morning? Not that pitiful handful of porters who
are too old for fighting, that is certain.”
Arutha looked about and saw other women,
ladies of the castle as well as servants and fishwives, walking among the men,
who thankfully took the offered food and drink. He smiled his crooked smile.
“How fare you? “
“Well enough. Still, sitting in the
cellar is as difficult in its own way as being on the wall, I judge. Each sound
of battle that reaches us brings one or another of the ladies to tears.” Her
voice carried a tone of mild disapproval. “They huddle like rabbits. Oh, it is
so tiresome.” She stood quietly for a moment, then asked, “Have you seen
Roland?”
He looked about. “Last night for a time.”
He covered his face in the soothing wetness of the cloth. Pulling it away after
a moment, he added, “Or perhaps it was two nights past. I've lost track.” He
pointed toward the wall nearest the keep. “He should be over there somewhere. I
put him in charge of the off watch. He is responsible for guarding against a
flank attack.”
Carline smiled. She knew Roland would be
chafing to get into the fight, but with his responsibilities it would be
unlikely unless the Tsurani attacked on all sides. “Thank you, Arutha.”
Arutha feigned ignorance. “For what?”
She kneeled and kissed his wet cheek.
“For knowing me better than I know myself sometimes.” She stood and walked
away.
ROLAND WALKED ALONG the battlements,
watching the distant forest beyond the broad clearing that ran along the
eastern wall of the castle. He approached a guard standing next to an alarm
bell and said, “Anything?”
“Nothing, Squire.”
Roland nodded. “Keep a watchful eye. This
is the narrowest open area before the wall. If they come against a second
flank, this is where I would expect the assault.”
The soldier said, “In truth, Squire. Why do they come only
against one wall, and why the strongest?”
Roland shrugged. “I don't pretend to
know. Perhaps to show contempt, or bravery. Or for some alien reason. “
The guard came to attention and saluted.
Carline had come silently up behind them. Roland took her by the arm and
hurried her along. “What do you think you're doing up here?” he said in
ungentle tones.
Her look of relief at finding him alive
and unhurt turned to one of anger. “I came to see if you were all right,” she
said defiantly.
Guiding her down the stairs to the
courtyard below, he answered, “We're not so far removed from the forest a
Tsurani bowman could not reduce the Duke's household by one. I'll not explain
to your father and brothers what my reasons were for allowing you up there.”
“Oh! Is that your only reason? You don't
want to face Father.”
He smiled and his voice softened. “No. Of
course not. “
She returned the smile. “I was worried.”
Roland sat upon the lower steps and
plucked at some weeds growing near the base of the stones, pulling them out and
tossing them aside. “Little reason for that. Arutha has seen I'll not risk
much.”
Placatingly, Carline said, “Still, this
is an important post. If they attack here, you'll have to hold with a small
number until reinforcements come.”
“If they attack. Gardan came by
yesterday, and he thinks they may tire of this soon and dig in for a long
siege, waiting for us to starve.”
She said, “More's their hard luck, then.
We've stores through the winter, and they'll find little to forage out there
once the snows come.”
Playfully mocking, he said, “What have we
here? A student of tactics?”
She regarded him like an overtaxed
teacher confronted with a particularly slow student. “I listen, and I have my
wits about me. Do you think I do nothing but sit around waiting for you men to
tell me what is occurring? If I did, I'd know nothing.”
He put up his hands in sign of
supplication. “I'm sorry, Carline. You are most definitely no one's fool.” He
stood and took her hand. “But you have made me your fool.”
She squeezed his hand. “No, Roland, I
have been the fool. It has taken me almost three years to understand just how
good a man you are. And how good a friend.” She leaned over and kissed him
lightly. He returned the kiss with tenderness. “And more,” she added quietly.
“When this is over . . . “ he began.
She placed her free hand over his lips.
“Not now, Roland. Not now.”
He smiled his understanding. “I'd best be
back to the walls, Carline.”
She kissed him again and left for the
main courtyard and the work to be done. He climbed back to the wall and resumed
his vigil.
IT WAS LATE afternoon when a guard
shouted, “Squire! In the forest!” Roland looked in the indicated direction and
saw two figures sprinting across the open ground. From the trees the shouts of
men came, and the clamor of battle.
Crydee bowmen raised their weapons, then
Roland shouted, “Hold! It's Longbow!” To the guard next to him he said, “Bring
ropes, quickly.”
Longbow and Garret reached the wall as
the ropes were being lowered and, as soon as they were secured, scrambled
upward. When they were safely over the walls, they sank exhaustedly behind the
battlements. Waterskins were handed the two foresters, who drank deeply.
“What now?” asked Roland.
Longbow gave him a lopsided smile. “We
found another band of travelers heading northward about thirty miles southeast
of here and arranged for them to visit with the Tsurani.”
Garret looked up at Roland with eyes
darkly circled from fatigue. “A band he calls it. Damn near five hundred
moredhel moving in strength. Must have been a full hundred chasing us through
the woods the last two days. “
Roland said, “Arutha will be pleased. The
Tsurani have hit us each night since you left. We could do with a little
diverting of their attentions.”
Longbow nodded. “Where's the Prince?”
“At the west wall, where all the
fighting's been.”
Longbow stood and pulled the exhausted
Garret to his feet. “Come along. We'd better report.”
Roland instructed the guards to keep a
sharp watch and followed the two huntsmen. They found Arutha supervising the
distribution of weapons to those in need of replacing broken or dulled ones.
Gardell, the smith, and his apprentices gathered up those that were
repairable and dumped them into a cart,
heading for the forge to begin work.
Longbow said, “Highness, another band of
moredhel have come north. I led them here, so the Tsurani could be too busy to
attack tonight.”
Arutha said, “That is welcome news. Come,
we'll have a cup of wine, and you can tell of what you saw.
Longbow sent Garret off to the kitchen
and followed Arutha and Roland into the keep. The Prince sent word asking
Gardan to join them in the council room and, when they were all there, asked
Longbow to recount his travels.
Longbow drank deeply from the wine cup
placed before him. “It was touch and go for a while. The woods are thick with
both Tsurani and moredhel. And there are many signs they have little affection
for one another. We counted at least a hundred dead on both sides.”
Arutha looked at the other three men. “We
know little of their ways, but it seems foolish for them to travel so close to
Crydee.”
Longbow shook his head. “They have little
choice, Highness. The Green Heart must be foraged clean, and they cannot return
to their mountains because of the Tsurani. The moredhel are making for the
Northlands and won't risk passing near Elvandar. With the rest of the way
blocked by the Tsurani strength, their only path is through the forests nearby,
then westward along the river toward the coast. Once they reach the sea, they
can turn northward again. They must gain the Great Northern Mountains before
winter to reach their brothers in the Northlands safely.”
He drank the rest of his cup and waited
while a servant refilled it. “From all signs; nearly every moredhel in the
south is making for the Northlands. It looks as if over a thousand have already
safely been by here. How many more will come this way through the summer and
fall, we cannot guess.” He drank again. “The Tsurani will have to watch their
eastern flank and would do well to watch the south as well. The moredhel are
starved and might chance a raid into the Tsurani camp while the bulk of the
army is thrown against the walls of the castle. Should a three-way fight occur,
it could get messy.”
“For the Tsurani,” said Gardan.
Martin hoisted his cup in salute. “For
the Tsurani.”
Arutha said, “You've done well,
Huntmaster.”
“Thank you, Highness.” He laughed. “I'd
never thought to see the day I'd welcome sight of the Dark Brotherhood in the
forests of Crydee.”
Arutha drummed his fingers upon the
table. “It will be another two to three weeks before we can expect the armies
from Tulan and Carse. If the Dark Brothers harry the Tsurani enough, we might
have some respite.” He looked at Martin. “What occurs to the east?”
Longbow spread his hands upon the table.
“We couldn't get close enough to see much as we hurried past, but they are up
to something. They've a good number of men scattered throughout the woods from
the edge of the clearing back about a half mile. If it hadn't been for the
moredhel hot on our heels, Garret and I might not have made it back to the
walls.”
“I wish I knew what they were doing out
there,” said Arutha. “This attacking only at night, it surely masks some
trickery.”
Gardan said, “We'll know soon enough, I fear.”
Arutha stood, and the others rose as
well. “We have much to do in any event. But if they do not come this night, we
should all take advantage of the rest. Order watches posted, and send the men
back to the commons for sleep. If I'm needed, I'll be in my room.”
The others followed him from the council
hall, and Arutha walked slowly to his room, his fatigued mind trying to grasp
what he knew were important matters, but failing. He threw off only his armor
and fell fully clothed across his pallet. He was quickly asleep, but it was a
troubled, dream-filled slumber.
For a week no attacks came, as the
Tsurani were cautious of the migrating Brotherhood of the Dark Path. As Martin
had foretold, the moredhel were emboldened by hunger and had twice struck into
the heart of the Tsurani camp.
On the eighth afternoon after the first
moredhel attack, the Tsurani were again gathering on the field before the
castle, their ranks once more swelled by reinforcements from the east. Messages
carried by pigeon between Arutha and his father told of increased fighting
along the eastern front as well. Lord Borric speculated Crydee was being
attacked by troops fresh from the Tsurani homeworld, as there had been no
reports of any troop movements along his front. Other messages arrived with
word of relief from Carse and Tulan. Baron Tolburt's soldiers had departed
Tulan within two days of receiving Arutha's message, and his fleet would join
with Baron Bellamy's at Carse. Depending upon the prevailing winds, it would be
from one to two weeks before the relief fleet arrived.
Arutha stood at his usual place upon the
west wall, Martin Longbow at his side. They watched the Tsurani taking position
as the sun sank in the west, a red beacon bathing the landscape in crimson.
“It seems,” said Arutha, “they mount a
full attack tonight.”
Longbow said, “They've cleared the area
of troublesome neighbors by all appearances, at least for a time. The moredhel
gained us a little time, Highness, but no more.”
“I wonder how many will reach the
Northlands?”
Longbow shrugged. “One in five perhaps.
From the Green Heart to the Northlands is a long, difficult journey under the
best of circumstances. Now . . .
He
let his words trail off.
Gardan came up the stairs from the
courtyard. “Highness, the tower watch reports the Tsurani are in formation.”
As he spoke, the Tsurani sounded their
battle calls and began to advance. Arutha drew his sword and gave the order for
the catapults to fire. Bowmen followed, unleashing a storm of arrows upon the
attackers, but still the Tsurani came.
Through the night, wave after wave of
brightly armored aliens threw themselves at the west wall of Castle Crydee. Most
died on the field before the wall, or at its base, but a few managed to crest
the battlements. They, too, died. Still, more came.
Six times the Tsurani wave had broken
upon the defenses of Crydee, and now they prepared for a seventh assault. Arutha,
covered in dirt and blood, directed the disposition of rested troops along the
wall. Gardan looked to the east. “If we hold one more time, the dawn will be
here. Then we should have some respite,” he said, his voice thick with fatigue.
“We will hold,” answered Arutha, his own
voice sounding just as tired in his ears as Gardan's.
“Arutha?”
Arutha saw Roland and Amos coming up the
stairs, with another man behind. “What now?” asked the Prince.
Roland said, “We can see no activity on
the other walls, but there is something here you should see.”
Arutha recognized the other man, Lewis,
the castle's Rathunter. It was his responsibility to keep vermin from the keep.
He tenderly held something in his hands.
Arutha looked closely: it was a ferret,
twitching slightly in the firelight. “Highness,” said Lewis, his voice thick
with emotion, “ it ‘s”
“What, man?” said Arutha impatiently.
With attack about to begin, he had little time to mourn a lost pet.
Roland spoke, for Lews was obviously
overcome at the loss of his ferret. “The Rathunter's ferrets didn't return two
days ago. This one crawled into the storage room behind the kitchen sometime
since. Lewis found it there a few minutes ago.”
In choked tones, Lewis said, “They're all
well trained, sire. If they didn't come back, it's because something kept them
from returnin'. This poor lad's been stepped on. His back's broken. He must've
crawled for hours to get back.”
Arutha said, “I fail to see the
significance of this.”
Roland gripped the Prince's arm. “Arutha,
he hunts them in the rat tunnels under the castle. “
Comprehension dawned upon Arutha. He
turned to Gardan and said, “Sappers! The Tsurani must be digging under the east
wall.”
Gardan said, “That would explain the
constant attacks upon the west wall -- to draw us away.”
Arutha said, “Gardan, take command of the
walls. Amos, Roland, come with me.”
Arutha ran down the steps and through the
courtyard. He shouted for a group of soldiers to follow and bring shovels. They
reached the small courtyard behind the keep, and Arutha said, “We've got to
find that tunnel and collapse it.”
Amos said, “Your walls are slanted
outward at the plinth. They'll recognize they can't fire the timbers of the
tunnels to bring it down to make a breach. They'll be trying to get a force
inside the castle grounds or into the keep.”
Roland looked alarmed. “Carline! She and
the other ladies are in the cellars.”
Arutha said, “Take some men and go to the
cellars.” Roland ran off. Arutha fell to his knees and placed his ear on the
ground. The others followed his example, moving around, listening for sounds of
digging from below.
CARLINE SAT NERVOUSLY next to the Lady
Marna. The fat former governess made a show of calmly attending to her
needlepoint despite the rustling and stirring of the other women in the cellar.
The sounds of battle from the walls came to them as faint, distant echoes,
muted by the thick walls of the keep. Now there was an equally unnerving quiet.
“Oh! To be sitting here like a caged
bird,” said Carline.
“The walls are no place for a lady,” came
the retort from Lady Marna.
Carline stood. As she paced the room, she
said, “ I can tie bandages and carry water. All of us could.”
The other ladies of the court looked at
one another as if the Princess had been bereft of her senses. None of them
could imagine subjecting herself to such a trial.
“Highness, please,” said Lady Marna, “you
should wait quietly. There will be much to do when the battle's over. Now you
should rest.”
Carline began a retort, then stopped. She
held up her hand. “Do you hear something?”
The others stopped their movement, and
all listened. From the floor came a faint tapping sound. Carline knelt upon the
flagstone. “My lady, this is most unseemly,” began the Lady Marna.
Carline stopped the complaint with an
imperious wave of her hand. “Quiet!” She placed her ear upon the flagstones.
“There is something . . .”
Lady Glynis shuddered. “Probably rats scurrying about. There are
hundreds of them down here.” Her expression showed this revelation was about as
unpleasant a fact as imaginable.
“Be quiet!” ordered Carline.
There came a cracking sound from the
floor, and Carline leaped to her feet. Her sword came out of its scabbard as a
fracture appeared in the stones of the floor. A chisel point broke through the
flagstone, and suddenly the upturned stone was pushed up and outward.
Ladies screamed as a hole appeared in the
floor. A startled face popped into the light, then a Tsurani warrior, hair
filthy from the dirt of the tunnel, tried to scramble upward. Carline's sword
took him in the throat as she shouted, “Get out! Call the guards!”
Most of the women sat frozen in terror,
refusing to move. Lady Marna heaved her massive bulk from the bench upon which
she sat and gave a shrieking town girl a backhanded slap. The girl looked at
Lady Marna with wide-eyed fright for an instant, then broke toward the steps.
As if at a signal, the others ran after, screaming for help.
Carline watched as the Tsurani slowly
fell back, blocking the hole in the floor. Other cracks appeared around the
hole, and hands pulled pieces of flagstone downward into the ever-widening
entrance. Lady Marna was halfway to the steps when she saw Carline standing her
ground. “Princess!” she shrieked.
Another man came scrambling upward, and
Carline delivered a death blow to him. She was then forced back as the stones
near her feet collapsed. The Tsurani had terminated their tunnel in a wide hole
and were now broadening the entrance, pulling down stones so that they could
swarm out, overwhelming any defenders.
A man fought upward, pushing Carline to
one side, allowing another to start his climb upward. Lady Marna ran back to
her former ward and grabbed up a large piece of loose stone, which she brought
crashing down on the unhelmeted skull of the second man. Grunts and
strange-sounding words came from the tunnel mouth as the man fell back upon
those behind.
Carline ran the other man through and
kicked another in the face. “Princess!” cried Lady Marna. “We must flee!”
Carline didn't answer. She dodged a blow
at her feet delivered by a Tsurani who then sprang nimbly out of the hole.
Carline thrust and the man dodged. Another came scrambling out of the hole, and
the Lady Marna shrieked.
The first man turned reflexively at the
sound, and Carline drove her sword into his side. The second man raised a
serrated sword to strike Lady Marna, and Carline sprang for him, thrusting her
sword point into his neck. The man shuddered and fell, his fingers releasing
their grip on the sword. Carline grabbed Lady Marna's arm and propelled her
toward the steps.
Tsurani came swarming out of the hole,
and Carline turned at the bottom of the stairs. Lady Marna stood behind her
beloved Princess, not willing to leave. The Tsurani approached warily. The girl
had killed enough of their companions to warrant their respect and caution.
Suddenly a body crashed past the girl as
Roland charged into the Tsurani, soldiers of the keep hurrying behind. The
young Squire was in a frenzy to protect the Princess, and he bowled over three
Tsurani in his rush. They tumbled backward, disappearing into the hole, Roland
with them.
As the Squire vanished from view, Carline
screamed, “Roland!” Other guards leaped past the Princess to engage the Tsurani
who still stood in the cellar, and more jumped boldly into the hole. Grunts and
cries, shouts and oaths rang from the tunnel.
A guard took Carline by the arm and began
to drag her up the stairs. She followed, helpless in the man's strong grip,
crying, “Roland!”
GRUNTS OF EXERTION filled the dark tunnel
as the soldiers from Crydee dug furiously. Arutha had found the Tsurani tunnel
and had ordered a shaft sunk near it. They were now digging a countertunnel to
intercept the Tsurani, near the wall. Amos had agreed with Arutha's judgment
that they needed to force the Tsurani back beyond the wall before collapsing
the tunnel, denying them any access to the castle.
A shovel broke through, and men began
frantically clearing away enough dirt to allow passage into the Tsurani tunnel.
Boards were hastily jammed into place, jury-rigged supports, preventing the
earth above from caving in on them.
The men from Crydee surged into the low
tunnel and entered a frantic, terrible melee. Tsurani warriors and Roland's
squad of soldiers were locked in a desperate hand-to-hand struggle in the dark.
Men fought and died in the gloom under the earth. It was impossible to bring
order to the fray, with the fighting in such confinement. An overturned lantern
flickered faintly, providing little illumination.
Arutha said to a soldier behind, “Get more
men!”
“At once, Highness!” answered the
soldier, turning toward the shaft.
Arutha entered the Tsurani tunnel. It was
only five feet high, so he moved stooped over. it was fairly wide, with enough
room for three men to negotiate closely. Arutha stepped on something soft,
which groaned in pain. He continued past the dying man, toward the sound of
fighting.
It was a scene from his worst nightmare,
faintly lit by widely spaced torches. With little room only the first three men
could engage the enemy at any one point. Arutha called out, “Knives!” and
dropped his rapier. In close quarters the shorter weapons would prove more
effective.
He came upon two men struggling in the
darkness and grabbed at one. His hand closed on chitinous armor, and he plunged
his knife into the man's exposed neck. jerking the now lifeless body off the
other man, he saw a jam of bodies a few feet away, where Crydee and Tsurani
soldiers pressed against one another. Curses and cries filled the tunnel, and
the damp earth smell was mixed with the odor of blood and excrement.
Arutha fought madly, blindly, lashing out
at barely seen foes. His own fear kept threatening to overcome him as primitive
awareness cried for him to quit the tunnel and the threatening earth above. He
forced his panic down and continued to lead the attack on the sappers.
A familiar voice grunted and cursed at
his side, and Arutha knew Amos Trask was near. “Another thirty feet, lad!” he
shouted.
Arutha took the man at his word, having
lost all sense of distance. The men of Crydee pressed onward, and many died
killing the resisting Tsurani. Time became a blur and the fight a dim montage
of images.
Abruptly Amos shouted, “Straw!” and
bundles of dry straw were passed forward. “Torches!” he cried, and flaming
torches were passed up. He piled the straw near a latticework of timbers and
drove the torch into the pile. Flames burst upward, and he yelled, “Clear the
tunnel!”
The fighting stopped. Every man, whether
of Crydee or Tsurani, turned and fled the flames. The sappers knew the tunnel
was lost without means to quench the flames and scrambled for their lives.
Choking smoke filled the tunnel, and men
began to cough as they cleared the cramped quarters. Arutha followed Amos, and
they missed the turn to the countertunnel, coming out in the cellar. Guardsmen,
dirty and bloody, were collapsing on the stones of the cellar, gasping for air.
A dull rumble sounded, and with a crash, a blast of air and smoke blew out of
the hole. Amos grinned, his face streaked with dirt. “The timbers collapsed.
The tunnel's sealed.”
Arutha nodded dumbly, exhausted and still
reeling from the smoke. A cup of water was handed to him, and he drank deeply,
soothing his burning throat.
Carline appeared before him. “Are you all
right?” she asked, concern on her face. He nodded. She looked around. “Where's
Roland?”
Arutha shook his head. “It was impossible
to see down there. Was he in the tunnel?”
She bit her lower lip. Tears welled up in
her blue eyes as she nodded. Arutha said, “He might have cleared the tunnel and
come up in the courtyard. Let us see. “
He got to his feet, and Amos and Carline
followed him up the stairs. They left the keep, and a soldier informed him the
attack on the wall had been repulsed. Arutha acknowledged the report and
continued around the keep until they came to the shaft he had ordered dug.
Soldiers lay on the grass of the yard, coughing and spitting, trying to clear
their lungs of the burning smoke. The air hung heavy with an acrid haze as
fumes from the fire continued to billow from the shaft. Another rumble sounded,
and Arutha could feel it through the soles of his boots. Near the wall a
depression had appeared where the tunnel had fallen below. “Squire Roland!”
Arutha shouted.
“Here, Highness,” came an answering shout
from a soldier.
Carline dashed past Arutha and reached
Roland before the Prince. The Squire lay upon the ground, tended by the soldier
who answered. His eyes were closed and his skin pale, and blood seeped from his
side. The soldier said, “I had to drag him along the last few yards, Highness.
He was out on his feet. I thought it might be smoke until I saw the wound.”
Carline cradled Roland's head, while
Arutha first cut the binding straps of Roland's breastplate, then tore away the
undertunic. After a moment Arutha sat back upon his heels. “It's a shallow
wound. He'll be all right.”
“Oh, Roland,” Carline said softly.
Roland's eyes opened and he grinned weakly.
His voice was tired, but he forced a cheery note. “What's this? You'd think I'd
been killed.”
Carline said, “You heartless monster.”
She gently shook him but didn't release her hold as she smiled down at him.
“Playing tricks at a time like this!”
He winced as he tried to move. “Ooh, that
hurts.” She placed a restraining hand upon his shoulder.
“Don't try to move. We must bind the
wound,” she said -- caught between relief and anger.
Nestling his head into her lap, he
smiled. “I'd not move for half your father's Duchy.”
She looked at him in irritation. “What
were you doing throwing yourself upon the enemy like that?”
Roland looked genuinely embarrassed. “In
truth, I tripped coming down the steps and couldn't stop myself”
She placed her cheek against his forehead
as Arutha and Amos laughed. “You are a liar. And I do love you,” she said
softly.
Arutha stood and took-Amos in tow,
leaving Roland and Carline to each other. Reaching the corner, they encountered
the former Tsurani slave, Charles, carrying water for the wounded. Arutha
halted the man.
He stood with a yoke across his shoulders
holding two large water buckets. He was bleeding from several small wounds and
was covered with mire. Arutha said, “What happened to you?”
With a broad smile, Charles said, “Good
fight. Jump in hole. Charles good warrior.”
The former Tsurani slave was pale and
weaved a little as he stood there. Arutha remained speechless, then indicated
he should continue his work. Happily Charles hurried along. Arutha said to
Amos, “What do you make of that?”
Amos chuckled. “I've had many dealings
with rogues and scoundrels, Highness. I know little of these Tsurani, but I
think that's a man to count on.”
Arutha watched as Charles dispensed water
to the other soldiers, ignoring his own wounds and fatigue. “That was no mean
thing, jumping into the shaft without orders. I'll have to consider Longbow's
offer to put that man in service.”
They continued on their way, Arutha
supervising the care of the wounded, while Amos was put in charge of the final
destruction of the tunnel.
When dawn came, the courtyard was still,
and only a patch of raw earth, where the shaft had been filled in, and a long
depression running from the keep to the outer wall showed anything unusual had
occurred in the night.
FANNON HOBBLED ALONG the wall, favoring
his right side. The wound to his back was almost healed, but he was still
unable to walk without aid. Father Tully supported the Swordmaster as they came
to where the others waited.
Arutha gave the Swordmaster a smile and
gently took him by the other arm, helping Tully hold him. Gardan, Amos Trask,
Martin Longbow, and a group of soldiers stood nearby.
“What's this?” asked Fannon, his display
of gruff anger a welcome sight to those on the wall. “Have you so little wits
among you that you must haul me from my rest to take charge?”
Arutha pointed out to sea. On the horizon
dozens of small flecks could be seen against the blue of sea and sky, flashes
of brilliant white glinting as the morning sun was caught and reflected back to
them. “The fleet from Carse and Tulan approaches the south beaches.”
He indicated the Tsurani camp in the
distance, bustling with activity. “Today we'll drive them out. By this time
tomorrow we'll clear this entire area of the aliens. We'll harry them eastward,
allowing them no respite. It will be a long time before they'll come in
strength again.”
Quietly Fannon said, “I trust you are
right, Arutha.” He stood without speaking for a time, then said, “I have heard
reports of your command, Arutha. You've done well. You are a credit to your
father, and to Crydee.”
Finding himself moved by the
Swordmaster's praise, Arutha tried to make light, but Fannon interrupted. “No,
you have done all that was needed, and more. You were right. With these people
we must not be cautious. We must carry the struggle to them.” He sighed. “I am
an old man, Arutha. It is time I retired and left warfare to the young.”
Tully made a derisive noise. “You're not
old. I was already a priest when you were still in swaddling.”
Fannon laughed with the others at the
obvious untruth of the statement, and Arutha said, “You must know, if I've done
well, it is because of your teachings.”
Tully gripped Fannon's elbow. “You may
not be an old man, but you are a sick one. Back to the keep with you. You've
had enough gadding about. You can begin walking regularly tomorrow. In a few
weeks you'll be charging about, shouting orders at everyone like your old
self.”
Fannon managed a slight smile and allowed
Tully to lead him back down the stairs. When he was gone, Gardan said, “The
Swordmaster's right, Highness. You've done your father proud.”
Arutha watched the approaching ships, his
angular features fixed in an expression of quiet reflection. Softly he said,
“If I have done well, it is because I have had the aid of good men, many no
longer with us.” He took a deep breath, then continued, “You have played a
great part in our withstanding this siege, Gardan, and you, Martin.”
Both men smiled and voiced their thanks.
“And you, pirate.” Arutha grinned. “You've also played a great part. We are
deeply in your debt.”
Amos Trask tried to look modest and
failed. “Well, Highness, I was merely protecting my own skin as well as
everyone else's.” He then returned Arutha's grin. “It was a rousing good
fight.”
Arutha looked toward the sea once more.
“Let us hope we can soon be done with rousing good fights.” He left the walls
and started down the stairs. “Give orders to prepare for the attack.”
CARLINE STOOD ATOP the south tower of the
keep, her arm around Roland's waist. The Squire was pale from his wound, but
otherwise in hale spirits. “We'll be done with the siege, now the fleet's
arrived,” he said, clinging tightly to the Princess.
“It has been a nightmare.”
He smiled down at her, gazing into her
blue eyes. “Not entirely. There has been some compensation.”
Softly she said, “You are a rogue,” then
kissed him. When they separated, she said, “I wonder if your foolish bravery
was nothing more than a ploy to gain my sympathies.”
Feigning a wince, he said, “Lady, I am
wounded.”
She clung to him. “I was so worried about
you, not knowing if you lay dead in the tunnel. I . . .” Her voice dropped off
as her gaze strayed to the north tower of the keep, opposite the one upon which
they stood. She could see the window upon the second floor, the window to Pug's
room. The funny little metal chimney, which would constantly belch smoke when
he was at his studies, was now only a mute reminder of just how empty the tower
stood.
Roland followed her gaze. “I know,” he
said. “I miss him, too. And Tomas as well.”
She sighed. “That seems such a long time
ago, Roland. I was a girl then, a girl with a girl's notion of what life and
love were about.” Softly she said, “Some love comes like a wind off the sea,
while others grow slowly from the seeds of friendship and kindness. Someone
once told me that.”
“Father Tully. He was right.” He squeezed
her waist. “Either way, as long as you feel, you live.”
She watched as the soldiers of the
garrison prepared for the coming sortie. “Will this end it?”
“No, they will come again. This war is
fated to last a long time.”
They stood together, taking comfort in
the simple fact of each other's existence.
KASUMI OF THE Shinzawai, Force Leader of
the Armies of the Kanazawai Clan, of the Blue Wheel Party, watched the enemy
upon the castle wall.
He could barely make out the figures
walking along the battlements, but he knew them well. He could not put names to
any, but they were each as familiar to him as his own men. The slender youth
who commanded, who fought like a demon, who brought order to the fray when
needed, he was there. The black giant would not be too far from his side, the
one who stood like a bulwark against every attack upon the walls. And the
green-clad one, who could race through the woods like an apparition, taunting
Kasumi's men by the freedom with which he passed their lines, he would be there
as well. No doubt the broad-shouldered one was nearby, the laughing man with
the curved sword and maniacal grin. Kasumi quietly saluted them all as valiant foemen,
even if only barbarians.
Chingari of the Omechkel, the Senior
Strike Leader, came to stand at Kasumi's side. “Force Leader, the barbarian
fleet is nearing. They will land their men within the hour.”
Kasumi regarded the scroll he held in his
hand. It had been read a dozen times since arriving at dawn. He glanced at it
one more time, again studying the chop at the bottom, the crest of his father,
Kamatsu, Lord of the Shinzawai. Silently accepting his personal fate, Kasumi
said, “Order for march. Break camp at once and begin assembling the warriors.
We are commanded to return to Kelewan. Send the trailbreakers ahead.”
Chingari's voice betrayed his bitterness.
“Now the tunnel is destroyed, do we quit so meekly?”
“There is no shame, Chingari. Our clan
has withdrawn itself from the Alliance for War, as have the other clans of the
Blue Wheel Party. The War Party is once more alone in the conduct of this
invasion.”
With a sigh Chingari said, “Again
politics interferes with conquest. It would have been a glorious victory to
take such a fine castle.”
Kasumi laughed. “True.” He watched the
activities of the castle. “They are the best we have ever faced. We already
learn much from them. Castle walls slanted outward at the plinth, preventing
sappers from collapsing them, this is a new and clever thing. And those beasts
they ride. Ayee, how they move, like Thûn racing across the tundras of home. I
will somehow gain some of those animals. Yes, these people are more than simple
barbarians.”
After a moment's more reflection, he
said, “Have our scouts and trailbreakers keep alert for signs of the forest
devils.”
Chingari spat. “The foul ones move in
great number northward once more. They're as much a dagger in our side as the barbarians.”
Kasumi said, “When this world is
conquered, we shall have to see to these creatures. The barbarians make strong
slaves. Some may even prove valuable enough to make free vassals who will swear
loyalty to our houses, but those foul ones, they must be obliterated.” Kasumi
fell silent for a while. Then he said, “Let the barbarians think we flee in
terror from their fleet. This place is now a matter for the clans remaining in
the War Party, Let Tasio of the Minwanabi worry about a garrison at his rear
should he move eastward. Until the Kanazawai once more realign themselves in
the High Council, we are done with this war. Order the march.”
Chingari saluted his commander and left,
and Kasumi considered the implications of the message from his father. He knew
the withdrawal of all the forces of the Blue Wheel Party would prove a major
setback for the Warlord and his party. The repercussions of such a move would
be felt throughout the Empire for some years to come. There would be no smashing
victories for the Warlord now, for with the departure of those forces loyal to
the Kanazawai lords and the other clans of the Blue Wheel, other clans would
reconsider before joining in an all-out push. No, thought Kasumi, it was a bold
but dangerous move by his father and the other lords. This war would now be
prolonged. The Warlord was robbed of a spectacular conquest; he was now
overextended with too few men holding too much land. Without new allies he
would remain unable to press forward with the war. His choices were now down to
two: withdraw from Midkemia and risk humiliation before the High Council, or
sit and wait, hoping for another shift in politics at home.
It was a stunning move on behalf of the
Blue Wheel. But the risk was great. And the risk from the next series of moves
in the Game of the Council would be even more dangerous. Silently he said: O my
father, we are now firmly committed to the Great Game. We risk much: our
family, our clan, our honor, and perhaps even the Empire itself.
Crumbling the scroll, he tossed it into a nearby brazier, and when
it was totally consumed by flame, he put aside thoughts of risk and walked back
toward his tent.